This is a modern-English version of Commentary on the Epistle to the Galatians, originally written by Luther, Martin.
It has been thoroughly updated, including changes to sentence structure, words, spelling,
and grammar—to ensure clarity for contemporary readers, while preserving the original spirit and nuance. If
you click on a paragraph, you will see the original text that we modified, and you can toggle between the two versions.
Scroll to the bottom of this page and you will find a free ePUB download link for this book.
COMMENTARY ON THE EPISTLE TO THE GALATIANS
(1535)
By Martin Luther
Translated by Theodore Graebner
CONTENTS
TABLE OF CONTENTS
PREFACE
The preparation of this edition of Luther's Commentary on Galatians was first suggested to me by Mr. P. J. Zondervan, of the firm of publishers, in March, 1937. The consultation had the twofold merit of definiteness and brevity.
The idea to create this edition of Luther's Commentary on Galatians first came from Mr. P. J. Zondervan, from the publishing company, in March 1937. Our discussion was both clear and to the point.
"Luther is still the greatest name in Protestantism. We want you to help us publish some leading work of Luther's for the general American market. Will you do it?"
"Luther is still the most prominent figure in Protestantism. We would like you to help us publish one of Luther's key works for the general American audience. Will you do it?"
"I will, on one condition."
"I will, but only if."
"And what is that?"
"And what’s that?"
"The condition is that I will be permitted to make Luther talk American, 'streamline' him, so to speak—because you will never get people, whether in or outside the Lutheran Church, actually to read Luther unless we make him talk as he would talk today to Americans."
"The condition is that I get to make Luther speak American, 'streamline' him, so to speak—because you’ll never get people, whether they’re in or out of the Lutheran Church, to actually read Luther unless we present him in a way he would speak today to Americans."
I illustrated the point by reading to Mr. Zondervan a few sentences from an English translation lately reprinted by an American publisher, of one of Luther's outstanding reformatory essays.
I made my point by reading a few sentences to Mr. Zondervan from an English translation that was recently reprinted by an American publisher of one of Luther's notable reform essays.
The demonstration seemed to prove convincing for it was agreed that one may as well offer Luther in the original German or Latin as expect the American church-member to read any translations that would adhere to Luther's German or Latin constructions and employ the Mid-Victorian type of English characteristic of the translations now on the market.
The demonstration seemed convincing because it was agreed that one might as well present Luther in the original German or Latin as expect American church members to read any translations that stick to Luther's German or Latin styles and use the Mid-Victorian type of English typical of the translations available today.
"And what book would be your choice?"
"And which book would you choose?"
"There is one book that Luther himself likes better than any other. Let us begin with that: his Commentary on Galatians..."
"There’s one book that Luther likes more than any other. Let’s start with that: his Commentary on Galatians..."
The undertaking, which seemed so attractive when viewed as a literary task, proved a most difficult one, and at times became oppressive. The Letter to the Galatians consists of six short chapters. Luther's commentary fills seven hundred and thirty-three octavo pages in the Weidman Edition of his works. It was written in Latin. We were resolved not to present this entire mass of exegesis. It would have run to more than fifteen hundred pages, ordinary octavo (like this), since it is impossible to use the compressed structure of sentences which is characteristic of Latin, and particularly of Luther's Latin. The work had to be condensed. German and English translations are available, but the most acceptable English version, besides laboring under the handicaps of an archaic style, had to be condensed into half its volume in order to accomplish the "streamlining" of the book. Whatever merit the translation now presented to the reader may possess should be written to the credit of Rev. Gerhardt Mahler of Geneva, N.Y., who came to my assistance in a very busy season by making a rough draft of the translation and later preparing a revision of it, which forms the basis of the final draft submitted to the printer. A word should now be said about the origin of Luther's Commentary on Galatians.
The project, which seemed so appealing as a literary task, turned out to be quite challenging and sometimes overwhelming. The Letter to the Galatians has six short chapters. Luther's commentary spans seven hundred and thirty-three octavo pages in the Weidman Edition of his works. It was written in Latin. We decided not to include this entire mass of analysis. It would have exceeded fifteen hundred pages in ordinary octavo (like this), as it’s impossible to
The Reformer had lectured on this Epistle of St. Paul's in 1519 and again in 1523. It was his favorite among all the Biblical books. In his table talks the saying is recorded: "The Epistle to the Galatians is my epistle. To it I am as it were in wedlock. It is my Katherine." Much later when a friend of his was preparing an edition of all his Latin works, he remarked to his home circle: "If I had my way about it they would republish only those of my books which have doctrine. My Galatians, for instance." The lectures which are preserved in the works herewith submitted to the American public were delivered in 1531. They were taken down by George Roerer, who held something of a deanship at Wittenberg University and who was one of Luther's aids in the translation of the Bible. Roerer took down Luther's lectures and this manuscript has been preserved to the present day, in a copy which contains also additions by Veit Dietrich and by Cruciger, friends of Roerer's, who with him attended Luther's lectures. In other words, these three men took down the lectures which Luther addressed to his students in the course of Galatians, and Roerer prepared the manuscript for the printer. A German translation by Justus Menius appeared in the Wittenberg Edition of Luther's writings, published in 1539.
The Reformer lectured on this letter from St. Paul in 1519 and again in 1523. It was his favorite among all the books of the Bible. In his conversations, he noted: "The Epistle to the Galatians is my epistle. I feel like I’m in a marriage with it. It’s my Katherine." Much later, when a friend was putting together a collection of all his Latin works, he commented to those at home: "If it were up to me, they would only republish my books that have doctrine. Like my Galatians, for instance." The lectures preserved in the works presented here to the American public were delivered in 1531. They were recorded by George Roerer, who was a kind of dean at Wittenberg University and one of Luther's assistants in translating the Bible. Roerer took down Luther's lectures, and this manuscript has been preserved to this day, in a copy that also includes additions by Veit Dietrich and Cruciger, friends of Roerer's who attended Luther's lectures with him. In other words, these three men recorded the lectures Luther gave to his students on Galatians, and Roerer prepared the manuscript for printing. A German translation by Justus Menius was published in the Wittenberg Edition of Luther's writings in 1539.
The importance of this Commentary on Galatians for the history of Protestantism is very great. It presents like no other of Luther's writings the central thought of Christianity, the justification of the sinner for the sake of Christ's merits alone. We have permitted in the final revision of the manuscript many a passage to stand which seemed weak and ineffectual when compared with the trumpet tones of the Latin original. But the essence of Luther's lectures is there. May the reader accept with indulgence where in this translation we have gone too far in modernizing Luther's expression—making him "talk American."
The significance of this Commentary on Galatians for the history of Protestantism is immense. It conveys like no other of Luther's writings the core idea of Christianity: the justification of the sinner solely based on Christ's merits. In the final revision of the manuscript, we have allowed several passages to remain that might seem weak or ineffective compared to the powerful Latin original. However, the essence of Luther's lectures is intact. We ask the reader to be understanding if, in this translation, we have strayed too far in modernizing Luther's language—giving him an "American" voice.
At the end of his lectures in 1531, Luther uttered a brief prayer and then dictated two Scriptural texts, which we shall inscribe at the end of these introductory remarks:
At the end of his lectures in 1531, Luther said a short prayer and then dictated two Bible verses, which we will write at the end of these introductory remarks:
"The Lord who has given us power to teach and to hear, let Him also give us the power to serve and to do."
"May the Lord who has given us the ability to teach and to listen, also grant us the strength to serve and to act."
LUKE 2 Glory to God in the highest, And on earth peace, Good will to men.
LUKE 2 Glory to God in the highest, And peace on earth, Goodwill to everyone.
ISAIAH 40 The Word of our God shall stand forever.
ISAIAH 40 The Word of our God will endure forever.
THEODORE GRAEBNER
THEODORE GRAEBNER
St. Louis, Missouri
St. Louis, MO
FROM LUTHER'S INTRODUCTION, 1538
In my heart reigns this one article, faith in my dear Lord Christ, the beginning, middle and end of whatever spiritual and divine thoughts I may have, whether by day or by night.
In my heart, there is one thing that matters: my faith in my dear Lord Christ, the beginning, middle, and end of all my spiritual and divine thoughts, day or night.
CHAPTER 1
VERSE 1. Paul, an apostle, (not of men, neither by man, but by Jesus Christ, and God the Father, who raised him from the dead).
VERSE 1. Paul, an apostle, (not appointed by humans or through any human authority, but by Jesus Christ and God the Father, who raised Him from the dead).
St. Paul wrote this epistle because, after his departure from the Galatian churches, Jewish-Christian fanatics moved in, who perverted Paul's Gospel of man's free justification by faith in Christ Jesus.
St. Paul wrote this letter because, after he left the Galatian churches, some Jewish-Christian extremists came in and distorted Paul's message about how people are freely justified through faith in Christ Jesus.
The world bears the Gospel a grudge because the Gospel condemns the religious wisdom of the world. Jealous for its own religious views, the world in turn charges the Gospel with being a subversive and licentious doctrine, offensive to God and man, a doctrine to be persecuted as the worst plague on earth.
The world holds a grudge against the Gospel because it criticizes the religious beliefs popular in society. Protective of its own faith, the world accuses the Gospel of being a rebellious and immoral teaching, offensive to both God and humanity, a belief that should be persecuted like the worst disease on earth.
As a result we have this paradoxical situation: The Gospel supplies the world with the salvation of Jesus Christ, peace of conscience, and every blessing. Just for that the world abhors the Gospel.
As a result, we have this contradictory situation: The Gospel offers the world the salvation of Jesus Christ, peace of mind, and every blessing. Yet because of that, the world despises the Gospel.
These Jewish-Christian fanatics who pushed themselves into the Galatian churches after Paul's departure, boasted that they were the descendants of Abraham, true ministers of Christ, having been trained by the apostles themselves, that they were able to perform miracles.
These Jewish-Christian extremists who inserted themselves into the Galatian churches after Paul's departure bragged that they were the descendants of Abraham, genuine ministers of Christ, having been trained by the apostles themselves, and that they could perform miracles.
In every way they sought to undermine the authority of St. Paul. They said to the Galatians: "You have no right to think highly of Paul. He was the last to turn to Christ. But we have seen Christ. We heard Him preach. Paul came later and is beneath us. It is possible for us to be in error—we who have received the Holy Ghost? Paul stands alone. He has not seen Christ, nor has he had much contact with the other apostles. Indeed, he persecuted the Church of Christ for a long time."
In every way, they tried to undermine St. Paul's authority. They told the Galatians, "You shouldn't think highly of Paul. He was the last to come to Christ. But we have seen Christ. We heard Him preach. Paul came after us and is below us. It's possible for us to be mistaken—we who have received the Holy Spirit? Paul is on his own. He hasn’t seen Christ and hasn’t interacted much with the other apostles. In fact, he persecuted the Church of Christ for a long time."
When men claiming such credentials come along, they deceive not only the naive, but also those who seemingly are well-established in the faith. This same argument is used by the papacy. "Do you suppose that God for the sake of a few Lutheran heretics would disown His entire Church? Or do you suppose that God would have left His Church floundering in error all these centuries?" The Galatians were taken in by such arguments with the result that Paul's authority and doctrine were drawn in question.
When men with such claims show up, they mislead not just the gullible but also those who appear to be firmly rooted in the faith. The papacy uses this same argument: "Do you think God would disown His entire Church just for a few Lutheran heretics? Or do you think He would have let His Church struggle in error for all these centuries?" The Galatians fell for these arguments, which led people to doubt Paul's authority and teachings.
Against these boasting, false apostles, Paul boldly defends his apostolic authority and ministry. Humble man that he was, he will not now take a back seat. He reminds them of the time when he opposed Peter to his face and reproved the chief of the apostles.
Against these bragging, false apostles, Paul confidently defends his apostolic authority and ministry. Though he was a humble man, he refuses to back down now. He reminds them of the time he confronted Peter directly and corrected the chief of the apostles.
Paul devotes the first two chapters to a defense of his office and his Gospel, affirming that he received it, not from men, but from the Lord Jesus Christ by special revelation, and that if he or an angel from heaven preach any other gospel than the one he had preached, he shall be accursed.
Paul spends the first two chapters defending his role and his Gospel, stating that he received it not from humans, but directly from the Lord Jesus Christ through special revelation. He emphasizes that if he or an angel from heaven preaches any other Gospel than the one he has preached, they will be cursed.
The Certainty of Our Calling
The Assurance of Our Calling
Every minister should make much of his calling and impress upon others the fact that he has been delegated by God to preach the Gospel. As the ambassador of a government is honored for his office and not for his private person, so the minister of Christ should exalt his office in order to gain authority among men. This is not vain glory, but needful glorying.
Every minister should value his calling and emphasize to others that he has been chosen by God to preach the Gospel. Just as an ambassador is respected for his position rather than for himself, a minister of Christ should elevate his role to earn respect among people. This isn't about seeking empty praise, but about recognizing the importance of his position.
Paul takes pride in his ministry, not to his own praise but to the praise of God. Writing to the Romans, he declares, "Inasmuch as I am the apostle of the Gentiles, I magnify mine office," i.e., I want to be received not as Paul of Tarsus, but as Paul the apostle and ambassador of Jesus Christ, in order that people might be more eager to hear. Paul exalts his ministry out of the desire to make known the name, the grace, and the mercy of God.
Paul takes pride in his ministry, not for his own glory but for God's. Writing to the Romans, he states, "As an apostle to the Gentiles, I honor my role," meaning he wants to be recognized not just as Paul of Tarsus, but as Paul, the apostle and ambassador of Jesus Christ, so that people will be more willing to listen. Paul elevates his ministry out of a desire to share the name, grace, and mercy of God.
VERSE 1. Paul, an apostle, (not of men, etc.)
VERSE 1. Paul, an apostle, (not appointed by humans, etc.)
Paul loses no time in defending himself against the charge that he had thrust himself into the ministry. He says to the Galatians: "My call may seem inferior to you. But those who have come to you are either called of men or by man. My call is the highest possible, for it is by Jesus Christ, and God the Father."
Paul quickly defends himself against the accusation that he forced his way into the ministry. He tells the Galatians: "You might think my calling is lesser. But those who’ve come to you were either called by people or through human means. My calling is the greatest possible because it comes from Jesus Christ and God the Father."
When Paul speaks of those called "by men," I take it he means those whom neither God nor man sent, but who go wherever they like and speak for themselves.
When Paul talks about those called "by men," I think he means those who weren't sent by God or anyone else, but who go wherever they want and speak for themselves.
When Paul speaks of those called "by man" I take it he means those who have a divine call extended to them through other persons. God calls in two ways. Either He calls ministers through the agency of men, or He calls them directly as He called the prophets and apostles. Paul declares that the false apostles were called or sent neither by men, nor by man. The most they could claim is that they were sent by others. "But as for me I was called neither of men, nor by man, but directly by Jesus Christ. My call is in every respect like the call of the apostles. In fact I am an apostle."
When Paul refers to those who are called "by man," I believe he means those who receive a divine calling through other people. God calls in two ways. Either He calls ministers through the actions of others, or He calls them directly, like He did with the prophets and apostles. Paul states that the false apostles were neither called nor sent by men. The most they could say is that they were sent by others. "But as for me, I was called neither by men nor through man, but directly by Jesus Christ. My calling is just like that of the apostles. In fact, I am an apostle."
Elsewhere Paul draws a sharp distinction between an apostleship and lesser functions, as in I Corinthians 12:28: "And God hath set some in the church; first, apostles; secondarily, prophets; thirdly, teachers." He mentions the apostles first because they were appointed directly by God.
Elsewhere, Paul makes a clear distinction between apostleship and lesser roles, as seen in 1 Corinthians 12:28: "And God has placed some in the church; first, apostles; second, prophets; third, teachers." He lists the apostles first because they were appointed directly by God.
Matthias was called in this manner. The apostles chose two candidates and then cast lots, praying that God would indicate which one He would have. To be an apostle he had to have his appointment from God. In the same manner Paul was called as the apostle of the Gentiles.
Matthias was called this way. The apostles picked two candidates and then cast lots, praying that God would show them which one He wanted. To be an apostle, he needed to be appointed by God. Similarly, Paul was called to be the apostle to the Gentiles.
The call is not to be taken lightly. For a person to possess knowledge is not enough. He must be sure that he is properly called. Those who operate without a proper call seek no good purpose. God does not bless their labors. They may be good preachers, but they do not edify. Many of the fanatics of our day pronounce words of faith, but they bear no good fruit, because their purpose is to turn men to their perverse opinions. On the other hand, those who have a divine call must suffer a good deal of opposition in order that they may become fortified against the running attacks of the devil and the world.
The call shouldn’t be taken lightly. It’s not enough for someone to just have knowledge; they need to be sure they’re genuinely called. Those who act without a proper call don’t serve a real purpose, and God doesn’t bless their efforts. They might be good speakers, but they don’t uplift others. Many of today’s fanatics talk about faith, but they don’t produce good results because their goal is to lead people to their twisted views. In contrast, those who are truly called by God often face a lot of opposition so they can be strengthened against the constant attacks from evil and the world.
This is our comfort in the ministry, that ours is a divine office to which we have been divinely called. Reversely, what an awful thing it must be for the conscience if one is not properly called. It spoils one's best work. When I was a young man I thought Paul was making too much of his call. I did not understand his purpose. I did not then realize the importance of the ministry. I knew nothing of the doctrine of faith because we were taught sophistry instead of certainty, and nobody understood spiritual boasting. We exalt our calling, not to gain glory among men, or money, or satisfaction, or favor, but because people need to be assured that the words we speak are the words of God. This is no sinful pride. It is holy pride.
This is our comfort in the ministry: we’re in a divine role that we’ve been called to. On the other hand, it must be terrible for one’s conscience if they aren't genuinely called. It taints one’s best efforts. When I was younger, I thought Paul was overemphasizing his calling. I didn’t get his purpose back then. I didn’t understand the significance of the ministry. I had no knowledge of the doctrine of faith because we were taught confusing arguments instead of certainty, and no one understood spiritual pride. We elevate our calling, not for glory among people, or for money, or for personal satisfaction, or for approval, but because people need to be confident that the words we speak are truly the words of God. This isn’t sinful pride. It’s a holy pride.
VERSE 1. And God the Father, who raised him from the dead.
VERSE 1. And God the Father, who brought him back to life.
Paul is so eager to come to the subject matter of his epistle, the righteousness of faith in opposition to the righteousness of works, that already in the title he must speak his mind. He did not think it quite enough to say that he was an apostle "by Jesus Christ"; he adds, "and God the Father, who raised him from the dead."
Paul is so eager to dive into the topic of his letter, the righteousness of faith versus the righteousness of works, that he makes his point right from the title. He didn’t just want to say he was an apostle “by Jesus Christ”; he adds, “and God the Father, who raised him from the dead.”
The clause seems superfluous on first sight. Yet Paul had a good reason for adding it. He had to deal with Satan and his agents who endeavored to deprive him of the righteousness of Christ, who was raised by God the Father from the dead. These perverters of the righteousness of Christ resist the Father and the Son, and the works of them both.
The clause seems unnecessary at first glance. However, Paul had a valid reason for including it. He had to confront Satan and his followers who tried to strip him of the righteousness of Christ, who was raised by God the Father from the dead. These distorters of Christ's righteousness oppose both the Father and the Son, along with their works.
In this whole epistle Paul treats of the resurrection of Christ. By His resurrection Christ won the victory over law, sin, flesh, world, devil, death, hell, and every evil. And this His victory He donated unto us. These many tyrants and enemies of ours may accuse and frighten us, but they dare not condemn us, for Christ, whom God the Father has raised from the dead is our righteousness and our victory.
In this entire letter, Paul discusses the resurrection of Christ. Through His resurrection, Christ achieved victory over the law, sin, the flesh, the world, the devil, death, hell, and all evil. And He gifted us this victory. These many tyrants and enemies may accuse and intimidate us, but they cannot condemn us, because Christ, whom God the Father raised from the dead, is our righteousness and our victory.
Do you notice how well suited to his purpose Paul writes? He does not say, "By God who made heaven and earth, who is Lord of the angels," but Paul has in mind the righteousness of Christ, and speaks to the point, saying, "I am an apostle, not of men, neither by man, but by Jesus Christ, and God the Father, who raised him from the dead."
Do you see how well Paul expresses his intentions? He doesn’t say, “By God who created heaven and earth, who is the Lord of the angels,” but instead focuses on the righteousness of Christ, stating simply, “I am an apostle, not appointed by humans, nor through a human, but by Jesus Christ and God the Father, who raised him from the dead.”
VERSE 2. And all the brethren which are with me.
VERSE 2. And all the brothers who are with me.
This should go far in shutting the mouths of the false apostles. Paul's intention is to exalt his own ministry while discrediting theirs. He adds for good measure the argument that he does not stand alone, but that all the brethren with him attest to the fact that his doctrine is divinely true. "Although the brethren with me are not apostles like myself, yet they are all of one mind with me, think, write, and teach as I do."
This should do a lot to silence the false apostles. Paul's goal is to elevate his own ministry while undermining theirs. He also points out that he’s not alone in this; all the brothers with him confirm that his teachings are truly divine. "Even though the brothers with me aren't apostles like I am, they all think, write, and teach the same way I do."
VERSE 2. Unto the churches of Galatia.
VERSE 2. To the churches of Galatia.
Paul had preached the Gospel throughout Galatia, founding many churches which after his departure were invaded by the false apostles. The Anabaptists in our time imitate the false apostles. They do not go where the enemies of the Gospel predominate. They go where the Christians are. Why do they not invade the Catholic provinces and preach their doctrine to godless princes, bishops, and doctors, as we have done by the help of God? These soft martyrs take no chances. They go where the Gospel has a hold, so that they may not endanger their lives. The false apostles would not go to Jerusalem of Caiaphas, or to the Rome of the Emperor, or to any other place where no man had preached before as Paul and the other apostles did. But they came to the churches of Galatia, knowing that where men profess the name of Christ they may feel secure.
Paul preached the Gospel all over Galatia, starting many churches that, after he left, were targeted by false apostles. The Anabaptists today mimic these false apostles. They don’t go where the enemies of the Gospel are in charge. Instead, they target areas where Christians are present. Why don’t they go into Catholic regions and share their beliefs with ungodly rulers, bishops, and scholars, as we have done with God’s help? These timid martyrs avoid risks. They stick to places where the Gospel is already established so they don’t put their lives in danger. The false apostles wouldn’t go to Caiaphas's Jerusalem, or the Emperor's Rome, or anywhere else that hadn’t already heard preaching like Paul and the other apostles did. Instead, they went to the churches in Galatia, knowing that where people profess the name of Christ, they might feel safe.
It is the lot of God's ministers not only to suffer opposition at the hand of a wicked world, but also to see the patient indoctrination of many years quickly undone by such religious fanatics. This hurts more than the persecution of tyrants. We are treated shabbily on the outside by tyrants, on the inside by those whom we have restored to the liberty of the Gospel, and also by false brethren. But this is our comfort and our glory, that being called of God we have the promise of everlasting life. We look for that reward which "eye hath not seen, nor ear heard, neither hath entered into the heart of man."
God's ministers not only face opposition from a wicked world but also watch years of careful teaching quickly unraveled by religious fanatics. This is more painful than the persecution from tyrants. We’re treated poorly on the outside by tyrants and on the inside by those we've helped find freedom in the Gospel, as well as by false friends. But our comfort and glory come from knowing that as we are called by God, we have the promise of eternal life. We look forward to that reward which "eye has not seen, nor ear heard, nor has it entered into the heart of man."
Jerome raises the question why Paul called them churches that were no churches, inasmuch as the Galatians had forsaken the grace of Christ for the law of Moses. The proper answer is: Although the Galatians had fallen away from the doctrine of Paul, baptism, the Gospel, and the name of Christ continued among them. Not all the Galatians had become perverted. There were some who clung to the right view of the Word and the Sacraments. These means cannot be contaminated. They remain divine regardless of men's opinion. Wherever the means of grace are found, there is the Holy Church, even though Antichrist reigns there. So much for the title of the epistle. Now follows the greeting of the apostle.
Jerome questions why Paul referred to them as churches when they really weren’t, since the Galatians had turned away from the grace of Christ to follow the law of Moses. The proper response is: Even though the Galatians strayed from Paul’s teachings, baptism, the Gospel, and the name of Christ still existed among them. Not all the Galatians had become corrupt. Some held on to the true understanding of the Word and the Sacraments. These means cannot be tainted; they remain divine no matter what people think. Wherever the means of grace are present, there is the Holy Church, even if Antichrist is in charge. That covers the title of the epistle. Now comes the apostle’s greeting.
VERSE 3. Grace be to you, and peace, from God the Father, and from our Lord Jesus Christ.
VERSE 3. Grace and peace to you from God the Father and our Lord Jesus Christ.
The terms of grace and peace are common terms with Paul and are now pretty well understood. But since we are explaining this epistle, you will not mind if we repeat what we have so often explained elsewhere. The article of justification must be sounded in our ears incessantly because the frailty of our flesh will not permit us to take hold of it perfectly and to believe it with all our heart.
The concepts of grace and peace are familiar phrases used by Paul and are generally understood today. However, since we are discussing this letter, I hope you won’t mind if we reiterate what we’ve often explained before. The idea of justification needs to be repeated continually because our human weakness makes it difficult for us to fully grasp it and believe in it wholeheartedly.
The greeting of the Apostle is refreshing. Grace remits sin, and peace quiets the conscience. Sin and conscience torment us, but Christ has overcome these fiends now and forever. Only Christians possess this victorious knowledge given from above. These two terms, grace and peace, constitute Christianity. Grace involves the remission of sins, peace, and a happy conscience. Sin is not canceled by lawful living, for no person is able to live up to the Law. The Law reveals guilt, fills the conscience with terror, and drives men to despair. Much less is sin taken away by man-invented endeavors. The fact is, the more a person seeks credit for himself by his own efforts, the deeper he goes into debt. Nothing can take away sin except the grace of God. In actual living, however, it is not so easy to persuade oneself that by grace alone, in opposition to every other means, we obtain the forgiveness of our sins and peace with God.
The Apostle’s greeting is refreshing. Grace forgives sin, and peace calms the conscience. Sin and conscience disturb us, but Christ has defeated these enemies now and forever. Only Christians have this victorious knowledge granted from above. These two concepts, grace and peace, are the essence of Christianity. Grace means forgiveness of sins, peace, and a clear conscience. Sin isn't erased by following the law, as no one can fully live up to it. The law reveals guilt, fills the conscience with fear, and drives people to despair. Even more so, sin isn't removed by human efforts. In fact, the more someone tries to earn credit for themselves through their own efforts, the more they end up in debt. Only the grace of God can remove sin. In reality, however, it’s not easy to convince oneself that it’s only through grace, and not through any other means, that we receive forgiveness for our sins and peace with God.
The world brands this a pernicious doctrine. The world advances free will, the rational and natural approach of good works, as the means of obtaining the forgiveness of sin. But it is impossible to gain peace of conscience by the methods and means of the world. Experience proves this. Various holy orders have been launched for the purpose of securing peace of conscience through religious exercises, but they proved failures because such devices only increase doubt and despair. We find no rest for our weary bones unless we cling to the word of grace.
The world calls this a harmful belief. The world promotes free will, the rational and natural way of doing good deeds, as the path to earning forgiveness for sins. But it's impossible to find peace of mind through worldly methods. Experience shows this. Various religious orders have been established to achieve peace of mind through spiritual practices, but they have failed because these tactics only heighten doubt and despair. We find no solace for our tired souls unless we hold on to the word of grace.
The Apostle does not wish the Galatians grace and peace from the emperor, or from kings, or from governors, but from God the Father. He wishes them heavenly peace, the kind of which Jesus spoke when He said, "Peace I leave unto you: my peace I give unto you." Worldly peace provides quiet enjoyment of life and possessions. But in affliction, particularly in the hour of death, the grace and peace of the world will not deliver us. However, the grace and peace of God will. They make a person strong and courageous to bear and to overcome all difficulties, even death itself, because we have the victory of Christ's death and the assurance of the forgiveness of our sins.
The Apostle doesn't want the Galatians to receive grace and peace from the emperor, kings, or governors, but from God the Father. He desires for them to have heavenly peace, like what Jesus meant when He said, "Peace I leave with you: my peace I give to you." Worldly peace brings a quiet enjoyment of life and material things. But in times of trouble, especially at the moment of death, the grace and peace of this world won't save us. However, the grace and peace of God will. They give a person strength and courage to endure and overcome all challenges, even death itself, because we have the victory of Christ's death and the promise of our sins being forgiven.
Men Should Not Speculate About the Nature of God
Men Shouldn't Guess About the Nature of God
The Apostle adds to the salutation the words, "and from our Lord Jesus Christ." Was it not enough to say, "from God the Father"?
The Apostle adds to the greeting the words, "and from our Lord Jesus Christ." Was it not enough to just say, "from God the Father"?
It is a principle of the Bible that we are not to inquire curiously into the nature of God. "There shall no man see me, and live," Exodus 33:20. All who trust in their own merits to save them disregard this principle and lose sight of the Mediator, Jesus Christ.
It’s a principle of the Bible that we shouldn’t pry into the nature of God. "No one shall see me and live," Exodus 33:20. Those who rely on their own merits for salvation ignore this principle and overlook the Mediator, Jesus Christ.
True Christian theology does not inquire into the nature of God, but into God's purpose and will in Christ, whom God incorporated in our flesh to live and to die for our sins. There is nothing more dangerous than to speculate about the incomprehensible power, wisdom, and majesty of God when the conscience is in turmoil over sin. To do so is to lose God altogether because God becomes intolerable when we seek to measure and to comprehend His infinite majesty.
True Christian theology doesn't ask about what God is like, but instead focuses on God's purpose and will in Christ, who was made human to live and die for our sins. There's nothing more dangerous than speculating about God's incomprehensible power, wisdom, and greatness when our conscience is troubled by sin. Doing so causes us to lose sight of God completely, because God becomes unbearable when we try to measure and understand His infinite greatness.
We are to seek God as Paul tells us in I Corinthians 1:23, 24: "We preach Christ crucified, unto the Jews a stumbling block, and unto the Greeks foolishness; but unto them which are called, both Jews and Greeks, Christ the power of God, and the wisdom of God." Begin with Christ. He came down to earth, lived among men, suffered, was crucified, and then He died, standing clearly before us, so that our hearts and eyes may fasten upon Him. Thus we shall be kept from climbing into heaven in a curious and futile search after the nature of God.
We are to seek God as Paul tells us in I Corinthians 1:23, 24: "We preach Christ crucified, a stumbling block to the Jews and foolishness to the Greeks; but to those who are called, both Jews and Greeks, Christ is the power of God and the wisdom of God." Start with Christ. He came to earth, lived among people, suffered, was crucified, and then He died, standing clearly before us, so that our hearts and eyes may focus on Him. This way, we will be kept from trying to climb into heaven in a curious and pointless pursuit of understanding the nature of God.
If you ask how God may be found, who justifies sinners, know that there is no other God besides this man Christ Jesus. Embrace Him, and forget about the nature of God. But these fanatics who exclude our Mediator in their dealings with God, do not believe me. Did not Christ Himself say: "I am the way, and the truth, and the life: no man cometh unto the Father, but by me"? Without Christ there is no access to the Father, but futile rambling; no truth, but hypocrisy; no life, but eternal death.
If you’re wondering how to find God, the one who forgives sinners, know that there’s no other God except this man, Christ Jesus. Accept Him, and set aside any misconceptions about God’s nature. But those fanatics who leave out our Mediator when approaching God won’t believe me. Didn’t Christ Himself say: "I am the way, the truth, and the life: no one comes to the Father except through me"? Without Christ, there’s no access to the Father, just pointless chatter; no truth, only hypocrisy; no life, just eternal death.
When you argue about the nature of God apart from the question of justification, you may be as profound as you like. But when you deal with conscience and with righteousness over against the law, sin, death, and the devil, you must close your mind to all inquiries into the nature of God, and concentrate upon Jesus Christ, who says, "Come unto me, all ye that labor and are heavy laden, and I will give you rest." Doing this, you will recognize the power, and majesty condescending to your condition according to Paul's statement to the Colossians, "In Christ are hid all the treasures of wisdom and knowledge," and, "In him dwelleth all the fulness of the Godhead bodily." Paul in wishing grace and peace not alone from God the Father, but also from Jesus Christ, wants to warn us against the curious incursions into the nature of God. We are to hear Christ, who has been appointed by the Father as our divine Teacher.
When you discuss the nature of God without considering justification, you can be as deep as you want. But when you focus on conscience and righteousness in relation to the law, sin, death, and the devil, you need to set aside all questions about the nature of God and focus on Jesus Christ, who invites us, "Come to me, all you who are weary and burdened, and I will give you rest." By doing this, you'll see the power and greatness that meets you where you are, in line with Paul's words to the Colossians, "In Christ are hidden all the treasures of wisdom and knowledge," and, "In him dwells all the fullness of the Godhead in bodily form." Paul, in wishing grace and peace not only from God the Father but also from Jesus Christ, aims to caution us against prying into the nature of God. We are meant to listen to Christ, who has been appointed by the Father as our divine Teacher.
Christ is God by Nature
Christ is God by nature
At the same time, Paul confirms our creed, "that Christ is very God." We need such frequent confirmation of our faith, for Satan will not fail to attack it. He hates our faith. He knows that it is the victory which overcometh him and the world. That Christ is very God is apparent in that Paul ascribes to Him divine powers equally with the Father, as for instance, the power to dispense grace and peace. This Jesus could not do unless He were God.
At the same time, Paul affirms our belief that "Christ is truly God." We need this constant reaffirmation of our faith because Satan will always try to challenge it. He despises our faith. He knows it is the victory that defeats him and the world. It's clear that Christ is truly God since Paul attributes divine powers to Him just like the Father, such as the ability to grant grace and peace. Jesus couldn’t do this unless He were God.
To bestow peace and grace lies in the province of God, who alone can create these blessings. The angels cannot. The apostles could only distribute these blessings by the preaching of the Gospel. In attributing to Christ the divine power of creating and giving grace, peace, everlasting life, righteousness, and forgiveness of sins, the conclusion is inevitable that Christ is truly God. Similarly, St. John concludes from the works attributed to the Father and the Son that they are divinely One. Hence, the gifts which we receive from the Father and from the Son are one and the same. Otherwise Paul should have written: "Grace from God the Father, and peace from our Lord Jesus Christ." In combining them he ascribes them equally to the Father and the Son. I stress this on account of the many errors emanating from the sects.
To give peace and grace is something only God can do, as He alone can create these blessings. The angels can't do it, and the apostles could only spread these blessings through preaching the Gospel. By recognizing that Christ has the divine power to create and give grace, peace, eternal life, righteousness, and forgiveness of sins, it's clear that Christ is truly God. Similarly, St. John concludes from the works attributed to both the Father and the Son that they are divinely One. Therefore, the gifts we receive from the Father and the Son are the same. Otherwise, Paul would have said, "Grace from God the Father, and peace from our Lord Jesus Christ." By combining them, he attributes them equally to the Father and the Son. I'm emphasizing this because of the many mistakes that have come from different sects.
The Arians were sharp fellows. Admitting that Christ had two natures, and that He is called "very God of very God," they were yet able to deny His divinity. The Arians took Christ for a noble and perfect creature, superior even to the angels, because by Him God created heaven and earth. Mohammed also speaks highly of Christ. But all their praise is mere palaver to deceive men. Paul's language is different. To paraphrase him: "You are established in this belief that Christ is very God because He gives grace and peace, gifts which only God can create and bestow."
The Arians were clever individuals. They acknowledged that Christ had two natures and that He is referred to as "very God of very God," yet they were still able to deny His divinity. The Arians viewed Christ as a noble and perfect being, even greater than the angels, because God created heaven and earth through Him. Mohammed also speaks highly of Christ. But all their praise is just empty talk meant to mislead people. Paul's perspective is different. To paraphrase him: "You are firm in your belief that Christ is very God because He provides grace and peace, gifts that only God can create and give."
VERSE 4. Who gave himself for our sins.
VERSE 4. Who sacrificed himself for our sins.
Paul sticks to his theme. He never loses sight of the purpose of his epistle. He does not say, "Who received our works," but "who gave." Gave what? Not gold, or silver, or paschal lambs, or an angel, but Himself. What for? Not for a crown, or a kingdom, or our goodness, but for our sins. These words are like so many thunderclaps of protest from heaven against every kind and type of self-merit. Underscore these words, for they are full of comfort for sore consciences.
Paul stays focused on his main message. He never loses sight of the purpose of his letter. He doesn’t say, "Who received our works," but "who gave." Gave what? Not gold, silver, Passover lambs, or an angel, but Himself. What for? Not for a crown, a kingdom, or because of our goodness, but for our sins. These words are like powerful protests from heaven against any notion of self-worth. Emphasize these words, as they offer great comfort to troubled consciences.
How may we obtain remission of our sins? Paul answers: "The man who is named Jesus Christ and the Son of God gave himself for our sins." The heavy artillery of these words explodes papacy, works, merits, superstitions. For if our sins could be removed by our own efforts, what need was there for the Son of God to be given for them? Since Christ was given for our sins it stands to reason that they cannot be put away by our own efforts.
How can we be forgiven for our sins? Paul answers: "The man named Jesus Christ, the Son of God, sacrificed himself for our sins." The powerful impact of these words dismantles the papacy, works, merits, and superstitions. If we could erase our sins through our own efforts, why would the Son of God need to be sacrificed for them? Since Christ was given for our sins, it follows that we cannot get rid of them by our own efforts.
This sentence also defines our sins as great, so great, in fact, that the whole world could not make amends for a single sin. The greatness of the ransom, Christ, the Son of God, indicates this. The vicious character of sin is brought out by the words "who gave himself for our sins." So vicious is sin that only the sacrifice of Christ could atone for sin. When we reflect that the one little word "sin" embraces the whole kingdom of Satan, and that it includes everything that is horrible, we have reason to tremble. But we are careless. We make light of sin. We think that by some little work or merit we can dismiss sin.
This sentence also defines our sins as serious, so serious, in fact, that the entire world couldn’t pay for even one sin. The immense sacrifice of Christ, the Son of God, shows this. The terrible nature of sin is highlighted by the phrase "who gave himself for our sins." Sin is so bad that only Christ’s sacrifice could atone for it. When we consider that the small word "sin" represents the entire realm of Satan and everything terrible, we have every reason to feel afraid. But we are indifferent. We underestimate sin. We believe that with some small action or good deed, we can disregard sin.
This passage, then, bears out the fact that all men are sold under sin. Sin is an exacting despot who can be vanquished by no created power, but by the sovereign power of Jesus Christ alone.
This passage shows that everyone is trapped in sin. Sin is a demanding ruler that can't be defeated by any human strength, but only by the supreme power of Jesus Christ.
All this is of wonderful comfort to a conscience troubled by the enormity of sin. Sin cannot harm those who believe in Christ, because He has overcome sin by His death. Armed with this conviction, we are enlightened and may pass judgment upon the papists, monks, nuns, priests, Mohammedans, Anabaptists, and all who trust in their own merits, as wicked and destructive sects that rob God and Christ of the honor that belongs to them alone.
All of this is incredibly comforting to a conscience troubled by the weight of sin. Sin cannot harm those who believe in Christ because He has conquered sin through His death. With this belief, we gain understanding and can critique the Catholics, monks, nuns, priests, Muslims, Anabaptists, and anyone who relies on their own merits as misguided and harmful groups that take away the honor that rightfully belongs to God and Christ alone.
Note especially the pronoun "our" and its significance. You will readily grant that Christ gave Himself for the sins of Peter, Paul, and others who were worthy of such grace. But feeling low, you find it hard to believe that Christ gave Himself for your sins. Our feelings shy at a personal application of the pronoun "our" and we refuse to have anything to do with God until we have made ourselves worthy by good deeds.
Note especially the pronoun "our" and what it means. You will easily agree that Christ gave Himself for the sins of Peter, Paul, and others who deserved such grace. But when you're feeling down, you struggle to believe that Christ gave Himself for your sins. Our feelings hesitate at personally applying the pronoun "our," and we avoid connecting with God until we believe we've earned it through good deeds.
This attitude springs from a false conception of sin, the conception that sin is a small matter, easily taken care of by good works; that we must present ourselves unto God with a good conscience; that we must feel no sin before we may feel that Christ was given for our sins.
This attitude comes from a mistaken idea about sin, the idea that sin is a minor issue, easily fixed by good deeds; that we need to show up before God with a clear conscience; that we shouldn’t feel any guilt before we can believe that Christ was sacrificed for our sins.
This attitude is universal and particularly developed in those who consider themselves better than others. Such readily confess that they are frequent sinners, but they regard their sins as of no such importance that they cannot easily be dissolved by some good action, or that they may not appear before the tribunal of Christ and demand the reward of eternal life for their righteousness. Meantime they pretend great humility and acknowledge a certain degree of sinfulness for which they soulfully join in the publican's prayer, "God be merciful to me a sinner." But the real significance and comfort of the words "for our sins" is lost upon them.
This mindset is common and especially strong in those who think of themselves as superior to others. They often admit to being frequent wrongdoers, but they view their mistakes as so minor that they can easily be wiped away with a good deed, or they believe they can stand before Christ's judgment and expect the reward of eternal life for their goodness. Meanwhile, they put on an act of great humility and acknowledge a certain level of wrongdoing, joining in the publican's prayer, "God, be merciful to me, a sinner." However, they miss the true meaning and reassurance of the words "for our sins."
The genius of Christianity takes the words of Paul "who gave himself for our sins" as true and efficacious. We are not to look upon our sins as insignificant trifles. On the other hand, we are not to regard them as so terrible that we must despair. Learn to believe that Christ was given, not for picayune and imaginary transgressions, but for mountainous sins; not for one or two, but for all; not for sins that can be discarded, but for sins that are stubbornly ingrained.
The brilliance of Christianity takes Paul’s words "who gave himself for our sins" as genuine and effective. We shouldn't view our sins as trivial. On the flip side, we shouldn't see them as so awful that we have to lose hope. Understand that Christ was given, not for minor or imaginary offenses, but for serious sins; not for just a few, but for all; not for sins that can be easily set aside, but for sins that are deeply rooted.
Practice this knowledge and fortify yourself against despair, particularly in the last hour, when the memory of past sins assails the conscience. Say with confidence: "Christ, the Son of God, was given not for the righteous, but for sinners. If I had no sin I should not need Christ. No, Satan, you cannot delude me into thinking I am holy. The truth is, I am all sin. My sins are not imaginary transgressions, but sins against the first table, unbelief, doubt, despair, contempt, hatred, ignorance of God, ingratitude towards Him, misuse of His name, neglect of His Word, etc.; and sins against the second table, dishonor of parents, disobedience of government, coveting of another's possessions, etc. Granted that I have not committed murder, adultery, theft, and similar sins in deed, nevertheless I have committed them in the heart, and therefore I am a transgressor of all the commandments of God.
Practice this knowledge and strengthen yourself against despair, especially in the final moments, when the memories of past sins weigh heavily on your conscience. Say with confidence: "Christ, the Son of God, was given not for the righteous, but for sinners. If I had no sin, I wouldn't need Christ. No, Satan, you can't trick me into thinking I am holy. The truth is, I am full of sin. My sins are not just imaginary mistakes, but real offenses against the first table: unbelief, doubt, despair, contempt, hatred, ignorance of God, ingratitude towards Him, misuse of His name, neglect of His Word, and so on; and sins against the second table: dishonoring my parents, disobeying the government, coveting what others have, etc. Even though I haven't committed murder, adultery, theft, or similar acts, I've still committed them in my heart, and therefore I am a violator of all the commandments of God.
"Because my transgressions are multiplied and my own efforts at self-justification rather a hindrance than a furtherance, therefore Christ the Son of God gave Himself into death for my sins." To believe this is to have eternal life.
"Because my wrongdoings are numerous and my attempts to justify myself only make things worse, Christ the Son of God sacrificed Himself to save me from my sins." Believing this grants eternal life.
Let us equip ourselves against the accusations of Satan with this and similar passages of Holy Scripture. If he says, "Thou shalt be damned," you tell him: "No, for I fly to Christ who gave Himself for my sins. In accusing me of being a damnable sinner, you are cutting your own throat, Satan. You are reminding me of God's fatherly goodness toward me, that He so loved the world that He gave His only-begotten Son that whosoever believeth in Him should not perish, but have everlasting life. In calling me a sinner, Satan, you really comfort me above measure." With such heavenly cunning we are to meet the devil's craft and put from us the memory of sin.
Let’s prepare ourselves against the accusations of Satan with this and similar passages from the Bible. If he says, "You’re going to be condemned," you can respond: "No, because I turn to Christ who gave Himself for my sins. By accusing me of being a sinful person, you’re only harming yourself, Satan. You’re reminding me of God’s loving kindness toward me, that He loved the world so much that He gave His only Son so that whoever believes in Him won’t perish but will have eternal life. By calling me a sinner, Satan, you’re actually comforting me beyond measure." With this kind of spiritual wisdom, we can counter the devil’s tricks and dismiss the memory of sin.
St. Paul also presents a true picture of Christ as the virgin-born Son of God, delivered into death for our sins. To entertain a true conception of Christ is important, for the devil describes Christ as an exacting and cruel judge who condemns and punishes men. Tell him that his definition of Christ is wrong, that Christ has given Himself for our sins, that by His sacrifice He has taken away the sins of the whole world.
St. Paul also offers an accurate depiction of Christ as the virgin-born Son of God, who was sacrificed for our sins. It's essential to have a correct understanding of Christ because the devil portrays Him as a harsh and unforgiving judge who condemns and punishes people. Let him know that his view of Christ is incorrect, as Christ gave Himself for our sins, and through His sacrifice, He has removed the sins of the entire world.
Make ample use of this pronoun "our" Be assured that Christ has canceled the sins, not of certain persons only, but your sins. Do not permit yourself to be robbed of this lovely conception of Christ. Christ is no Moses, no law-giver, no tyrant, but the Mediator for sins, the Giver of grace and life.
Make sure to use the pronoun "our" frequently. Rest assured that Christ has erased the sins, not just of specific individuals, but of your sins too. Don't let anyone take away this beautiful idea of Christ from you. Christ is not Moses, not a law-giver, not a tyrant, but the Mediator for sins, the source of grace and life.
We know this. Yet in the actual conflict with the devil, when he scares us with the Law, when he frightens us with the very person of the Mediator, when he misquotes the words of Christ, and distorts for us our Savior, we so easily lose sight of our sweet High-Priest.
We understand this. However, in the real struggle with the devil, when he intimidates us with the Law, when he terrifies us with the presence of the Mediator, when he misinterprets Christ's words and distorts our view of our Savior, we easily lose focus on our comforting High Priest.
For this reason I am so anxious for you to gain a true picture of Christ out of the words of Paul "who gave himself for our sins." Obviously, Christ is no judge to condemn us, for He gave Himself for our sins. He does not trample the fallen but raises them. He comforts the broken-hearted. Otherwise Paul should lie when he writes "who gave himself for our sins."
For this reason, I really want you to understand the true image of Christ from Paul's words "who gave himself for our sins." Clearly, Christ isn't a judge who condemns us; He sacrificed Himself for our sins. He doesn't crush the fallen, but instead uplifts them. He offers comfort to the broken-hearted. Otherwise, Paul would be lying when he writes "who gave himself for our sins."
I do not bother my head with speculations about the nature of God. I simply attach myself to the human Christ, and I find joy and peace, and the wisdom of God in Him. These are not new truths. I am repeating what the apostles and all teachers of God have taught long ago. Would to God we could impregnate our hearts with these truths.
I don’t get caught up in thinking about what God is like. I just connect with the human Christ, and I discover joy, peace, and God’s wisdom in Him. These aren’t new ideas. I’m echoing what the apostles and all of God’s teachers have shared long ago. I wish we could fill our hearts with these truths.
VERSE 4. That he might deliver us from this present evil world.
VERSE 4. That he might rescue us from this current evil world.
Paul calls this present world evil because everything in it is subject to the malice of the devil, who reigns over the whole world as his domain and fills the air with ignorance, contempt, hatred, and disobedience of God. In this devil's kingdom we live.
Paul refers to this current world as evil because everything in it is under the influence of the devil, who rules over the entire world as his territory and fills the atmosphere with ignorance, disdain, hatred, and disobedience to God. We live in this kingdom of the devil.
As long as a person is in the world he cannot by his own efforts rid himself of sin, because the world is bent upon evil. The people of the world are the slaves of the devil. If we are not in the Kingdom of Christ, it is certain we belong to the kingdom of Satan and we are pressed into his service with every talent we possess.
As long as someone is in the world, they can't free themselves from sin by their own efforts, because the world is full of evil. The people in the world are slaves to the devil. If we aren't in the Kingdom of Christ, then it's clear we belong to the kingdom of Satan, and we're forced into his service with every talent we have.
Take the talents of wisdom and integrity. Without Christ, wisdom is double foolishness and integrity double sin, because they not only fail to perceive the wisdom and righteousness of Christ, but hinder and blaspheme the salvation of Christ. Paul justly calls it the evil or wicked world, for when the world is at its best the world is at its worst. The grossest vices are small faults in comparison with the wisdom and righteousness of the world. These prevent men from accepting the Gospel of the righteousness of Christ. The white devil of spiritual sin is far more dangerous than the black devil of carnal sin because the wiser, the better men are without Christ, the more they are likely to ignore and oppose the Gospel.
Take the qualities of wisdom and integrity. Without Christ, wisdom is foolishness multiplied, and integrity becomes a greater sin because people not only fail to recognize the wisdom and righteousness of Christ but also undermine and disrespect His salvation. Paul rightly refers to it as the evil or wicked world, since when the world is at its best, it’s actually at its worst. The most egregious vices are minor flaws compared to the wisdom and righteousness of society. These flaws prevent people from accepting the Gospel of Christ’s righteousness. The subtle danger of spiritual sin is far worse than the obvious danger of physical sin because the smarter and better people are without Christ, the more likely they are to overlook and resist the Gospel.
With the words, "that he might deliver us," Paul argues that we stand in need of Christ. No other being can possibly deliver us from this present evil world. Do not let the fact disturb you that a great many people enjoy excellent reputations without Christ. Remember what Paul says, that the world with all its wisdom, might, and righteousness is the devil's own. God alone is able to deliver us from the world.
With the phrase, "that he might deliver us," Paul points out that we need Christ. No one else can rescue us from this current evil world. Don't be troubled by the fact that many people have great reputations without Christ. Remember what Paul says: the world, with all its knowledge, power, and righteousness, belongs to the devil. Only God can save us from the world.
Let us praise and thank God for His mercy in delivering us from the captivity of Satan, when we were unable to do so by our own strength. Let us confess with Paul that all our work-righteousness is loss and dung. Let us condemn as filthy rags all talk about free will, all religious orders, masses, ceremonies, vows, fastings, and the like.
Let’s praise and thank God for His mercy in saving us from the grip of Satan, especially when we couldn’t do it on our own. Let’s agree with Paul that all our attempts to earn our way are useless and worthless. Let’s reject as useless any discussions about free will, any religious practices, masses, ceremonies, vows, fasting, and the like.
In branding the world the devil's kingdom of iniquity, ignorance, error, sin, death, and everlasting despair, Paul at the same time declares the Kingdom of Christ to be a kingdom of equity, light, grace, remission of sin, peace, saving health, and everlasting life into which we are translated by our Lord Jesus Christ, to whom be glory forever.
In branding the world as the devil's realm of wickedness, ignorance, falsehood, sin, death, and endless despair, Paul simultaneously proclaims the Kingdom of Christ as a realm of fairness, light, grace, forgiveness of sins, peace, salvation, and eternal life, into which we are brought by our Lord Jesus Christ, to whom be glory forever.
In this passage Paul contends against the false apostles for the article of Justification. Christ, says Paul, has delivered us from this wicked kingdom of the devil and the world according to the good will, the pleasure and commandment of the Father. Hence we are not delivered by our own will, or shrewdness, or wisdom, but by the mercy and love of God, as it is written, I John 4:10, "Herein is love, not that we loved God, but that he loved us, and sent his Son to be the propitiation for our sins."
In this passage, Paul argues against the false apostles regarding justification. Paul says that Christ has rescued us from this evil kingdom of the devil and the world, according to the Father’s will, pleasure, and command. Therefore, we are not saved by our own will, cleverness, or wisdom, but by the mercy and love of God. As it is written in 1 John 4:10, "Herein is love, not that we loved God, but that he loved us and sent his Son to be the sacrifice for our sins."
Another reason why Paul, like John, emphasizes the Father's will is Christ's habit of directing attention to the Father. For Christ came into the world to reconcile God with us and to draw us to the Father.
Another reason why Paul, like John, highlights the Father’s will is because Christ always focused on the Father. Christ came into the world to reconcile us with God and to bring us closer to the Father.
Not by curious inquiries into the nature of God shall we know God and His purpose for our salvation, but by taking hold of Christ, who according to the will of the Father has given Himself into death for our sins. When we understand this to be the will of the Father in Christ, then shall we know God to be merciful, and not angry. We shall realize that He loved us wretched sinners so much indeed that He gave us His only-begotten Son into death for us.
Not by asking endless questions about the nature of God will we understand Him and His purpose for our salvation, but by embracing Christ, who, according to the Father's will, sacrificed Himself for our sins. When we recognize this as the Father's will in Christ, we will come to see God as merciful rather than angry. We’ll understand that He loved us, wretched sinners, so much that He gave His only Son to die for us.
The pronoun "our" refers to both God and Father. He is our God and our Father. Christ's Father and our Father are one and the same. Hence Christ said to Mary Magdalene: "Go to my brethren, and say unto them, I ascend unto my Father, and your Father; and to my God, and your God." God is our Father and our God, but only in Christ Jesus.
The pronoun "our" refers to both God and Father. He is our God and our Father. Christ's Father and our Father are one and the same. So, Christ said to Mary Magdalene: "Go to my brothers and tell them, I am going to my Father and your Father, to my God and your God." God is our Father and our God, but only in Christ Jesus.
VERSE 5. To whom be glory for ever and ever. Amen.
VERSE 5. To whom be glory forever and ever. Amen.
Hebrew writing is interspersed with expressions of praise and gratitude. This peculiarity can be traced in the apostolic writings, particularly in those of Paul. The name of the Lord is to be mentioned with great reverence and thanksgiving.
Hebrew writing includes a lot of expressions of praise and gratitude. This aspect can be seen in the apostolic writings, especially those of Paul. The name of the Lord should be mentioned with deep respect and thankfulness.
VERSE 6. I marvel.
I’m amazed.
How patiently Paul deals with his seduced Galatians! He does not pounce on them but, like a father, he fairly excuses their error. With motherly affection he talks to them yet he does it in a way that at the same time he also reproves them. On the other hand, he is highly indignant at the seducers whom he blames for the apostasy of the Galatians. His anger bursts forth in elemental fury at the beginning of his epistle. "If any may," he cries, "preach any other gospel unto you than that ye have received, let him be accursed." Later on, in the fifth chapter, he threatens the false apostles with damnation. "He that troubleth you shall bear his judgment, whosoever he be." He pronounces a curse upon them. "I would they were even cut off which trouble you."
How patiently Paul deals with his misled Galatians! He doesn’t lash out at them but, like a father, he gently excuses their mistakes. With a motherly affection, he speaks to them, but at the same time, he also corrects them. On the contrary, he is deeply angry at the deceivers whom he holds responsible for the Galatians’ turning away. His anger erupts with fierce intensity at the start of his letter. "If anyone," he exclaims, "preaches any other gospel to you than what you have received, let him be cursed." Later, in the fifth chapter, he threatens the false apostles with punishment. "Whoever disturbs you will face judgment, no matter who they are." He pronounces a curse upon them. "I wish those who unsettle you would be cut off."
He might have addressed the Galatians after this fashion: "I am ashamed of you. Your ingratitude grieves me. I am angry with you." But his purpose was to call them back to the Gospel. With this purpose in his mind he speaks very gently to them. He could not have chosen a milder expression than this, "I marvel." It indicates his sorrow and his displeasure.
He might have said to the Galatians something like, "I'm embarrassed for you. Your lack of gratitude hurts me. I'm upset with you." But his goal was to bring them back to the Gospel. Keeping this in mind, he speaks to them very gently. He couldn't have picked a softer expression than "I marvel." It shows his sadness and disappointment.
Paul minds the rule which he himself lays down in a later chapter where he says: "Brethren, if a man be overtaken in a fault, ye which are spiritual, restore such an one in the spirit of meekness; considering thyself, lest thou also be tempted." Toward those who have been misled we are to show ourselves parentally affectionate, so that they may perceive that we seek not their destruction but their salvation. Over against the devil and his missionaries, the authors of false doctrines and sects, we ought to be like the Apostle, impatient, and rigorously condemnatory, as parents are with the dog that bites their little one, but the weeping child itself they soothe.
Paul follows the rule he sets out in a later chapter where he says: "Brothers, if someone is caught in a fault, you who are spiritual should restore them gently, watching yourself so that you won’t be tempted." When dealing with those who have been misled, we should show a caring attitude, so they can see that our intention is not to destroy them but to help them find salvation. Against the devil and his followers, the creators of false teachings and sects, we should be like the Apostle, quick to criticize and condemn, just as parents are with a dog that bites their child, but they comfort the crying child.
The right spirit in Paul supplies him with an extraordinary facility in handling the afflicted consciences of the fallen. The Pope and his bishops, inspired by the desire to lord it over men's souls, crack out thunders and curses upon miserable consciences. They have no care for the saving of men's souls. They are interested only in maintaining their position.
The right mindset in Paul gives him an amazing ability to support the troubled consciences of the fallen. The Pope and his bishops, motivated by the desire to control people's souls, unleash threats and curses on these miserable consciences. They don't care about saving people's souls. They only care about holding onto their power.
VERSE 6. That ye are so soon.
VERSE 6. That you are so quick.
Paul deplores the fact that it is difficult for the mind to retain a sound and steadfast faith. A man labors for a decade before he succeeds in training his little church into orderly religion, and then some ignorant and vicious poltroon comes along to overthrow in a minute the patient labor of years. By the grace of God we have effected here in Wittenberg the form of a Christian church. The Word of God is taught as it should be, the Sacraments are administered, and everything is prosperous. This happy condition, secured by many years of arduous labors, some lunatic might spoil in a moment. This happened in the churches of Galatia which Paul had brought into life in spiritual travail. Soon after his departure, however, these Galatian churches were thrown into confusion by the false apostles.
Paul regrets that it’s tough for the mind to hold onto a solid and unwavering faith. A person works for ten years to build their small church into a well-ordered community, and then some ignorant and cowardly person can come along and destroy the hard work of years in just a minute. By the grace of God, we have established here in Wittenberg the foundation of a Christian church. The Word of God is taught correctly, the Sacraments are administered, and everything is going well. This fortunate situation, achieved through many years of hard work, could be ruined in an instant by some crazy person. This is what happened in the churches of Galatia, which Paul had nurtured through spiritual struggle. Shortly after he left, however, these Galatian churches were thrown into chaos by false apostles.
The church is a tender plant. It must be watched. People hear a couple of sermons, scan a few pages of Holy Writ, and think they know it all. They are bold because they have never gone through any trials of faith. Void of the Holy Spirit, they teach what they please as long as it sounds good to the common people who are ever ready to join something new.
The church is a delicate thing. It needs careful attention. People listen to a few sermons, glance through some scriptures, and believe they understand everything. They feel confident because they've never faced real struggles of faith. Lacking the Holy Spirit, they share whatever ideas they want as long as it appeals to the average person who is always eager to be part of something fresh.
We have to watch out for the devil lest he sow tares among the wheat while we sleep. No sooner had Paul turned his back on the churches of Galatia, than the false apostles went to work. Therefore, let us watch over ourselves and over the whole church.
We need to be careful of the devil so he doesn't plant weeds among the wheat while we’re not paying attention. As soon as Paul left the churches in Galatia, the false apostles started their work. So, let’s keep an eye on ourselves and the entire church.
VERSE 6. I marvel that ye are so soon removed.
VERSE 6. I’m amazed that you have changed so quickly.
Again the Apostle puts in a gentle word. He does not berate the Galatians, "I marvel that ye are so unsteady, unfaithful." He says, "I marvel that ye are so soon removed." He does not address them as evildoers. He speaks to them as people who have suffered great loss. He condemns those who removed them rather than the Galatians. At the same time he gently reproves them for permitting themselves to be removed. The criticism is implied that they should have been rather a little more settled in their beliefs. If they had taken better hold of the Word they could not have been removed so easily.
Again, the Apostle uses gentle words. He doesn't scold the Galatians, saying, "I'm amazed that you're so unstable and untrustworthy." Instead, he says, "I'm amazed that you have turned away so quickly." He doesn't call them wrongdoers but talks to them as people who have experienced significant loss. He condemns those who led them astray rather than the Galatians themselves. At the same time, he gently points out that they allowed themselves to be swayed. The criticism suggests that they should have been a bit more firm in their beliefs. If they had held on more tightly to the Word, they wouldn't have been led away so easily.
Jerome thinks that Paul is playing upon the name Galatians, deriving it from the Hebrew word Galath, which means fallen or carried away, as though Paul wanted to say, "You are true Galatians, i.e., fallen away in name and in fact." Some believe that the Germans are descended from the Galatians. There may be something to that. For the Germans are not unlike the Galatians in their lack of constancy. At first we Germans are very enthusiastic, but presently our emotions cool and we become slack. When the light of the Gospel first came to us many were zealous, heard sermons greedily, and held the ministry of God's Word in high esteem. But now that religion has been reformed, many who formerly were such earnest disciples have discarded the Word of God, have become sow-bellies like the foolish and inconsistent Galatians.
Jerome thinks that Paul is playing with the name Galatians, suggesting it comes from the Hebrew word Galath, which means fallen or carried away, as if Paul wanted to say, "You are true Galatians, meaning fallen away in both name and reality." Some people believe that the Germans are descendants of the Galatians. There might be some truth to that. The Germans are somewhat similar to the Galatians in their inconsistency. At first, we Germans are very enthusiastic, but soon our enthusiasm fades and we become complacent. When the light of the Gospel first reached us, many were zealous, eagerly listened to sermons, and held the ministry of God's Word in high regard. But now that religion has been reformed, many who used to be such dedicated followers have turned away from the Word of God, becoming lazy like the foolish and inconsistent Galatians.
VERSE 6. From him that called you into the grace of Christ.
VERSE 6. From the one who called you into the grace of Christ.
The reading is a little doubtful. The sentence may be construed to read: "From that Christ that called you into grace"; or it may be construed to read: "From God that called you into the grace of Christ." I prefer the former for it seems to me that Paul's purpose is to impress upon us the benefits of Christ. This reading also preserves the implied criticism that the Galatians withdrew themselves from that Christ who had called them not unto the law, but unto grace. With Paul we decry the blindness and perverseness of men in that they will not receive the message of grace and salvation, or having received it they quickly let go of it, in spite of the fact that the Gospel bestows all good things spiritual: forgiveness of sins, true righteousness, peace of conscience, everlasting life; and all good things temporal: good judgment, good government and peace.
The reading is a bit unclear. The sentence could be interpreted as: "From the Christ who called you into grace"; or it could be interpreted as: "From God who called you into the grace of Christ." I prefer the first option because it seems to me that Paul's goal is to highlight the benefits of Christ. This interpretation also maintains the implicit criticism that the Galatians turned away from the Christ who called them not to the law, but to grace. Like Paul, we lament the blindness and stubbornness of people who refuse to accept the message of grace and salvation, or who, after accepting it, quickly abandon it, despite the fact that the Gospel brings all good spiritual things: forgiveness of sins, true righteousness, peace of mind, everlasting life; as well as all good earthly things: wise judgment, good governance, and peace.
Why does the world abhor the glad tidings of the Gospel and the blessings that go with it? Because the world is the devil's. Under his direction the world persecutes the Gospel and would if it could nail again Christ, the Son of God, to the Cross although He gave Himself into death for the sins of the world. The world dwells in darkness. The world is darkness.
Why does the world hate the good news of the Gospel and the blessings that come with it? Because the world belongs to the devil. Under his influence, the world persecutes the Gospel and would, if it could, crucify Christ, the Son of God, again, even though He gave Himself to death for the sins of the world. The world lives in darkness. The world is darkness.
Paul accentuates the point that the Galatians had been called by Christ unto grace. "I taught you the doctrine of grace and of liberty from the Law, from sin and wrath, that you should be free in Christ, and not slaves to the hard laws of Moses. Will you allow yourselves to be carried away so easily from the living fountain of grace and life?"
Paul emphasizes that the Galatians were called by Christ to experience grace. "I taught you about grace and the freedom from the Law, from sin and judgment, so that you could be free in Christ and not bound by the strict laws of Moses. Will you really let yourselves be swayed so easily from the source of grace and life?"
VERSE 6. Unto another gospel.
VERSE 6. To another gospel.
Note the resourcefulness of the devil. Heretics do not advertise their errors. Murderers, adulterers, thieves disguise themselves. So the devil masquerades all his devices and activities. He puts on white to make himself look like an angel of light. He is astoundingly clever to sell his patent poison for the Gospel of Christ. Knowing Satan's guile, Paul sardonically calls the doctrine of the false apostles "another gospel," as if he would say, "You Galatians have now another gospel, while my Gospel is no longer esteemed by you."
Note the cunning of the devil. Heretics don’t openly reveal their mistakes. Murderers, cheaters, and thieves hide their true nature. Similarly, the devil conceals all his schemes and actions. He dresses in white to appear as an angel of light. He is shockingly smart to sell his toxic ideas as the Gospel of Christ. Aware of Satan's deceit, Paul ironically refers to the teachings of the false apostles as "another gospel," as if to say, "You Galatians now have another gospel, while my Gospel is no longer valued by you."
We infer from this that the false apostles had depreciated the Gospel of Paul among the Galatians on the plea that it was incomplete. Their objection to Paul's Gospel is identical to that recorded in the fifteenth chapter of the Book of Acts to the effect that it was not enough for the Galatians to believe in Christ, or to be baptized, but that it was needful to circumcise them, and to command them to keep the law of Moses, for "except ye be circumcised after the manner of Moses, ye cannot be saved." As though Christ were a workman who had begun a building and left it for Moses to finish.
We can gather from this that the false apostles had criticized Paul's Gospel among the Galatians, claiming it was incomplete. Their complaint about Paul's message is the same as the one noted in the fifteenth chapter of the Book of Acts, which argues that it wasn't enough for the Galatians to believe in Christ or be baptized; they also needed to be circumcised and follow the law of Moses, saying, "unless you are circumcised in the way Moses requires, you cannot be saved." It's as if they suggested that Christ was a builder who started a project but left it up to Moses to complete.
Today the Anabaptists and others, finding it difficult to condemn us, accuse us Lutherans of timidity in professing the whole truth. They grant that we have laid the foundation in Christ, but claim that we have failed to go through with the building. In this way these perverse fanatics parade their cursed doctrine as the Word of God, and, flying the flag of God's name, they deceive many. The devil knows better than to appear ugly and black. He prefers to carry on his nefarious activities in the name of God. Hence the German proverb: "All mischief begins in the name of God."
Today, the Anabaptists and others, struggling to denounce us, accuse us Lutherans of being hesitant in sharing the complete truth. They acknowledge that we’ve established a foundation in Christ, but assert that we haven’t followed through with the construction. In this way, these twisted fanatics showcase their misguided doctrine as the Word of God, and under the guise of God’s name, they mislead many. The devil knows better than to appear ugly and vile. He prefers to carry out his wicked schemes in the name of God. Hence the German proverb: "All mischief begins in the name of God."
When the devil sees that he cannot hurt the cause of the Gospel by destructive methods, he does it under the guise of correcting and advancing the cause of the Gospel. He would like best of all to persecute us with fire and sword, but this method has availed him little because through the blood of martyrs the church has been watered. Unable to prevail by force, he engages wicked and ungodly teachers who at first make common cause with us, then claim that they are particularly called to teach the hidden mysteries of the Scriptures to superimpose upon the first principles of Christian doctrine that we teach. This sort of thing brings the Gospel into trouble. May we all cling to the Word of Christ against the wiles of the devil, "for we wrestle not against flesh and blood, but against principalities, against powers, against the rulers of the darkness of this world, against spiritual wickedness in high places."
When the devil realizes he can't undermine the Gospel using destructive tactics, he tries to do it by pretending to correct and promote the Gospel instead. He would prefer to attack us with violence, but that hasn’t worked out well for him since the church thrives through the blood of martyrs. Unable to succeed through force, he recruits wicked and corrupt teachers who initially align themselves with us but then claim they are specially chosen to reveal the deep secrets of the Scriptures, adding to the basic principles of Christian doctrine we teach. This kind of behavior creates problems for the Gospel. May we all hold on to the Word of Christ against the devil's schemes, "for we wrestle not against flesh and blood, but against principalities, against powers, against the rulers of the darkness of this world, against spiritual wickedness in high places."
VERSE 7. Which is not another; but there be some that trouble you.
VERSE 7. This isn't a different message; there are some people who are trying to confuse you.
Here again the apostle excuses the Galatians, while he blames the false apostles for disturbing their consciences and for stealing them out of his hand. How angry he gets at these deceivers! He calls them troublemakers, seducers of poor consciences.
Here again, the apostle defends the Galatians while criticizing the false apostles for troubling their consciences and leading them away from him. He becomes furious at these deceivers! He calls them troublemakers and seducers of innocent consciences.
This passage adduces further evidence that the false apostles defamed Paul as an imperfect apostle and a weak and erroneous preacher. They condemn Paul, Paul condemns them. Such warfare of condemnation is always going on in the church. The papists and the fanatics hate us, condemn our doctrine, and want to kill us. We in turn hate and condemn their cursed doctrine. In the meanwhile the people are uncertain whom to follow and which way to turn, for it is not given to everybody to judge these matters. But the truth will win out. So much is certain, we persecute no man, neither does our doctrine trouble men. On the contrary, we have the testimony of many good men who thank God on their knees for the consolation that our doctrine has brought them. Like Paul, we are not to blame that the churches have trouble. The fault lies with the Anabaptists and other fanatics.
This passage provides further evidence that the false apostles slandered Paul as an imperfect apostle and a weak, mistaken preacher. They criticize Paul, and Paul criticizes them. This cycle of condemnation is always happening in the church. The Catholics and the extremists despise us, dismiss our beliefs, and want to eliminate us. In return, we reject and denounce their misguided beliefs. Meanwhile, people are unsure whom to follow and which direction to take, as it's not easy for everyone to make these judgments. But the truth will prevail. One thing is certain: we don't persecute anyone, and our teachings don't harm people. On the contrary, we have the support of many good individuals who thank God on their knees for the comfort that our teachings have given them. Like Paul, we’re not responsible for the troubles in the churches. The blame lies with the Anabaptists and other radicals.
Every teacher of work-righteousness is a trouble-maker. Has it never occurred to you that the pope, cardinals, bishops, monks, and that the whole synagogue of Satan are trouble-makers? The truth is, they are worse than false apostles. The false apostles taught that in addition to faith in Christ the works of the Law of God were necessary unto salvation. But the papists omit faith altogether and teach self-devised traditions and works that are not commanded of God, indeed are contrary to the Word of God, and for these traditions they demand preferred attention and obedience.
Every teacher of self-righteousness causes trouble. Have you ever thought about how the pope, cardinals, bishops, monks, and the whole group of deceivers create issues? The reality is, they are worse than false apostles. False apostles taught that, besides faith in Christ, obeying God's Law was necessary for salvation. But the papists completely ignore faith and promote their own traditions and actions that God hasn't commanded, which actually go against the Word of God. They insist that these traditions deserve special attention and obedience.
Paul calls the false apostles troublers of the church because they taught circumcision and the keeping of the Law as needful unto salvation. They insisted that the Law must be observed in every detail. They were supporters in this contention by the Jews, with the result that those who were not firmly established in faith were easily persuaded that Paul was not a sincere teacher of God because he ignored the Law. The Jews were offended at the idea that the Law of God should be entirely ignored by Paul and that the Gentiles, former idol-worshippers, should gratuitously attain to the station of God's people without circumcision, without the penitentiary performance of the law, by grace alone through faith in Christ Jesus.
Paul refers to the false apostles as troublemakers of the church because they taught that circumcision and following the Law were necessary for salvation. They insisted that every detail of the Law had to be followed. The Jews supported this view, leading those who were not firmly grounded in their faith to easily believe that Paul wasn’t a genuine teacher of God because he disregarded the Law. The Jews were offended by the idea that Paul could completely ignore God's Law and that Gentiles, who once worshipped idols, could simply become part of God's people without circumcision and without strictly following the Law, all by grace through faith in Christ Jesus.
These criticisms were amplified by the false apostles. They accused Paul of designs to abolish the law of God and the Jewish dispensation, contrary to the law of God, contrary to their Jewish heritage, contrary to apostolic example, contrary to Paul's own example. They demanded that Paul be shunned as a blasphemer and a rebel, while they were to be heard as true teachers of the Gospel and authentic disciples of the apostles. Thus Paul stood defamed among the Galatians. He was forced to attack the false apostles. He did so without hesitation.
These criticisms were heightened by the false apostles. They accused Paul of trying to eliminate God's law and the Jewish tradition, going against God's commandments, their Jewish heritage, the example set by the apostles, and even his own actions. They insisted that Paul should be rejected as a blasphemer and a rebel, while they positioned themselves as genuine teachers of the Gospel and true followers of the apostles. As a result, Paul was slandered among the Galatians. He felt compelled to confront the false apostles, and he did so without second thoughts.
VERSE 7. And would pervert the gospel of Christ.
VERSE 7. And would distort the gospel of Christ.
To paraphrase this sentence: "These false apostles do not merely trouble you, they abolish Christ's Gospel. They act as if they were the only true Gospel-preachers. For all that they muddle Law and Gospel. As a result they pervert the Gospel. Either Christ must live and the Law perish, or the Law remains and Christ must perish; Christ and the Law cannot dwell side by side in the conscience. It is either grace or law. To muddle the two is to eliminate the Gospel of Christ entirely."
To paraphrase this sentence: "These false apostles don’t just upset you; they undermine Christ's Gospel. They behave as if they are the only true preachers of the Gospel. However, they mix up the Law and the Gospel. As a result, they distort the Gospel. Either Christ must prevail and the Law must fade away, or the Law stays and Christ must fade away; Christ and the Law cannot coexist in one's conscience. It's either grace or law. Mixing the two completely removes the Gospel of Christ."
It seems a small matter to mingle the Law and Gospel, faith and works, but it creates more mischief than man's brain can conceive. To mix Law and Gospel not only clouds the knowledge of grace, it cuts out Christ altogether.
It may seem trivial to mix the Law and the Gospel, faith and good deeds, but it causes more trouble than anyone can imagine. Blending the Law and the Gospel not only confuses the understanding of grace, but it also removes Christ entirely.
The words of Paul, "and would pervert the gospel of Christ," also indicate how arrogant these false apostles were. They were shameless boasters. Paul simply had to exalt his own ministry and Gospel.
The words of Paul, "and would twist the gospel of Christ," also show how arrogant these false apostles were. They were shameless braggers. Paul just had to lift up his own ministry and Gospel.
VERSE 8. But though we, or an angel from heaven, preach any other gospel unto you than that which we have preached unto you, let him be accursed.
VERSE 8. But even if we, or an angel from heaven, share any other good news with you than what we have shared with you, let that person be cursed.
Paul's zeal for the Gospel becomes so fervent that it almost leads him to curse angels. "I would rather that I, my brethren, yes, the angels of heaven be anathematized than that my gospel be overthrown."
Paul's passion for the Gospel becomes so intense that he nearly goes so far as to curse angels. "I would rather be cursed myself, my brothers, and even the angels in heaven than see my gospel undermined."
The Greek word anathema, Hebrew herem, means to accurse, execrate, to damn. Paul first (hypothetically) curses himself. Knowing persons first find fault with themselves in order that they may all the more earnestly reprove others.
The Greek word anathema, Hebrew herem, means to curse, to condemn, to damn. Paul first (theoretically) curses himself. People typically criticize themselves first so they can more earnestly correct others.
Paul maintains that there is no other gospel besides the one he had preached to the Galatians. He preached, not a gospel of his own invention, but the very same Gospel God had long ago prescribed in the Sacred Scriptures. No wonder Paul pronounces curses upon himself and upon others, upon the angels of heaven, if anyone should dare to preach any other gospel than Christ's own.
Paul insists that there is no other gospel apart from the one he preached to the Galatians. He shared not a gospel of his own making, but the exact Gospel that God had long ago outlined in the Sacred Scriptures. It's no surprise that Paul declares curses on himself and others, even on the angels in heaven, if anyone dares to preach any other gospel than Christ's.
VERSE 9. As we said before, so say I now again. If any man preach any other gospel unto you than that ye have received, let him be accursed.
VERSE 9. As I mentioned before, I’ll say it again: if anyone preaches a gospel different from the one you received, let them be cursed.
Paul repeats the curse, directing it now upon other persons. Before, he cursed himself, his brethren, and an angel from heaven. "Now," he says, "if there are any others who preach a gospel different from that you have received from us, let them also be accursed." Paul herewith curses and excommunicates all false teachers including his opponents. He is so worked up that he dares to curse all who pervert his Gospel. Would to God that this terrible pronouncement of the Apostle might strike fear into the hearts of all who pervert the Gospel of Paul.
Paul repeats the curse, now targeting others. Previously, he cursed himself, his fellow believers, and even an angel from heaven. "Now," he says, "if anyone else preaches a different gospel than the one you received from us, let them be cursed too." With this, Paul condemns and expels all false teachers, including his opponents. He's so passionate that he boldly curses anyone who distorts his Gospel. I wish that this serious warning from the Apostle would instill fear in the hearts of all who twist Paul’s Gospel.
The Galatians might say: "Paul, we do not pervert the Gospel you have brought unto us. We did not quite understand it. That is all. Now these teachers who came after you have explained everything so beautifully." This explanation the Apostle refuses to accept. They must add nothing; they must correct nothing. "What you received from me is the genuine Gospel of God. Let it stand. If any man brings any other gospel than the one I brought you, or promises to deliver better things than you have received from me, let him be accursed."
The Galatians might say: "Paul, we aren’t twisting the Gospel you shared with us. We just didn’t fully grasp it. That’s all. Now, these teachers who came after you have explained everything so well." The Apostle rejects this explanation. They shouldn't add anything; they shouldn’t correct anything. "What you received from me is the true Gospel of God. Let it be as it is. If anyone brings a different gospel than the one I delivered to you, or claims to offer something better than what you received from me, let that person be cursed."
In spite of this emphatic denunciation so many accept the pope as the supreme judge of the Scriptures. "The Church," they say, "chose only four gospels. The Church might have chosen more. Ergo the Church is above the Gospel." With equal force one might argue: "I approve the Scriptures. Ergo I am above the Scriptures. John the Baptist confessed Christ. Hence he is above Christ." Paul subordinates himself, all preachers, all the angels of heaven, everybody to the Sacred Scriptures. We are not the masters, judges, or arbiters, but witnesses, disciples, and confessors of the Scriptures, whether we be pope, Luther, Augustine, Paul, or an angel from heaven.
Despite this strong condemnation, many still see the pope as the ultimate authority on the Scriptures. They argue, "The Church only selected four gospels. The Church could have chosen more. Therefore, the Church is above the Gospel." Similarly, one could argue, "I accept the Scriptures. Therefore, I am above the Scriptures. John the Baptist acknowledged Christ. Hence, he is above Christ." Paul places himself, all preachers, all the angels in heaven, and everyone else under the authority of the Sacred Scriptures. We are not the masters, judges, or decision-makers, but witnesses, learners, and confessors of the Scriptures, whether we are the pope, Luther, Augustine, Paul, or an angel from heaven.
VERSE 10. For do I now persuade men, or God?
VERSE 10. Am I trying to win over people, or God?
With the same vehemence Paul continues: "You Galatians ought to be able to tell from my preaching and from the many afflictions which I have endured, whether I serve men or God. Everybody can see that my preaching has stirred up persecution against me everywhere, and has earned for me the cruel hatred of my own people, in fact the hatred of all men. This should convince you that by my preaching I do not seek the favor and praise of men, but the glory of God."
With the same intensity, Paul continues: "You Galatians should be able to see from my preaching and from all the hardships I've faced, whether I serve people or God. Everyone can see that my preaching has caused persecution against me everywhere, and has earned me the bitter hatred of my own people, in fact, the hatred of everyone. This should convince you that through my preaching, I’m not looking for approval and praise from people, but for the glory of God."
No man can say that we are seeking the favor and praise of men with our doctrine. We teach that all men are naturally depraved. We condemn man's free will, his strength, wisdom, and righteousness. We say that we obtain grace by the free mercy of God alone for Christ's sake. This is no preaching to please men. This sort of preaching procures for us the hatred and disfavor of the world, persecutions, excommunications, murders, and curses.
No one can claim that we are trying to win the approval and praise of people with our teachings. We believe that all people are inherently flawed. We reject the idea of human free will, strength, wisdom, and righteousness. We say that we receive grace solely through God's mercy for the sake of Christ. This is not preaching to gain favor with people. This kind of message leads us to face hatred and rejection from the world, along with persecution, excommunication, violence, and curses.
"Can't you see that I seek no man's favor by my doctrine?" asks Paul. "If I were anxious for the favor of men I would flatter them. But what do I do? I condemn their works. I teach things only that I have been commanded to teach from above. For that I bring down upon my head the wrath of Jews and Gentiles. My doctrine must be right. It must be divine. Any other doctrine cannot be better than mine. Any other doctrine must be false and wicked."
"Don't you see that I'm not trying to win anyone's approval with my teachings?" Paul asks. "If I wanted to please people, I would just flatter them. But what do I actually do? I criticize their actions. I only teach what I've been told to teach from above. Because of that, I face anger from both Jews and Gentiles. My teachings must be right. They must be divine. Any other teachings can't be better than mine. Any other teachings must be false and wrong."
With Paul we boldly pronounce a curse upon every doctrine that does not agree with ours. We do not preach for the praise of men, or the favor of princes. We preach for the favor of God alone whose grace and mercy we proclaim. Whosoever teaches a gospel contrary to ours, or different from ours, let us be bold to say that he is sent of the devil.
With Paul, we confidently declare a curse on any doctrine that doesn't align with ours. We don't preach for the approval of people or the favor of leaders. We preach solely for God's approval, whose grace and mercy we share. Anyone who teaches a gospel that contradicts ours or differs from ours, let us boldly say that they are sent by the devil.
VERSE 10. Or do I seek to please men?
VERSE 10. Am I trying to make people happy?
"Do I serve men or God?" Paul keeps an eye on the false apostles, those flatterers of men. They taught circumcision to avoid the hatred and persecution of men.
"Do I serve men or God?" Paul watches the false apostles, those who flatter others. They promoted circumcision to escape people's hatred and persecution.
To this day you will find many who seek to please men in order that they may live in peace and security. They teach whatever is agreeable to men, no matter whether it is contrary to God's Word or their own conscience. But we who endeavor to please God and not men, stir up hell itself. We must suffer reproach, slanders, death.
To this day, you’ll find many who try to please others so they can live in peace and safety. They teach whatever makes people happy, regardless of whether it goes against God's Word or their own conscience. But we, who aim to please God and not people, provoke hell itself. We must endure criticism, slander, and even death.
For those who go about to please men we have a word from Christ recorded in the fifth chapter of St. John: "How can ye believe, which receive honor one of another, and seek not the honor that cometh from God alone?"
For those who try to please people, we have a message from Christ recorded in the fifth chapter of St. John: "How can you believe, when you accept honor from each other and don’t seek the honor that comes from God alone?"
VERSE 10. For if I yet pleased men, I should not be the servant of Christ.
VERSE 10. For if I were still trying to please people, I would not be a servant of Christ.
Observe the consummate cleverness with which the false apostles went about to bring Paul into disrepute. They combed Paul's writings for contradictions (our opponents do the same) to accuse him of teaching contradictory things. They found that Paul had circumcised Timothy according to the Law, that Paul had purified himself with four other men in the Temple at Jerusalem, that Paul had shaven his head at Cenchrea. The false apostles slyly suggested that Paul had been constrained by the other apostles to observe these ceremonial laws. We know that Paul observed these decora out of charitable regard for the weak brethren. He did not want to offend them. But the false apostles turned Paul's charitable regard to his disadvantage. If Paul had preached the Law and circumcision, if he had commended the strength and free will of man, he would not have been so obnoxious to the Jews. On the contrary they would have praised his every action.
Notice the complete cleverness with which the false apostles tried to discredit Paul. They searched through Paul's writings for contradictions (our opponents do the same) to accuse him of teaching conflicting ideas. They discovered that Paul had circumcised Timothy according to the Law, that he had purified himself with four other men at the Temple in Jerusalem, and that he had shaved his head at Cenchrea. The false apostles slyly suggested that Paul had been pressured by the other apostles to follow these ceremonial laws. We know that Paul adhered to these decora out of a genuine concern for the weaker believers. He didn’t want to offend them. But the false apostles twisted Paul's goodwill to his disadvantage. If Paul had preached the Law and circumcision, if he had emphasized the strength and free will of humanity, he wouldn’t have been so disliked by the Jews. In fact, they would have praised his every action.
VERSES 11, 12. But I certify you, brethren, that the gospel which was preached of me is not after man. For I neither received it of man, neither was I taught it, but by the revelation of Jesus Christ.
VERSES 11, 12. But I assure you, brothers, that the gospel I preached is not from human origins. I didn't receive it from any person or learn it from anyone, but through the revelation of Jesus Christ.
This passage constitutes Paul's chief defense against the accusations of his opponents. He maintains under oath that he received his Gospel not from men, but by the revelation of Jesus Christ.
This passage is Paul's main defense against the accusations from his opponents. He swears that he didn't get his Gospel from people, but through the revelation of Jesus Christ.
In declaring that his Gospel is not after man, Paul does not merely wish to state that his Gospel is not mundane. The false apostles made the same claim for their gospel. Paul means to say that he learned his Gospel not in the usual and accepted manner through the agency of men by hearing, reading, or writing. He received the Gospel by special revelation directly from Jesus Christ.
In stating that his Gospel isn’t from humans, Paul isn’t just saying it’s not ordinary. The false apostles made the same claim about their gospel. Paul wants to convey that he didn’t learn his Gospel in the typical ways through people by listening, reading, or writing. He got the Gospel through a unique revelation directly from Jesus Christ.
Paul received his Gospel on the way to Damascus when Christ appeared to him. St. Luke furnishes an account of the incident in the ninth chapter of the Book of Acts. "Arise," said Christ to Paul, "and go into the city, and it shall be told thee what thou must do." Christ did not send Paul into the city to learn the Gospel from Ananias. Ananias was only to baptize Paul, to lay his hands on Paul, to commit the ministry of the Word unto Paul, and to recommend him to the Church. Ananias recognized his limited assignment when he said to Paul: "Brother Saul, the Lord, even Jesus, that appeared unto thee in the way as thou camest, hath sent me, that thou mightest receive thy sight, and be filled with the Holy Ghost." Paul did not receive instruction from Ananias. Paul had already been called, enlightened, and taught by Christ in the road. His contact with Ananias was merely a testimonial to the fact that Paul had been called by Christ to preach the Gospel.
Paul received his Gospel on the way to Damascus when Christ appeared to him. St. Luke provides an account of the incident in the ninth chapter of the Book of Acts. "Get up," Christ told Paul, "and go into the city, and you will be told what you must do." Christ didn’t send Paul into the city to learn the Gospel from Ananias. Ananias was just there to baptize Paul, to lay his hands on him, to commit the ministry of the Word to him, and to recommend him to the Church. Ananias understood his limited role when he said to Paul: "Brother Saul, the Lord, even Jesus, who appeared to you on the road as you were coming here, has sent me so that you may regain your sight and be filled with the Holy Spirit." Paul didn’t receive instruction from Ananias. He had already been called, enlightened, and taught by Christ on the road. His interaction with Ananias was simply a confirmation that Paul had been chosen by Christ to preach the Gospel.
Paul was forced to speak of his conversion to combat the slanderous contention of the false apostles to the effect that this apostleship was inferior to that of the other apostles.
Paul had to talk about his conversion to address the false claims made by the fake apostles who argued that his apostleship was less valuable than that of the other apostles.
If it were not for the example of the Galatian churches I would never have thought it possible that anybody who had received the Word of God with such eagerness as they had, could so quickly let go of it. Good Lord, what terrible mischief one single false statement can create.
If it weren't for the example of the Galatian churches, I would never have thought it possible that anyone who accepted the Word of God as eagerly as they did could let go of it so quickly. Good Lord, what terrible chaos one single false statement can cause.
The article of justification is fragile. Not in itself, of course, but in us. I know how quickly a person can forfeit the joy of the Gospel. I know in what slippery places even those stand who seem to have a good footing in the matters of faith. In the midst of the conflict when we should be consoling ourselves with the Gospel, the Law rears up and begins to rage all over our conscience. I say the Gospel is frail because we are frail.
The article of justification is delicate. Not because of its own nature, of course, but because of us. I know how quickly someone can lose the joy of the Gospel. I understand the precariousness even for those who seem to have a solid grasp on their faith. In times of struggle, when we should be comforting ourselves with the Gospel, the Law stands up and starts to torment our conscience. I say the Gospel is weak because we are weak.
What makes matters worse is that one-half of ourselves, our own reason, stands against us. The flesh resists the spirit, or as Paul puts it, "The flesh lusteth against the Spirit." Therefore we teach that to know Christ and to believe in Him is no achievement of man, but the gift of God. God alone can create and preserve faith in us. God creates faith in us through the Word. He increases, strengthens and confirms faith in us through His word. Hence the best service that anybody can render God is diligently to hear and read God's Word. On the other hand, nothing is more perilous than to be weary of the Word of God. Thinking he knows enough, a person begins little by little to despise the Word until he has lost Christ and the Gospel altogether.
What makes things even worse is that a part of us—our own reasoning—works against us. The flesh fights against the spirit, or as Paul says, "The flesh lusts against the Spirit." So we teach that knowing Christ and believing in Him is not something we achieve on our own but is a gift from God. Only God can create and sustain faith within us. He develops our faith through the Word. He enhances, strengthens, and affirms our faith through His word. Therefore, the best thing anyone can do for God is to diligently listen to and read His Word. Conversely, nothing is more dangerous than growing tired of the Word of God. When someone thinks they know enough, they start to gradually disregard the Word until they completely lose connection with Christ and the Gospel.
Let every believer carefully learn the Gospel. Let him continue in humble prayer. We are molested not by puny foes, but by mighty ones, foes who never grow tired of warring against us. These, our enemies, are many: Our own flesh, the world, the Law, sin, death, the wrath and judgment of God, and the devil himself.
Let every believer take the time to learn the Gospel thoroughly. They should continue with humble prayer. We are not troubled by weak enemies, but by powerful ones, foes who never tire of fighting against us. These enemies are numerous: our own sinful nature, the world, the Law, sin, death, the wrath and judgment of God, and the devil himself.
The arguments which the false apostles advanced impress people to this day. "Who are you to dissent from the fathers and the entire Church, and to bring a contradictory doctrine? Are you wiser than so many holy men, wiser than the whole Church?" When Satan, abetted by our own reason, advances these arguments against us, we lose heart, unless we keep on saying to ourselves: "I don't care if Cyprian, Ambrose, Augustine, Peter, Paul, John, or an angel from heaven, teaches so and so. I know that I teach the truth of God in Christ Jesus."
The arguments that false apostles use still influence people today. "Who are you to go against the teachings of the early Church and introduce a different doctrine? Are you smarter than all those holy men, smarter than the entire Church?" When Satan, with the help of our own reasoning, throws these arguments at us, we can feel discouraged, unless we keep reminding ourselves: "I don't care if Cyprian, Ambrose, Augustine, Peter, Paul, John, or even an angel from heaven says otherwise. I know I’m teaching the truth of God in Christ Jesus."
When I first took over the defense of the Gospel, I remembered what Doctor Staupitz said to me. "I like it well," he said, "that the doctrine which you proclaim gives glory to God alone and none to man. For never can too much glory, goodness, and mercy be ascribed unto God." These words of the worthy Doctor comforted and confirmed me. The Gospel is true because it deprives men of all glory, wisdom, and righteousness and turns over all honor to the Creator alone. It is safer to attribute too much glory unto God than unto man.
When I first took on the defense of the Gospel, I remembered what Doctor Staupitz told me. "I really appreciate," he said, "that the doctrine you share gives glory to God alone and none to man. Because we can never give too much glory, goodness, and mercy to God." Those words from the esteemed Doctor comforted and strengthened me. The Gospel is true because it takes away all glory, wisdom, and righteousness from people and gives all honor to the Creator. It’s better to give too much glory to God than to man.
You may argue that the Church and the fathers are holy. Yet the Church is compelled to pray: "Forgive us our trespasses," I am not to be believed, nor is the Church to be believed, or the fathers, or the apostles, or an angel from heaven, if they teach anything contrary to the Word of God. Let the Word of God abide forever.
You might say that the Church and its leaders are holy. Still, the Church has to pray: "Forgive us our trespasses." I shouldn't be trusted, and neither should the Church, its leaders, the apostles, or an angel from heaven if they teach anything that goes against the Word of God. Let the Word of God last forever.
Peter erred in life and in doctrine. Paul might have dismissed Peter's error as a matter of no consequence. But Paul saw that Peter's error would lead to the damage of the whole Church unless it were corrected. Therefore he withstood Peter to his face. The Church, Peter, the apostles, angels from heaven, are not to be heard unless they teach the genuine Word of God.
Peter made mistakes in both his life and his beliefs. Paul could have ignored Peter's mistake as unimportant. However, Paul realized that Peter's mistake could harm the entire Church if it wasn't fixed. So, he confronted Peter directly. The Church, Peter, the apostles, and angels from heaven should not be taken seriously unless they convey the true Word of God.
This argument is not always to our advantage. People ask: "Whom then shall we believe?" Our opponents maintain that they teach the pure Word of God. We do not believe them. They in turn hate and persecute us for vile heretics. What can we do about it? With Paul we glory in the Gospel of Jesus Christ. What do we gain? We are told that our glorying is idle vanity and unadulterated blasphemy. The moment we abase ourselves and give in to the rage of our opponents, Papists and Anabaptists grow arrogant. The Anabaptists hatch out some new monstrosity. The Papists revive their old abominations. What to do? Let everybody become sure of his calling and doctrine, that he may boldly say with Paul: "But though we, or an angel from heaven, preach any other gospel unto you than ye have received, let him be accursed."
This argument isn't always in our favor. People ask, "So, who should we believe?" Our opponents claim they teach the true Word of God. We don’t trust them. They, in turn, hate and persecute us, labeling us as wicked heretics. What can we do about it? Like Paul, we take pride in the Gospel of Jesus Christ. What do we gain from this? We're told that our pride is pointless vanity and outright blasphemy. The moment we lower ourselves and submit to the fury of our opponents, both Papists and Anabaptists become brazen. The Anabaptists come up with new absurdities. The Papists bring back their old horrors. What should we do? Everyone should be confident in their calling and beliefs so they can boldly say with Paul: "But even if we, or an angel from heaven, preach any other gospel to you than what you have received, let him be accursed."
VERSES 13, 14. For ye have heard of my conversation in time past in the Jews' religion, how that beyond measure I persecuted the church of God, and wasted it: And profited in the Jews' religion above many my equals in mine own nation.
VERSES 13, 14. For you have heard about my conversations in the past regarding the Jewish faith, how I excessively persecuted the church of God and destroyed it. And I gained more than many of my peers in my own nation in the Jewish religion.
This passage does not contain doctrine. Paul adduces his own case for an example. "I have," he says, "at one time defended the traditions of the Pharisees more fiercely than any of your false apostles. Now, if the righteousness of the Law had been worth anything I would never have forsaken it. So carefully did I live up to the Law that I excelled many of my companions. So zealous was I in defense of the Law that I wasted the church of God."
This passage doesn’t have any doctrine. Paul uses his own experience as an example. "I have," he says, "at one point defended the traditions of the Pharisees more passionately than any of your false apostles. If the righteousness of the Law had meant anything, I would have never given it up. I followed the Law so closely that I outperformed many of my peers. I was so passionate in defending the Law that I harmed the church of God."
VERSE 14. Being more exceedingly zealous of the traditions of my fathers.
VERSE 14. I was very passionate about the traditions of my ancestors.
Speaking now of the Mosaic Law, Paul declares that he was wrapped up in it. To the Philippians he wrote: "As touching the law, a Pharisee; concerning zeal, persecuting the church; touching the righteousness which is in the law, blameless." He means to say, "I can compare myself with the best and holiest of all those who are of the circumcision. Let them show me if they can, a more earnest defender of the Mosaic Law than I was at one time. This fact, O Galatians, should have put you on your guard against these deceivers who make so much of the Law. If anybody ever had reason to glory in the righteousness of the Law, it was I." I too may say that before I was enlightened by the Gospel, I was as zealous for the papistical laws and traditions of the fathers as ever a man was. I tried hard to live up to every law as best I could. I punished myself with fasting, watching, praying, and other exercises more than all those who today hate and persecute me. I was so much in earnest that I imposed upon my body more than it could stand. I honored the pope as a matter of conscience. Whatever I did, I did with a single heart to the glory of God. But our opponents, well-fed idlers that they are, will not believe what I and many others have endured.
Speaking about the Mosaic Law, Paul says he was completely involved in it. To the Philippians, he wrote: "As far as the law goes, I was a Pharisee; in terms of passion, I persecuted the church; as for the righteousness that comes from the law, I was blameless." What he means is, "I can measure myself against the best and most righteous among those who are circumcised. Let them try to find a more dedicated defender of the Mosaic Law than I was at one point. This fact, O Galatians, should have warned you against these deceivers who put so much emphasis on the Law. If anyone had a reason to take pride in the righteousness of the Law, it was me." I can also say that before I was enlightened by the Gospel, I was as zealous for the papal laws and traditions of my forefathers as anyone ever was. I worked hard to follow every law as best as I could. I punished myself with fasting, watching, praying, and various practices more than all those who today hate and persecute me. I was so earnest that I pushed my body beyond its limits. I honored the pope out of a sense of duty. Whatever I did, I did with a pure heart for the glory of God. But our opponents, the well-fed lazy ones that they are, won't believe what I and many others have gone through.
VERSES 15, 16, 17. But when it pleased God, who separated me from my mother's womb, and called me by his grace. To reveal his Son in me, that I might preach him among the heathen; immediately I conferred not with flesh and blood: Neither went I up to Jerusalem to them which were apostles before me; but I went into Arabia, and returned again unto Damascus.
VERSES 15, 16, 17. But when God decided, who set me apart from my mother's womb and called me by His grace, to reveal His Son in me so that I could preach Him to the Gentiles; I didn’t consult with anyone right away. I didn’t go up to Jerusalem to those who were apostles before me; instead, I went to Arabia and then returned to Damascus.
Here Paul relates that immediately upon being called by God to preach the Gospel to the Gentiles, he went into Arabia without consulting a single person. "When it had pleased God," he writes, "I did not deserve it. I had been an enemy of Christ. I had blasphemed His Gospel. I had shed innocent blood. In the midst of my frenzy I was called. Why? On account of my outrageous cruelty? Indeed not. My gracious God who shows mercy unto whom He will, pardoned all mine iniquities. He bestowed His grace upon me, and called me for an apostle."
Here Paul shares that right after God called him to preach the Gospel to the Gentiles, he went to Arabia without talking to anyone. "When it was God's pleasure," he writes, "I didn’t deserve it. I had been an enemy of Christ. I had disrespected His Gospel. I had taken innocent lives. In the midst of my madness, I was called. Why? Because of my extreme cruelty? Absolutely not. My gracious God, who shows mercy to whom He chooses, forgave all my sins. He poured out His grace on me and called me to be an apostle."
We also have come to the knowledge of the truth by the same kindness of God. I crucified Christ daily in my cloistered life, and blasphemed God by my wrong faith. Outwardly I kept myself chaste, poor, and obedient. I was much given to fasting, watching, praying, saying of masses, and the like. Yet under the cloak of my outward respectability I continually mistrusted, doubted, feared, hated, and blasphemed God. My righteousness was a filthy puddle. Satan loves such saints. They are his darlings, for they quickly destroy their body and soul by depriving them of the blessings of God's generous gifts.
We have also come to understand the truth through the same kindness of God. I crucified Christ every day in my secluded life and disrespected God with my misguided beliefs. On the outside, I kept myself chaste, poor, and obedient. I was very devoted to fasting, watching, praying, saying masses, and similar practices. Yet, beneath the surface of my outward respectability, I constantly mistrusted, doubted, feared, hated, and disrespected God. My righteousness was like a filthy puddle. Satan loves such saints. They are his favorites because they quickly ruin their body and soul by depriving themselves of the blessings of God's generosity.
I tell you I stood in awe of the pope's authority. To dissent from him I considered a crime worthy of eternal death. I thought of John Huss as a cursed heretic. I counted it a sin even to think of him. I would gladly have furnished the wood to burn him. I would have felt I had done God a real service.
I have to say, I was in total awe of the pope's authority. Disagreeing with him felt like a serious crime that deserved eternal damnation. I viewed John Huss as a damned heretic and even believed it was a sin to think about him. I would have happily provided the wood to burn him. I would have felt like I was truly serving God.
In comparison with these sanctimonious hypocrites of the papacy, publicans and harlots are not bad. They at least feel remorse. They at least do not try to justify their wicked deeds. But these pretended saints, so far from acknowledging their errors, justify them and regard them as acceptable sacrifices unto God.
In comparison to these self-righteous hypocrites of the papacy, tax collectors and sinners aren’t so bad. They at least feel regret. They don’t try to justify their wrongdoings. But these so-called saints, instead of admitting their mistakes, defend them and see them as acceptable offerings to God.
VERSE 15. When it pleased God.
VERSE 15. When it pleased God.
"By the favor of God I, a wicked and cursed wretch, a blasphemer, persecutor, and rebel, was spared. Not content to spare me, God granted unto me the knowledge of His salvation, His Spirit, His Son, the office of an apostle, everlasting life." Paul speaking.
"Thanks to God's grace, I, a sinful and doomed person, a blasphemer, persecutor, and rebel, was spared. Not only did He spare me, but God also gave me the knowledge of His salvation, His Spirit, His Son, the role of an apostle, and eternal life." Paul speaking.
God not only pardoned our iniquities, but in addition overwhelmed us with blessings and spiritual gifts. Many, however, are ungrateful. Worse, by opening again a window to the devil many begin to loathe God's Word, and end by perverting the Gospel.
God not only forgave our sins, but also showered us with blessings and spiritual gifts. Many, however, are ungrateful. Even worse, by allowing the devil back in, some start to despise God's Word and ultimately distort the Gospel.
VERSE 15. Who separated me from my mother's womb.
VERSE 15. Who brought me out of my mother's womb.
This is a Hebrew expression, meaning to sanctify, ordain, prepare. Paul is saying, "When I was not yet born God ordained me to be an apostle, and in due time confirmed my apostleship before the world. Every gift, be it small or great, spiritual or temporal, and every good thing I should ever do, God has ordained while I was yet in my mother's womb where I could neither think nor perform any good thing. After I was born God supported me. Heaping mercy upon mercy, He freely forgave my sins, replenishing me with His grace to enable me to learn what great things are ours in Christ. To crown it all, He called me to preach the Gospel to others."
This is a Hebrew phrase that means to sanctify, ordain, or prepare. Paul is saying, "Before I was even born, God chose me to be an apostle, and in time, He confirmed my role as an apostle for everyone to see. Every gift, whether small or large, spiritual or material, and every good thing I would ever do, God had already planned while I was still in my mother's womb, before I could think or do anything good. After I was born, God supported me. He poured out mercy upon mercy, forgiving my sins and filling me with His grace so I could understand the amazing things we have in Christ. To top it all off, He called me to spread the Gospel to others."
VERSE 15. And called me by his grace.
VERSE 15. And called me by his grace.
"Did God call me on account of my holy life? Or on account of my pharisaical religion? Or on account of my prayers, fastings, and works? Never. Well, then, it is certain God did not call me on account of my blasphemies, persecutions, oppressions. What prompted Him to call me? His grace alone."
"Did God call me because of my holy life? Or because of my self-righteous religion? Or because of my prayers, fasting, and good deeds? Never. So, it’s clear God didn’t call me because of my blasphemies, persecutions, or oppression. What made Him call me? His grace alone."
VERSE 16. To reveal his Son to me.
VERSE 16. To show his Son to me.
We now hear what kind of doctrine was committed to Paul: The doctrine of the Gospel, the doctrine of the revelation of the Son of God. This doctrine differs greatly from the Law. The Law terrorizes the conscience. The Law reveals the wrath and judgment of God. The Gospel does not threaten. The Gospel announces that Christ is come to forgive the sins of the world. The Gospel conveys to us the inestimable treasures of God.
We now understand the doctrine that was entrusted to Paul: the doctrine of the Gospel, the doctrine of the revelation of the Son of God. This doctrine is very different from the Law. The Law terrifies the conscience. The Law exposes the wrath and judgment of God. The Gospel doesn’t threaten. The Gospel proclaims that Christ has come to forgive the sins of the world. The Gospel brings us the priceless treasures of God.
VERSE 16. That I might preach him among the heathen.
VERSE 16. That I might share his message among the non-believers.
"It pleased God," says the Apostle, "to reveal himself in me. Why? For a twofold purpose. That I personally should believe in the Son of God, and that I should reveal Him to the Gentiles."
"It pleased God," says the Apostle, "to reveal himself in me. Why? For two reasons. First, so that I would personally believe in the Son of God, and second, so that I would reveal Him to the Gentiles."
Paul does not mention the Jews, for the simple reason that he was the called and acknowledged apostle of the Gentiles, although he preached Christ also to the Jews.
Paul doesn't mention the Jews because he was the appointed and recognized apostle to the Gentiles, even though he also preached Christ to the Jews.
We can hear the Apostle saying to himself: "I will not burden the Gentiles with the Law, because I am their apostle and not their lawgiver. Not once did you Galatians hear me speak of the righteousness of the Law or of works. My job was to bring you the Gospel. Therefore you ought to listen to no teachers of the Law, but the Gospel: not Moses, but the Son of God; not the righteousness of works, but the righteousness of faith must be proclaimed to the Gentiles. That is the right kind of preaching for Gentiles."
We can hear the Apostle saying to himself: "I won’t put the burden of the Law on the Gentiles because I’m their Apostle, not their lawmaker. You Galatians never heard me talk about the righteousness of the Law or about works. My role was to bring you the Gospel. So you shouldn’t listen to any teachers of the Law, but rather to the Gospel: not Moses, but the Son of God; not the righteousness of works, but the righteousness of faith must be shared with the Gentiles. That’s the type of preaching that’s right for the Gentiles."
VERSE 16. Immediately I conferred not with flesh and blood.
VERSE 16. Right away, I didn't talk to anyone.
Once Paul had received the Gospel from Christ, he conferred with nobody in Damascus. He asked no man to teach him. He did not go up to Jerusalem to sit at the feet of Peter and the other apostles. At once he preached Jesus Christ in Damascus.
Once Paul received the Gospel from Christ, he didn't consult anyone in Damascus. He didn't ask anyone to teach him. He didn't travel to Jerusalem to learn from Peter and the other apostles. Right away, he started preaching Jesus Christ in Damascus.
VERSE 17. Neither went I up to Jerusalem to them which were apostles before me; but I went into Arabia, and returned again unto Damascus.
VERSE 17. I didn’t go up to Jerusalem to meet the apostles who were there before me; instead, I went to Arabia and then returned to Damascus.
"I went to Arabia before I saw any of the apostles. I took it upon myself to preach the Gospel to the Gentiles without delay, because Christ had called me for that purpose." This statement refutes the assertion of the false apostles that Paul had been a pupil of the apostles, from which the false apostles inferred that Paul had been instructed in the obedience of the Law, that therefore the Gentiles also ought to keep the Law and submit to circumcision.
"I went to Arabia before I met any of the apostles. I decided to preach the Gospel to the Gentiles right away because Christ had called me for that purpose." This statement counters the claim of the false apostles that Paul was a disciple of the apostles, from which the false apostles concluded that Paul had been taught to obey the Law, and therefore the Gentiles should also follow the Law and undergo circumcision.
VERSES 18, 19. Then after three years I went up to Jerusalem to see Peter, and abode with him fifteen days. But other of the apostles saw I none, save James the Lord's brother.
VERSES 18, 19. Then after three years, I went up to Jerusalem to meet Peter, and I stayed with him for fifteen days. I didn’t see any other apostles, except for James, the Lord's brother.
Paul minutely recounts his personal history to stop the cavil of the false apostles. Paul does not deny that he had been with some of the apostles. He went to Jerusalem uninvited, not to be instructed, but to visit with Peter. Luke reports the occasion in the ninth chapter of the Book of Acts. Barnabas introduced Paul to the apostles and related to them how Paul had met the Lord Jesus on the way to Damascus, also how Paul had preached boldly at Damascus in the name of Jesus. Paul says that he saw Peter and James, but he denies that he learned anything from them.
Paul carefully shares his personal story to counter the criticisms of the false apostles. He doesn’t deny that he spent time with some of the apostles. He went to Jerusalem without an invitation, not to receive teaching, but to meet with Peter. Luke details this event in the ninth chapter of the Book of Acts. Barnabas introduced Paul to the apostles and told them how Paul encountered the Lord Jesus on his way to Damascus, as well as how Paul had boldly preached in Damascus in Jesus' name. Paul states that he met Peter and James, but he insists that he didn’t learn anything from them.
Why does Paul harp on this seemingly unimportant fact? To convince the churches of Galatia that his Gospel was the true Word of Christ which he learned from Christ Himself and from no man. Paul was forced to affirm and re-affirm this fact. His usefulness to all the churches that had used him as their pastor and teacher was at stake.
Why does Paul keep bringing up this seemingly unimportant detail? To persuade the churches in Galatia that his Gospel was the genuine Word of Christ, which he received directly from Christ and not from anyone else. Paul had to insist on this point repeatedly. His role and effectiveness for all the churches that had relied on him as their pastor and teacher were on the line.
VERSE 20. Now the things which I write unto you, behold, before God, I lie not.
VERSE 20. Now what I’m writing to you, look, before God, I am not lying.
Was it necessary for Paul to go under oath? Yes. Paul is reporting personal history. How else would the churches believe him? The false apostles might say, "Who knows whether Paul is telling the truth?" Paul, the elect vessel of God, was held in so little esteem by his own Galatians to whom he had preached Christ that it was necessary for him to swear an oath that he spoke the truth. If this happened to Paul, what business have we to complain when people doubt our words, or hold us in little regard, we who cannot begin to compare ourselves with the Apostle?
Was it really necessary for Paul to take an oath? Yes. Paul was sharing his personal history. How else would the churches trust him? The false apostles might say, "Who can say if Paul is actually telling the truth?" Paul, as God's chosen servant, was held in such low regard by his own Galatians—those to whom he had preached Christ—that he had to swear an oath to confirm he was speaking the truth. If this was the case for Paul, what right do we have to complain when people question our honesty or think little of us, especially when we can’t even begin to compare ourselves to the Apostle?
VERSE 21. Afterwards I came into the regions of Syria and Cilicia.
VERSE 21. After that, I went to the areas of Syria and Cilicia.
Syria and Cilicia are adjacent countries. Paul traces his movements carefully in order to convince the Galatians that he had never been the disciple of any apostle.
Syria and Cilicia are neighboring countries. Paul carefully outlines his movements to persuade the Galatians that he was never a disciple of any apostle.
VERSES 22, 23, 24. And was unknown by face unto the churches of Judaea which were in Christ: But they had heard only, that he which persecuted us in times past now preacheth the faith which once he destroyed. And they glorified God in me.
VERSES 22, 23, 24. And the churches in Judea that were in Christ didn't know him by face. But they had only heard that the person who used to persecute us is now preaching the faith that he once tried to destroy. And they praised God because of me.
In Syria and Cilicia Paul won the indorsement of all the churches of Judea, by his preaching. All the churches everywhere, even those of Judea, could testify that he had preached the same faith everywhere. "And," Paul adds, "these churches glorified God in me, not because I taught that circumcision and the law of Moses should be observed, but because I urged upon all faith in the Lord Jesus Christ."
In Syria and Cilicia, Paul gained the support of all the churches in Judea through his preaching. Churches everywhere, including those in Judea, could confirm that he preached the same faith everywhere. "And," Paul adds, "these churches praised God because of me, not because I taught that circumcision and the law of Moses should be followed, but because I encouraged everyone to have faith in the Lord Jesus Christ."
CHAPTER 2
VERSE 1. Then fourteen years after I went up again to Jerusalem.
VERSE 1. Fourteen years later, I went back up to Jerusalem.
Paul taught justification by faith in Christ Jesus, without the deeds of the Law. He reported this to the disciples at Antioch. Among the disciples were some that had been brought up in the ancient customs of the Jews. These rose against Paul in quick indignation, accusing him of propagating a gospel of lawlessness.
Paul taught that we are made right with God through faith in Christ Jesus, not by following the Law. He shared this with the disciples in Antioch. Among them were some who had been raised in the traditional Jewish customs. They quickly became angry with Paul, accusing him of spreading a message that disregards the Law.
Great dissension followed. Paul and Barnabas stood up for the truth. They testified: "Wherever we preached to the Gentiles, the Holy Ghost came upon those who received the Word. This happened everywhere. We preached not circumcision, we did not require observance of the Law. We preached faith in Jesus Christ. At our preaching of faith, God gave to the hearers the Holy Ghost." From this fact Paul and Barnabas inferred that the Holy Ghost approved the faith of the Gentiles without the Law and circumcision. If the faith of the Gentiles had not pleased the Holy Ghost, He would not have manifested His presence in the uncircumcised hearers of the Word.
There was a lot of disagreement. Paul and Barnabas defended the truth. They said, "Wherever we preached to the Gentiles, the Holy Spirit came upon those who accepted the Word. This happened everywhere. We didn't preach circumcision, nor did we require following the Law. We preached faith in Jesus Christ. When we preached faith, God gave the Holy Spirit to those who were listening." From this, Paul and Barnabas concluded that the Holy Spirit approved the faith of the Gentiles without the Law and circumcision. If the faith of the Gentiles hadn’t pleased the Holy Spirit, He wouldn’t have shown His presence among the uncircumcised listeners of the Word.
Unconvinced, the Jews fiercely opposed Paul, asserting that the Law ought to be kept and that the Gentiles ought to be circumcised, or else they could not be saved.
Unconvinced, the Jews strongly opposed Paul, claiming that the Law should be followed and that the Gentiles needed to be circumcised, otherwise they couldn't be saved.
When we consider the obstinacy with which Romanists cling to their traditions, we can very well understand the zealous devotion of the Jews for the Law. After all, they had received the Law from God. We can understand how impossible it was for recent converts from Judaism suddenly to break with the Law. For that matter, God did bear with them, as He bore with the infirmity of Israel when the people halted between two religions. Was not God patient with us also while we were blindfolded by the papacy? God is longsuffering and full of mercy. But we dare not abuse the patience of the Lord. We dare no longer continue in error now that the truth has been revealed in the Gospel. The opponents of Paul had his own example to prefer against him. Paul had circumcised Timothy. Paul defended his action on the ground that he had circumcised Timothy, not from compulsion, but from Christian love, lest the weak in faith should be offended. His opponents would not accept Paul's explanation.
When we think about how stubbornly Roman Catholics hold onto their traditions, we can easily understand the passionate commitment of the Jews to the Law. After all, they received the Law directly from God. It makes sense that recent converts from Judaism found it so hard to completely abandon the Law. In fact, God was patient with them, just as He was with Israel when the people struggled between two beliefs. Wasn’t God also patient with us while we were misled by the papacy? God is patient and full of mercy. But we must not take advantage of the Lord’s patience. We can no longer live in error now that the truth has been revealed in the Gospel. Paul’s opponents had his own actions to use against him. Paul circumcised Timothy. He justified this decision by saying he did it not out of obligation, but out of Christian love, so as not to offend the weaker in faith. However, his opponents refused to accept Paul’s explanation.
When Paul saw that the quarrel was getting out of hand he obeyed the direction of God and left for Jerusalem, there to confer with the other apostles. He did this not for his own sake, but for the sake of the people.
When Paul noticed that the argument was escalating, he followed God's guidance and went to Jerusalem to meet with the other apostles. He did this not for himself, but for the benefit of the people.
VERSE 1. With Barnabas, and took Titus with me also.
VERSE 1. I went with Barnabas and also took Titus with me.
Paul chose two witnesses, Barnabas and Titus. Barnabas had been Paul's preaching companion to the Gentiles. Barnabas was an eye-witness of the fact that the Holy Ghost had come upon the Gentiles in response to the simple preaching of faith in Jesus Christ. Barnabas stuck to Paul on this point, that it was not necessary for the Gentiles to be bothered with the Law as long as they believed in Christ.
Paul chose two witnesses, Barnabas and Titus. Barnabas had been Paul's preaching partner to the Gentiles. He personally witnessed how the Holy Spirit had come upon the Gentiles in response to the straightforward message of faith in Jesus Christ. Barnabas supported Paul on this issue, arguing that it wasn't necessary for the Gentiles to deal with the Law as long as they had faith in Christ.
Titus was superintendent of the churches in Crete, having been placed in charge of the churches by Paul. Titus was a former Gentile.
Titus was in charge of the churches in Crete, having been appointed by Paul. Titus was a former Gentile.
VERSE 2. And I went up by revelation.
VERSE 2. And I went up by revelation.
If God had not ordered Paul to Jerusalem, Paul would never have gone there.
If God hadn't sent Paul to Jerusalem, he never would have gone there.
VERSE 2. And communicated unto them that gospel.
VERSE 2. And shared with them that gospel.
After an absence of fourteen years, respectively eighteen years, Paul returned to Jerusalem to confer with the other apostles.
After being away for fourteen years, and eighteen years for others, Paul returned to Jerusalem to meet with the other apostles.
VERSE 2. Which I preach among the Gentiles.
VERSE 2. Which I share with the Gentiles.
Among the Jews Paul allowed Law and circumcision to stand for the time being. So did all the apostles. Nevertheless Paul held fast to the liberty of the Gospel. On one occasion he said to the Jews: "Through this man (Christ) is preached unto you forgiveness of sins; and by him all that believe are justified from all things, from which ye could not be justified by the law of Moses." (Acts 13:39.) Always remembering the weak, Paul did not insist that they break at once with the Law.
Among the Jews, Paul let the Law and circumcision remain for the time being. The same was true for all the apostles. However, Paul firmly believed in the freedom of the Gospel. Once, he told the Jews: "Through this man (Christ) is preached to you the forgiveness of sins; and by him, everyone who believes is justified from all things, from which you could not be justified by the law of Moses." (Acts 13:39.) Always mindful of the weak, Paul didn't push them to completely abandon the Law right away.
Paul admits that he conferred with the apostles concerning his Gospel. But he denies that the conference benefited or taught him anything. The fact is he resisted those who wanted to force the practice of the Law upon the Gentiles. They did not overcome him, he overcame them. "Your false apostles lie, when they say that I circumcised Timothy, shaved my head in Cenchrea, and went up to Jerusalem, at the request of the apostles. I went to Jerusalem at the request of God. What is more, I won the indorsement of the apostles. My opponents lost out."
Paul acknowledges that he talked with the apostles about his Gospel. However, he insists that the discussions didn’t teach him anything new or helpful. In fact, he stood firm against those who tried to impose the Law on the Gentiles. They did not win, he did. "Those false apostles are lying when they say I circumcised Timothy, shaved my head in Cenchrea, and went to Jerusalem at the apostles’ request. I went to Jerusalem because God asked me to. Furthermore, I gained the approval of the apostles. My opponents came up short."
The matter upon which the apostles deliberated in conference was this: Is the observance of the Law requisite unto justification? Paul answered: "I have preached faith in Christ to the Gentiles, and not the Law. If the Jews want to keep the Law and be circumcised, very well, as long as they do so from a right motive."
The issue the apostles discussed in their meeting was this: Is following the Law necessary for justification? Paul responded: "I have shared faith in Christ with the Gentiles, not the Law. If the Jews want to follow the Law and get circumcised, that's fine, as long as they do it for the right reasons."
VERSE 2. But privately to them which were of reputation.
VERSE 2. But privately to those who were well-respected.
This is to say, "I conferred not only with the brethren, but with the leaders among them."
This means, "I spoke not just with my peers, but also with the leaders among them."
VERSE 2. Lest by any means I should run, or had run, in vain.
VERSE 2. So that I wouldn't end up running, or had run, for nothing.
Not that Paul himself ever thought he had run in vain. However, many did think that Paul had preached the Gospel in vain, because he kept the Gentiles free from the yoke of the Law. The opinion that obedience to the Law was mandatory unto salvation was gaining ground. Paul meant to remedy this evil. By this conference he hoped to establish the identity of his Gospel with that of the other apostles, to stop the talk of his opponents that he had been running around in vain.
Not that Paul ever believed he had worked in vain. However, many thought that Paul had preached the Gospel for nothing because he kept the Gentiles free from the burden of the Law. The belief that following the Law was necessary for salvation was becoming more popular. Paul aimed to address this issue. Through this conference, he hoped to align his Gospel with that of the other apostles and to put an end to the claims from his opponents that he had been laboring without purpose.
VERSE 3. But neither Titus, who was with me, being a Greek, was compelled to be circumcised.
VERSE 3. But neither Titus, who was with me, a Greek, was required to be circumcised.
The word "compelled" acquaints us with the outcome of the conference. It was resolved that the Gentiles should not be compelled to be circumcised.
The word "compelled" informs us of the outcome of the conference. It was decided that the Gentiles should not be required to be circumcised.
Paul did not condemn circumcision in itself. Neither by word nor deed did he ever inveigh against circumcision. But he did protest against circumcision being made a condition for salvation. He cited the case of the Fathers. "The fathers were not justified by circumcision. It was to them a sign and seal of righteousness. They looked upon circumcision as a confession of their faith."
Paul didn't criticize circumcision itself. He never spoke out against it or acted against it. However, he did argue against making circumcision a requirement for salvation. He pointed to the example of the Fathers. "The Fathers weren't justified by circumcision. For them, it was a sign and seal of righteousness. They viewed circumcision as a declaration of their faith."
The believing Jews, however, could not get it through their heads that circumcision was not necessary for salvation. They were encouraged in their wrong attitude by the false apostles. The result was that the people were up in arms against Paul and his doctrine.
The Jewish believers, however, just couldn't accept that circumcision wasn't required for salvation. They were misled by the false apostles. As a result, the people were furious with Paul and his teachings.
Paul did not condemn circumcision as if it were a sin to receive it. But he insisted, and the conference upheld him, that circumcision had no bearing upon salvation and was therefore not to be forced upon the Gentiles. The conference agreed that the Jews should be permitted to keep their ancient customs for the time being, so long as they did not regard those customs as conveying God's justification of the sinner.
Paul did not see circumcision as a sin. However, he emphasized, and the conference supported him, that circumcision had nothing to do with salvation and should not be imposed on the Gentiles. The conference decided that the Jews could continue practicing their ancient customs for now, as long as they did not view those customs as a way to earn God's justification for sin.
The false apostles were dissatisfied with the verdict of the conference. They did not want to rest circumcision and the practice of the Law in Christian liberty. They insisted that circumcision was obligatory unto salvation.
The false apostles were unhappy with the conference's decision. They didn't want to let go of circumcision and the Law in favor of Christian freedom. They insisted that circumcision was necessary for salvation.
As the opponents of Paul, so our own adversaries [Luther's, the enemies of the Reformation] contend that the traditions of the Fathers dare not be neglected without loss of salvation. Our opponents will not agree with us on anything. They defend their blasphemies. They go as far to enforce them with the sword.
As Paul's opponents did, our own adversaries [Luther's, the enemies of the Reformation] argue that the traditions of the Fathers must not be overlooked without risking salvation. Our opponents refuse to agree with us on anything. They defend their wrong beliefs and even go so far as to impose them with force.
Paul's victory was complete. Titus, who was with Paul, was not compelled to be circumcised, although he stood in the midst of the apostles when this question of circumcision was debated. This was a blow to the false apostles. With the living fact that Titus was not compelled to be circumcised Paul was able to squelch his adversaries.
Paul's victory was total. Titus, who was with Paul, wasn't forced to be circumcised, even though he was right there with the apostles when the issue of circumcision was discussed. This was a setback for the false apostles. The fact that Titus wasn't required to be circumcised allowed Paul to silence his opponents.
VERSES 4,5. And that because of false brethren unawares brought in, who came in privily to spy out our liberty which we have in Christ Jesus, that they might bring us into bondage: To whom we gave place by subjection, no, not for an hour; that the truth of the gospel might continue with you.
VERSES 4,5. And this is because of false brothers who were sneaked in, who secretly came in to spy on our freedom that we have in Christ Jesus, so they could bring us back into bondage. We didn’t give in to them, not even for a moment, so that the truth of the gospel could stay with you.
Paul here explains his motive for going up to Jerusalem. He did not go to Jerusalem to be instructed or confirmed in his Gospel by the other apostles. He went to Jerusalem in order to preserve the true Gospel for the Galatian churches and for all the churches of the Gentiles.
Paul explains why he went to Jerusalem. He didn't go there to learn or get validation for his Gospel from the other apostles. He went to Jerusalem to protect the true Gospel for the Galatian churches and all the Gentile churches.
When Paul speaks of the truth of the Gospel he implies by contrast a false gospel. The false apostles also had a gospel, but it was an untrue gospel. "In holding out against them," says Paul, "I conserved the truth of the pure Gospel."
When Paul talks about the truth of the Gospel, he's implying there is a false gospel. The false apostles also had a gospel, but it was an inaccurate one. "By standing firm against them," Paul says, "I upheld the truth of the pure Gospel."
Now the true Gospel has it that we are justified by faith alone, without the deeds of the Law. The false gospel has it that we are justified by faith, but not without the deeds of the Law. The false apostles preached a conditional gospel.
Now the true Gospel tells us that we are justified by faith alone, without the works of the Law. The false gospel claims that we are justified by faith, but not without the works of the Law. The false apostles preached a conditional gospel.
So do the papists. They admit that faith is the foundation of salvation. But they add the conditional clause that faith can save only when it is furnished with good works. This is wrong. The true Gospel declares that good works are the embellishment of faith, but that faith itself is the gift and work of God in our hearts. Faith is able to justify, because it apprehends Christ, the Redeemer.
So do the Catholics. They acknowledge that faith is the basis of salvation. But they add the condition that faith can only save when it's accompanied by good works. This is incorrect. The true Gospel states that good works enhance faith, but that faith itself is the gift and work of God in our hearts. Faith can justify because it grasps Christ, the Redeemer.
Human reason can think only in terms of the Law. It mumbles: "This I have done, this I have not done." But faith looks to Jesus Christ, the Son of God, given into death for the sins of the whole world. To turn one's eyes away from Jesus means to turn them to the Law.
Human reason can only think in terms of the Law. It says, "This I've done, this I haven't done." But faith looks to Jesus Christ, the Son of God, who was sacrificed for the sins of the entire world. To take your eyes off Jesus is to focus on the Law.
True faith lays hold of Christ and leans on Him alone. Our opponents cannot understand this. In their blindness they cast away the precious pearl, Christ, and hang onto their stubborn works. They have no idea what faith is. How can they teach faith to others?
True faith relies on Christ and trusts in Him alone. Our critics can't grasp this. In their ignorance, they reject the valuable truth of Christ and cling to their stubborn deeds. They have no understanding of what faith truly is. How can they teach faith to anyone else?
Not satisfied with teaching an untrue gospel, the false apostles tried to entangle Paul. "They went about," says Paul, "to spy out our liberty which we have in Christ Jesus, that they might bring us into bondage."
Not happy with promoting a false gospel, the fake apostles tried to trap Paul. "They went around," Paul says, "to check out our freedom in Christ Jesus, so they could put us back in chains."
When Paul saw through their scheme, he attacked the false apostles. He says, "We did not let go of the liberty which we have in Christ Jesus. We routed them by the judgment of the apostles, and we would not give in to them, no, not an inch."
When Paul saw through their plot, he confronted the fake apostles. He says, "We didn't give up the freedom we have in Christ Jesus. We defeated them by the judgment of the apostles, and we wouldn't back down, not even a little."
We too were willing to make all kinds of concessions to the papists. Yes, we are willing to offer them more than we should. But we will not give up the liberty of conscience which we have in Christ Jesus. We refuse to have our conscience bound by any work or law, so that by doing this or that we should be righteous, or leaving this or that undone we should be damned.
We were also willing to make all sorts of compromises for the Catholics. Yes, we are ready to give them more than we really should. But we won't give up the freedom of conscience that we have in Christ Jesus. We refuse to let our conscience be restricted by any action or law, believing that by doing this or that we’ll be righteous, or by not doing this or that we’ll be condemned.
Since our opponents will not let it stand that only faith in Christ justifies, we will not yield to them. On the question of justification we must remain adamant, or else we shall lose the truth of the Gospel. It is a matter of life and death. It involves the death of the Son of God, who died for the sins of the world. If we surrender faith in Christ, as the only thing that can justify us, the death and resurrection of Jesus are without meaning; that Christ is the Savior of the world would be a myth. God would be a liar, because He would not have fulfilled His promises. Our stubbornness is right, because we want to preserve the liberty which we have in Christ. Only by preserving our liberty shall we be able to retain the truth of the Gospel inviolate.
Since our opponents won’t accept that only faith in Christ justifies us, we won’t back down. On the issue of justification, we must be steadfast, or we risk losing the truth of the Gospel. It’s a matter of life and death. It involves the death of the Son of God, who died for the sins of the world. If we give up faith in Christ as the only thing that can justify us, then the death and resurrection of Jesus have no meaning; saying that Christ is the Savior of the world becomes a myth. God would be a liar because He wouldn’t have kept His promises. Our determination is justified because we want to protect the freedom we have in Christ. Only by safeguarding our freedom can we maintain the truth of the Gospel intact.
Some will object that the Law is divine and holy. Let it be divine and holy. The Law has no right to tell me that I must be justified by it. The Law has the right to tell me that I should love God and my neighbor, that I should live in chastity, temperance, patience, etc. The Law has no right to tell me how I may be delivered from sin, death, and hell. It is the Gospel's business to tell me that. I must listen to the Gospel. It tells me, not what I must do, but what Jesus Christ, the Son of God, has done for me.
Some might argue that the Law is divine and holy. Let it be divine and holy. The Law has no authority to tell me that I must be justified by it. The Law can tell me that I should love God and my neighbor, that I should live with purity, self-control, patience, and so on. The Law has no right to tell me how I can be saved from sin, death, and hell. That’s the Gospel's role. I need to listen to the Gospel. It doesn't tell me what I must do, but rather what Jesus Christ, the Son of God, has done for me.
To conclude, Paul refused to circumcise Titus for the reason that the false apostles wanted to compel him to circumcise Titus. Paul refused to accede to their demands. If they had asked it on the plea of brotherly love, Paul would not have denied them. But because they demanded it on the ground that it was necessary for salvation, Paul defied them, and prevailed. Titus was not circumcised.
To wrap it up, Paul wouldn’t circumcise Titus because the false apostles were trying to force him to do it. Paul wouldn’t give in to their demands. If they had asked it out of brotherly love, Paul wouldn’t have turned them down. But since they insisted it was essential for salvation, Paul stood up to them and won. Titus wasn't circumcised.
VERSE 6. But of those who seemed to be somewhat, whatsoever they were, it maketh no matter to me.
VERSE 6. But for those who appeared to be important, it doesn't change anything for me, whatever they were.
This is a good point in Paul's refutation. Paul disparages the authority and dignity of the true apostles. He says of them, "Which seemed to be somewhat." The authority of the apostles was indeed great in all the churches. Paul did not want to detract from their authority, but he had to speak disparagingly of their authority in order to conserve the truth of the Gospel, and the liberty of conscience.
This is a key moment in Paul's argument. Paul undermines the authority and status of the true apostles. He says about them, "Which seemed to be somewhat." The apostles' authority was definitely significant in all the churches. Paul didn't want to diminish their authority, but he felt it necessary to speak negatively about it to protect the truth of the Gospel and the freedom of conscience.
The false apostles used this argument against Paul: "The apostles lived with Christ for three years. They heard His sermons. They witnessed His miracles. They themselves preached and performed miracles while Christ was on earth. Paul never saw Jesus in the flesh. Now, whom ought you to believe: Paul, who stands alone, a mere disciple of the apostles, one of the last and least; or will you believe those grand apostles who were sent and confirmed by Christ Himself long before Paul?"
The false apostles used this argument against Paul: "The apostles lived with Christ for three years. They heard His sermons. They witnessed His miracles. They preached and performed miracles while Christ was on earth. Paul never saw Jesus in person. Now, who should you believe: Paul, who stands alone, just a disciple of the apostles, one of the last and least; or will you trust those great apostles who were sent and confirmed by Christ Himself long before Paul?"
What could Paul say to that? He answered: "What they say has no bearing on the argument. If the apostles were angels from heaven, that would not impress me. We are not now discussing the excellency of the apostles. We are talking about the Word of God now, and the truth of the Gospel. That Gospel is more excellent than all apostles."
What could Paul say to that? He replied, "What they say doesn't matter to the argument. Even if the apostles were angels from heaven, that wouldn't impress me. We're not discussing how great the apostles are. We're talking about the Word of God and the truth of the Gospel. That Gospel is greater than all apostles."
VERSE 6. God accepteth no man's person.
VERSE 6. God does not show favoritism.
Paul is quoting Moses: "Thou shalt not respect the person of the poor, nor honor the person of the mighty." (Lev. 19:15) This quotation from Moses ought to shut the mouths of the false apostles. "Don't you know that God is no respecter of persons?" cries Paul. The dignity or authority of men means nothing to God. The fact is that God often rejects just such who stand in the odor of sanctity and in the aura of importance. In doing so God seems unjust and harsh. But men need deterring examples. For it is a vice with us to esteem personality more highly than the Word of God. God wants us to exalt His Word and not men.
Paul is quoting Moses: "You must not show favoritism to the poor or honor the rich." (Lev. 19:15) This quote from Moses should silence the false apostles. "Don't you know that God doesn’t play favorites?" Paul exclaims. The status or authority of people doesn’t mean anything to God. In fact, God often rejects those who appear pious and important. This might seem unfair or harsh. But humanity needs examples to be guided by. We have a tendency to value people more than the Word of God. God wants us to elevate His Word, not people.
There must be people in high office, of course. But we are not to deify them. The governor, the mayor, the preacher, the teacher, the scholar, father, mother, are persons whom we are to love and revere, but not to the extent that we forget God. Least we attach too much importance to the person, God leaves with important persons offenses and sins, sometimes astounding shortcomings, to show us that there is a lot of difference between any person and God. David was a good king. But when the people began to think too well of him, down he fell into horrible sins, adultery and murder. Peter, excellent apostle that he was, denied Christ. Such examples of which the Scriptures are full, ought to warn us not to repose our trust in men. In the papacy appearance counts for everything. Indeed, the whole papacy amounts to nothing more than a mere kowtowing of persons and outward mummery. But God alone is to be feared and honored.
There are certainly people in high positions. However, we shouldn’t worship them. The governor, the mayor, the preacher, the teacher, the scholar, father, and mother are individuals we should love and respect, but not to the point that we forget about God. To prevent us from giving too much importance to any person, God allows important figures to have flaws and sins, sometimes shocking shortcomings, to remind us that there’s a huge difference between any person and God. David was a great king. But when people began to think too highly of him, he fell into terrible sins, including adultery and murder. Peter, as great an apostle as he was, denied Christ. These examples, plentiful in the Scriptures, should caution us against placing our trust in humans. In the papacy, appearances mean everything. In fact, the entire papacy often comes down to mere flattery of individuals and superficial rituals. But it's only God who deserves our fear and honor.
I would honor the Pope, I would love his person, if he would leave my conscience alone, and not compel me to sin against God. But the Pope wants to be adored himself, and that cannot be done without offending God. Since we must choose between one or the other, let us choose God. The truth is we are commissioned by God to resist the Pope, for it is written, "We ought to obey God rather than men." (Acts 5:29)
I would respect the Pope and appreciate him as a person if he would just let my conscience be and not force me to go against God. But the Pope wants to be worshipped himself, and that can't happen without upsetting God. Since we have to choose between one or the other, let's choose God. The truth is, we are called by God to oppose the Pope, because it is written, "We ought to obey God rather than men." (Acts 5:29)
We have seen how Paul refutes the argument of the false apostles concerning the authority of the apostles. In order that the truth of the Gospel may continue; in order that the Word of God and the righteousness of faith may be kept pure and undefiled, let the apostles, let an angel from heaven, let Peter, let Paul, let them all perish.
We have seen how Paul counters the claims of the false apostles regarding the authority of the apostles. To ensure the truth of the Gospel endures; to keep the Word of God and the righteousness of faith pure and untouched, let the apostles, an angel from heaven, Peter, Paul, let them all be lost.
VERSE 6. For they who seemed to be somewhat in conference added nothing to me.
VERSE 6. For those who seemed to have some importance in the discussion didn’t add anything to me.
The Apostle repeats: "I did not so confer with the apostles that they taught me anything. What could they possibly teach me since Christ by His revelation had taught me all things? It was but a conference, and no disputation. I learned nothing, neither did I defend my cause. I only stated what I had done, that I had preached to the Gentiles faith in Christ, without the Law, and that in response to my preaching the Holy Ghost came down upon the Gentiles. When the apostles heard this, they were glad that I had taught the truth."
The Apostle says again, "I didn’t talk with the apostles to learn anything from them. What could they teach me when Christ revealed everything to me? It was just a meeting, not a debate. I didn’t learn anything new, nor did I have to defend my position. I simply shared what I had done: that I had preached faith in Christ to the Gentiles, without the Law, and that as a result of my preaching, the Holy Spirit came down on the Gentiles. When the apostles heard this, they were happy that I had taught the truth."
If Paul would not give in to the false apostles, much less ought we to give in to our opponents. I know that a Christian should be humble, but against the Pope I am going to be proud and say to him: "You, Pope, I will not have you for my boss, for I am sure that my doctrine is divine." Such pride against the Pope is imperative, for if we are not stout and proud we shall never succeed in defending the article of the righteousness of faith.
If Paul wouldn't back down to the fake apostles, then we definitely shouldn't give in to our opponents. I know a Christian should be humble, but against the Pope, I'm going to stand firm and say: "You, Pope, I will not recognize you as my authority, because I believe my teachings are divine." It’s essential to stand up to the Pope with pride, because if we aren't strong and assertive, we'll never be able to defend the principle of righteousness through faith.
If the Pope would concede that God alone by His grace through Christ justifies sinners, we would carry him in our arms, we would kiss his feet. But since we cannot obtain this concession, we will give in to nobody, not to all the angels in heaven, not to Peter, not to Paul, not to a hundred emperors, not to a thousand popes, not to the whole world. If in this matter we were to humble ourselves, they would take from us the God who created us, and Jesus Christ who has redeemed us by His blood. Let this be our resolution, that we will suffer the loss of all things, the loss of our good name, of life itself, but the Gospel and our faith in Jesus Christ—we will not stand for it that anybody take them from us.
If the Pope would agree that only God, through His grace and Christ, can justify sinners, we would support him wholeheartedly and show him our respect. But since we can't get that agreement, we won't back down for anyone—not the angels in heaven, not Peter, not Paul, not a hundred emperors, not a thousand popes, and not the entire world. If we were to compromise on this issue, they would take away from us the God who created us and Jesus Christ who saved us with His blood. Let’s make this our commitment: we may lose everything, our good name, and even our lives, but we won’t allow anyone to take the Gospel and our faith in Jesus Christ from us.
VERSES 7, 8. But contrariwise, when they saw that the gospel of the uncircumcision was committed unto me, as the gospel of the circumcision was unto Peter; [For he that wrought effectually in Peter to the apostleship of the circumcision, the same was mighty in me toward the Gentiles.]
VERSES 7, 8. But on the contrary, when they recognized that the message of the uncircumcised was entrusted to me, just as the message of the circumcised was given to Peter; [For the one who effectively worked in Peter for the apostleship of the circumcised, also empowered me for the Gentiles.]
Here the Apostle claims for himself the same authority which the false apostles attributed to the true apostles. Paul simply inverts their argument. "To bolster their evil cause," says he, "the false apostles quote the authority of the great apostles against me. I can quote the same authority against them, for the apostles are on my side. They gave me the right hand of fellowship. They approved my ministry. O my Galatians, do not believe the counterfeit apostles!"
Here, the Apostle asserts that he has the same authority that the false apostles attributed to the true apostles. Paul simply turns their argument around. "To support their wicked agenda," he says, "the false apostles use the authority of the great apostles against me. I can use that same authority against them because the apostles are on my side. They recognized my work and welcomed me with open arms. They approved my ministry. Oh my Galatians, don’t be fooled by the fake apostles!"
What does Paul mean by saying that the gospel of the uncircumcision was committed unto him, and that of the circumcision to Peter? Did not Paul preach to the Jews, while Peter preached to the Gentiles also? Peter converted the Centurion. Paul's custom was to enter into the synagogues of the Jews, there to preach the Gospel. Why then should he call himself the apostle of the Gentiles, while he calls Peter the apostle of the circumcision?
What does Paul mean when he says that the gospel for the uncircumcised was entrusted to him, and the gospel for the circumcised to Peter? Didn't Paul preach to the Jews, while Peter also preached to the Gentiles? Peter converted the Centurion. Paul's routine was to go into the synagogues of the Jews to preach the Gospel. So why does he refer to himself as the apostle to the Gentiles, while calling Peter the apostle to the circumcised?
Paul refers to the fact that the other apostles remained in Jerusalem until the destruction of the city became imminent. But Paul was especially called the apostle of the Gentiles. Even before the destruction of Jerusalem Jews dwelt here and there in the cities of the Gentiles. Coming to a city, Paul customarily entered the synagogues of the Jews and first brought to them as the children of the kingdom, the glad tidings that the promises made unto the fathers were fulfilled in Jesus Christ. When the Jews refused to hear these glad tidings, Paul turned to the Gentiles. He was the apostle of the Gentiles in a special sense, as Peter was the apostle of the Jews.
Paul mentions that the other apostles stayed in Jerusalem until the city's destruction was unavoidable. However, Paul was specifically called the apostle to the Gentiles. Even before Jerusalem was destroyed, Jews lived in various cities among the Gentiles. Whenever Paul visited a city, he typically went to the Jewish synagogues first and shared the good news that the promises made to the forefathers were fulfilled in Jesus Christ. When the Jews rejected this good news, Paul turned to the Gentiles. He was the apostle to the Gentiles in a unique way, just as Peter was the apostle to the Jews.
Paul reiterates that Peter, James, and John, the accepted pillars of the Church, taught him nothing, nor did they commit unto him the office of preaching the Gospel unto the Gentiles. Both the knowledge of the Gospel and the commandment to preach it to the Gentiles, Paul received directly from God. His case was parallel to that of Peter's, who was particularly commissioned to preach the Gospel to the Jews.
Paul emphasizes that Peter, James, and John, the recognized leaders of the Church, didn't teach him anything, nor did they assign him the role of preaching the Gospel to the Gentiles. Both the understanding of the Gospel and the directive to preach it to the Gentiles came directly from God. His situation was similar to Peter's, who was specifically chosen to preach the Gospel to the Jews.
The apostles had the same charge, the identical Gospel. Peter did not proclaim a different Gospel, nor had he appointed his fellow apostles. They were equals. They were all taught of God. None was greater than the other, none could point to prerogatives above the other. To justify his usurped primacy in the Church the Pope claims that Peter was the chief of the apostles. This is an impudent falsehood.
The apostles had the same mission and the same Gospel. Peter didn't share a different Gospel, nor did he choose his fellow apostles. They were equals. They all learned directly from God. None was greater than the others, and none could claim special privileges over the others. To justify his claimed superiority in the Church, the Pope says that Peter was the leader of the apostles. This is a blatant lie.
VERSE 8. For he that wrought effectually in Peter.
VERSE 8. For the one who worked powerfully in Peter.
With these words Paul refutes another argument of the false apostles. "What reason have the false apostles to boast that the Gospel of Peter was mighty, that he converted many, that he wrought great miracles, and that his very shadow healed the sick? These reports are true enough. But where did Peter acquire this power? God gave him the power. I have the same power. I received my power, not from Peter, but from the same God, the same Spirit who was mighty in Peter was mighty in me also." Luke corroborates Paul's statement in the words: "And God wrought special miracles by the hands of Paul, so that from his body were brought unto the sick handkerchiefs or aprons, and the diseases departed from them, and the evil spirits went out of them." (Acts 19:11, 12.)
With these words, Paul counters another argument from the false apostles. "What reason do the false apostles have to boast that the Gospel of Peter was powerful, that he converted many, that he performed great miracles, and that his very shadow healed the sick? These claims are true enough. But where did Peter get that power? God gave him the power. I have the same power. I received my power, not from Peter, but from the same God; the same Spirit that was powerful in Peter is also powerful in me." Luke supports Paul's statement with the words: "And God performed special miracles by the hands of Paul, so that handkerchiefs or aprons from his body were brought to the sick, and their diseases left them, and evil spirits went out of them." (Acts 19:11, 12.)
To conclude, Paul is not going to be inferior to the rest of the apostles. Some secular writers put Paul's boasting down as carnal pride. But Paul had no personal interest in his boasting. It was with him a matter of faith and doctrine. The controversy was not about the glory of Paul, but the glory of God, the Word of God, the true worship of God, true religion, and the righteousness of faith.
To sum up, Paul isn’t going to be less important than the other apostles. Some non-religious writers dismiss Paul's boasting as just pride. But for Paul, his boasting wasn't about personal gain. It was about faith and doctrine. The argument wasn’t about Paul’s glory, but about God’s glory, the Word of God, genuine worship of God, true religion, and the righteousness that comes from faith.
VERSE 9. And when James, Cephas and John, who seemed to be pillars, perceived the grace that was given unto me, they gave to me and Barnabas the right hands of fellowship; that we should go unto the heathen, and they unto the circumcision.
VERSE 9. And when James, Peter, and John, who appeared to be the main leaders, recognized the grace that had been given to me, they extended the right hand of fellowship to me and Barnabas, agreeing that we would go to the Gentiles, and they would go to the Jews.
"The fact is, when the apostles heard that I had received the charge to preach the Gospel to the Gentiles from Christ; when they heard that God had wrought many miracles through me; that great numbers of the Gentiles had come to the knowledge of Christ through my ministry; when they heard that the Gentiles had received the Holy Ghost without Law and circumcision, by the simple preaching of faith; when they heard all this they glorified God for His grace in me." Hence, Paul was justified in concluding that the apostles were for him, and not against him.
"The truth is, when the apostles found out that I had been given the mission to preach the Gospel to the Gentiles by Christ; when they heard that God had performed many miracles through me; that a large number of Gentiles had come to know Christ through my work; when they learned that the Gentiles had received the Holy Spirit without the Law and circumcision, simply through the preaching of faith; when they heard all this, they praised God for His grace in me." Therefore, Paul was justified in concluding that the apostles were on his side, not against him.
VERSE 9. The right hands of fellowship.
VERSE 9. The handshake of friendship.
As if the apostles had said to him: "We, Paul, do agree with you in all things. We are companions in doctrine. We have the same Gospel with this difference, that to you is committed the Gospel for the uncircumcised, while the Gospel for the circumcision is committed unto us. But this difference ought not to hinder our friendship, since we preach one and the same Gospel."
As if the apostles had said to him: "We, Paul, agree with you on everything. We share the same beliefs. We have the same Gospel, with this difference: you are responsible for the Gospel for the uncircumcised, while the Gospel for the circumcised is our responsibility. But this difference shouldn’t affect our friendship, since we preach one and the same Gospel."
VERSE 10. Only they would that we should remember the poor; the same which I also was forward to do.
VERSE 10. They only wanted us to remember the poor; that's exactly what I was eager to do as well.
Next to the preaching of the Gospel, a true and faithful pastor will take care of the poor. Where the Church is, there must be the poor, for the world and the devil persecute the Church and impoverish many faithful Christians.
Next to preaching the Gospel, a genuine and dedicated pastor will look after the poor. Wherever the Church is, there will also be the poor, because the world and the devil oppress the Church and leave many faithful Christians in need.
Speaking of money, nobody wants to contribute nowadays to the maintenance of the ministry, and the erection of schools. When it comes to establishing false worship and idolatry, no cost is spared. True religion is ever in need of money, while false religions are backed by wealth.
Talking about money, no one wants to chip in these days for supporting the ministry or building schools. But when it comes to setting up false worship and idolatry, no expense is too great. True religion is always in need of funds, while false religions are supported by wealth.
VERSE 11. But when Peter was come to Antioch, I withstood him to the face, because he was to be blamed.
VERSE 11. But when Peter arrived in Antioch, I confronted him directly, because he was in the wrong.
Paul goes on in his refutation of the false apostles by saying that in Antioch he withstood Peter in the presence of the whole congregation. As he stated before, Paul had no small matter in hand, but the chief article of the Christian religion. When this article is endangered, we must not hesitate to resist Peter, or an angel from heaven. Paul paid no regard to the dignity and position of Peter, when he saw this article in danger. It is written: "He that loveth father or mother or his own life, more than me, is not worthy of me." (Matt. 10:37.)
Paul continues his argument against the false apostles by saying that in Antioch, he confronted Peter in front of the entire congregation. As he mentioned earlier, Paul was dealing with a significant issue—the core of the Christian faith. When this core is at risk, we cannot hesitate to stand up to Peter or even an angel from heaven. Paul didn't care about Peter's authority or status when he saw this core belief in jeopardy. It’s written: "Anyone who loves their father or mother or their own life more than me is not worthy of me." (Matt. 10:37.)
For defending the truth in our day, we are called proud and obstinate hypocrites. We are not ashamed of these titles. The cause we are called to defend, is not Peter's cause, or the cause of our parents, or that of the government, or that of the world, but the cause of God. In defense of that cause we must be firm and unyielding.
For standing up for the truth today, we're labeled as proud and stubborn hypocrites. We’re not ashamed of these labels. The cause we stand for isn’t Peter's cause, or our parents' cause, or that of the government, or that of the world, but the cause of God. In defending that cause, we must be strong and unwavering.
When he says, "to his face," Paul accuses the false apostles of slandering him behind his back. In his presence they dared not to open their mouths. He tells them, "I did not speak evil of Peter behind his back, but I withstood him frankly and openly."
When he says, "to his face," Paul accuses the false apostles of talking trash about him when he wasn't around. In front of him, they didn't have the guts to say anything. He tells them, "I didn't talk badly about Peter when he wasn't here; I confronted him honestly and openly."
Others may debate here whether an apostle might sin. I claim that we ought not to make Peter out as faultless. Prophets have erred. Nathan told David that he should go ahead and build the Temple of the Lord. But his prophecy was afterwards corrected by the Lord. The apostles erred in thinking of the Kingdom of Christ as a worldly state. Peter had heard the command of Christ, "Go ye into all the world, and preach the Gospel to every creature." But if it had not been for the heavenly vision and the special command of Christ, Peter would never have gone to the home of Cornelius. Peter also erred in this matter of circumcision. If Paul had not publicly censured him, all the believing Gentiles would have been compelled to receive circumcision and accept the Jewish law. We are not to attribute perfection to any man.
Others might argue about whether an apostle can sin. I believe we shouldn't portray Peter as flawless. Prophets have made mistakes. Nathan told David that he should go ahead and build the Temple of the Lord, but his prophecy was later corrected by God. The apostles made mistakes by thinking of Christ's Kingdom as a political entity. Peter heard Christ’s command, “Go into all the world and preach the Gospel to every creature.” But if it weren’t for the heavenly vision and Christ's specific command, Peter would never have visited Cornelius’s home. Peter also made errors regarding circumcision. If Paul hadn't publicly confronted him, all the believing Gentiles would have been forced to get circumcised and follow Jewish law. We shouldn’t attribute perfection to anyone.
Luke reports "that the contention between Paul and Barnabas was so sharp that they departed asunder one from the other." The cause of their disagreement could hardly have been small since it separated these two, who had been joined together for years in a holy partnership. Such incidents are recorded for our consolation. After all, it is a comfort to know that even saints might and do sin.
Luke reports "that the argument between Paul and Barnabas was so intense that they went their separate ways." The reason for their disagreement couldn't have been trivial since it split apart these two, who had been united for years in a sacred partnership. Such events are noted for our reassurance. After all, it is comforting to know that even saints can mess up.
Samson, David, and many other excellent men, fell into grievous sins. Job and Jeremiah cursed the day of their birth. Elijah and Jonah became weary of life and prayed for death. Such offenses on the part of the saints, the Scriptures record for the comfort of those who are near despair. No person has ever sunk so low that he cannot rise again. On the other hand, no man's standing is so secure that he may not fall. If Peter fell, I may fall. If he rose again, I may rise again. We have the same gifts that they had, the same Christ, the same baptism and the same Gospel, the same forgiveness of sins. They needed these saving ordinances just as much as we do.
Samson, David, and many other great figures fell into serious sins. Job and Jeremiah wished they had never been born. Elijah and Jonah grew tired of life and asked to die. The Scriptures record these failings of the saints to offer comfort to those who feel close to despair. No one has ever fallen so far that they can’t rise again. Conversely, no one is so secure that they can't stumble. If Peter fell, I might fall too. If he rose again, I can rise again. We have the same gifts they had, the same Christ, the same baptism, the same Gospel, and the same forgiveness of sins. They needed these saving rites just as much as we do.
VERSE 12. For before that certain came from James, he did eat with the Gentiles.
VERSE 12. For before some men came from James, he used to eat with the Gentiles.
The Gentiles who had been converted to faith in Christ, ate meats forbidden by the Law. Peter, visiting some of these Gentiles, ate meat and drank wine with them, although he knew that these things were forbidden in the Law. Paul declared that he did likewise, that he became as a Jew to the Jews, and to them that were without law, as without law. He ate and drank with the Gentiles unconcerned about the Jewish Law. When he was with the Jews, however, he abstained from all things forbidden in the Law, for he labored to serve all men, that he "might by all means save some." Paul does not reprove Peter for transgressing the Law, but for disguising his attitude to the Law.
The Gentiles who had converted to faith in Christ ate meats that were forbidden by the Law. Peter, while visiting some of these Gentiles, ate meat and drank wine with them, even though he knew these were against the Law. Paul said he did the same, that he became like a Jew to the Jews, and to those who were without the Law, he acted as if he were without the Law. He ate and drank with the Gentiles without worrying about the Jewish Law. However, when he was with the Jews, he avoided everything that was forbidden in the Law because he worked to serve all people, so that he "might by all means save some." Paul doesn't criticize Peter for breaking the Law, but for hiding his true feelings about the Law.
VERSE 12. But when they were come, he withdrew and separated himself, fearing them which were of the circumcision.
VERSE 12. But when they arrived, he stepped back and kept to himself, afraid of those who were part of the circumcision group.
Paul does not accuse Peter of malice or ignorance, but of lack of principle, in that he abstained from meats, because he feared the Jews that came from James. Peter's weak attitude endangered the principle of Christian liberty. It is the deduction rather than the fact which Paul reproves. To eat and to drink, or not to eat and drink, is immaterial. But to make the deduction "If you eat, you sin; if you abstain you are righteous"—this is wrong.
Paul doesn't blame Peter for being malicious or ignorant, but for lacking principle, as he avoided eating certain foods out of fear of the Jews who came from James. Peter's weak stance threatened the idea of Christian freedom. It's the conclusion, not the action itself, that Paul criticizes. Whether you eat and drink or not is irrelevant. But believing that "If you eat, you sin; if you don't eat, you're righteous"—that's wrong.
Meats may be refused for two reasons. First, they may be refused for the sake of Christian love. There is no danger connected with a refusal of meats for the sake of charity. To bear with the infirmity of a brother is a good thing. Paul himself taught and exemplified such thoughtfulness. Secondly, meats may be refused in the mistaken hope of thereby obtaining righteousness. When this is the purpose of abstaining from meats, we say, let charity go. To refrain from meats for this latter reason amounts to a denial of Christ. If we must lose one or the other, let us lose a friend and brother, rather than God, our Father.
Meats can be refused for two reasons. First, they can be turned down out of Christian love. There's no risk in refusing meat for the sake of charity. Supporting a brother in need is a good thing. Paul himself taught and demonstrated this kind of thoughtfulness. Secondly, meats may be refused in the misguided hope of gaining righteousness. When abstaining from meat is motivated by this reason, we say, forget about charity. Avoiding meat for this reason essentially denies Christ. If we have to choose between one or the other, let’s choose to lose a friend and brother instead of God, our Father.
Jerome, who understood not this passage, nor the whole epistle for that matter, excuses Peter's action on the ground "that it was done in ignorance." But Peter offended by giving the impression that he was indorsing the Law. By his example he encouraged Gentiles and Jews to forsake the truth of the Gospel. If Paul had not reproved him, there would have been a sliding back of Christians into the Jewish religion, and a return to the burdens of the Law.
Jerome, who didn’t understand this passage or the entire letter for that matter, defends Peter’s actions by saying “that it was done in ignorance.” However, Peter messed up by making it seem like he supported the Law. By his example, he encouraged both Gentiles and Jews to abandon the truth of the Gospel. If Paul hadn’t called him out, Christians might have backtracked into the Jewish religion and returned to the burdens of the Law.
It is surprising that Peter, excellent apostle that he was, should have been guilty of such vacillation. In a former council at Jerusalem he practically stood alone in defense of the truth that salvation is by faith, without the Law. Peter at that time valiantly defended the liberty of the Gospel. But now by abstaining from meats forbidden in the Law, he went against his better judgment. You have no idea what danger there is in customs and ceremonies. They so easily tend to error in works.
It’s surprising that Peter, as great an apostle as he was, could be guilty of such hesitation. In a previous meeting in Jerusalem, he basically stood alone in defending the truth that salvation comes through faith, not the Law. Back then, Peter boldly defended the freedom of the Gospel. But now, by avoiding foods banned in the Law, he went against what he really believed. You have no idea how dangerous traditions and rituals can be. They can easily lead to mistakes in how we act.
VERSE 13. And the other Jews dissembled likewise with him; insomuch that Barnabas also was carried away with their dissimulation.
VERSE 13. And the other Jews acted the same way as him; so much so that Barnabas was also influenced by their hypocrisy.
It is marvelous how God preserved the Church by one single person. Paul alone stood up for the truth, for Barnabas, his companion, was lost to him, and Peter was against him. Sometimes one lone person can do more in a conference than the whole assembly.
It’s amazing how God kept the Church safe through just one person. Paul stood up for the truth all on his own, since Barnabas, his friend, had turned away from him, and Peter was against him. Sometimes, one single person can make a bigger impact at a meeting than the entire group.
I mention this to urge all to learn how properly to differentiate between the Law and the Gospel, in order to avoid dissembling. When it come to the article of justification we must not yield, if we want to retain the truth of the Gospel.
I bring this up to encourage everyone to learn how to properly distinguish between the Law and the Gospel to avoid being deceptive. When it comes to the issue of justification, we must not back down if we want to hold on to the truth of the Gospel.
When the conscience is disturbed, do not seek advice from reason or from the Law, but rest your conscience in the grace of God and in His Word, and proceed as if you had never heard of the Law. The Law has its place and its own good time. While Moses was in the mountain where he talked with God face to face, he had no law, he made no law, he administered no law. But when he came down from the mountain, he was a lawgiver. The conscience must be kept above the Law, the body under the Law.
When your conscience is troubled, don’t look for guidance from reason or the Law; instead, find peace in God’s grace and His Word, and act as if the Law never existed. The Law has its time and place. While Moses was on the mountain speaking directly with God, he had no law, created no law, and enforced no law. But when he returned from the mountain, he became a lawgiver. The conscience should be prioritized over the Law, while the body should follow the Law.
Paul reproved Peter for no trifle, but for the chief article of Christian doctrine, which Peter's hypocrisy had endangered. For Barnabas and other Jews followed Peter's example. It is surprising that such good men as Peter, Barnabas, and others should fall into unexpected error, especially in a matter which they knew so well. To trust in our own strength, our own goodness, our own wisdom, is a perilous thing. Let us search the Scriptures with humility, praying that we may never lose the light of the Gospel. "Lord, increase our faith."
Paul confronted Peter not over something minor, but about a key aspect of Christian doctrine that Peter's hypocrisy threatened. Barnabas and other Jews followed Peter's lead. It's surprising that such good people as Peter, Barnabas, and others could fall into unexpected mistakes, especially regarding something they understood so well. Relying on our own strength, our own goodness, or our own wisdom is dangerous. Let’s study the Scriptures with humility, praying that we never lose the light of the Gospel. "Lord, increase our faith."
VERSE 14. But when I saw that they walked not uprightly according to the truth of the gospel.
VERSE 14. But when I noticed that they were not living according to the truth of the gospel.
No one except Paul had his eyes open. Consequently it was his duty to reprove Peter and his followers for swerving from the truth of the Gospel. It was no easy task for Paul to reprimand Peter. To the honor of Peter it must be said that he took the correction. No doubt, he freely acknowledged his fault.
No one except Paul was awake. Because of this, it was his responsibility to call out Peter and his followers for straying from the truth of the Gospel. It wasn't an easy job for Paul to reprimand Peter. To Peter's credit, he accepted the correction. There's no doubt he openly admitted his mistake.
The person who can rightly divide Law and Gospel has reason to thank God. He is a true theologian. I must confess that in times of temptation I do not always know how to do it. To divide Law and Gospel means to place the Gospel in heaven, and to keep the Law on earth; to call the righteousness of the Gospel heavenly, and the righteousness of the Law earthly; to put as much difference between the righteousness of the Gospel and that of the Law, as there is difference between day and night. If it is a question of faith or conscience, ignore the Law entirely. If it is a question of works, then lift high the lantern of works and the righteousness of the Law. If your conscience is oppressed with a sense of sin, talk to your conscience. Say: "You are now groveling in the dirt. You are now a laboring ass. Go ahead, and carry your burden. But why don't you mount up to heaven? There the Law cannot follow you!" Leave the ass burdened with laws behind in the valley. But your conscience, let it ascend with Isaac into the mountain.
The person who can clearly distinguish between Law and Gospel has a reason to be grateful to God. He is a true theologian. I have to admit that in times of temptation, I don’t always know how to do this. To separate Law and Gospel means to place the Gospel in heaven and keep the Law on earth; to recognize the righteousness of the Gospel as heavenly and the righteousness of the Law as earthly; to create a distinction between the righteousness of the Gospel and that of the Law, just like the difference between day and night. If it comes down to faith or conscience, completely set aside the Law. If it’s about actions, then raise high the standard of works and the righteousness of the Law. If your conscience is weighed down by a sense of sin, have a conversation with your conscience. Say: “You’re wallowing in dirt right now. You’re a burdened donkey. Go ahead, carry your load. But why don’t you rise up to heaven? There, the Law cannot follow you!” Leave the overwhelmed donkey behind in the valley. But let your conscience rise with Isaac up the mountain.
In civil life obedience to the law is severely required. In civil life Gospel, conscience, grace, remission of sins, Christ Himself, do not count, but only Moses with the lawbooks. If we bear in mind this distinction, neither Gospel nor Law shall trespass upon each other. The moment Law and sin cross into heaven, i.e., your conscience, kick them out. On the other hand, when grace wanders unto the earth, i.e., into the body, tell grace: "You have no business to be around the dreg and dung of this bodily life. You belong in heaven."
In everyday life, following the law is absolutely essential. In this context, the Gospel, conscience, grace, forgiveness of sins, and even Christ Himself don’t matter; what matters is Moses and the law. If we keep this distinction in mind, neither the Gospel nor the Law will interfere with each other. The moment the Law and sin intrude into heaven, meaning your conscience, you need to reject them. Conversely, when grace comes down to earth, meaning into the body, tell grace: "You have no place among the mess and struggles of this physical life. You belong in heaven."
By his compromising attitude Peter confused the separation of Law and Gospel. Paul had to do something about it. He reproved Peter, not to embarrass him, but to conserve the difference between the Gospel which justifies in heaven, and the Law which justifies on earth.
By taking a compromising stance, Peter confused the distinction between Law and Gospel. Paul needed to intervene. He corrected Peter, not to humiliate him, but to preserve the difference between the Gospel that justifies us in heaven and the Law that justifies us on earth.
The right separation between Law and Gospel is very important to know. Christian doctrine is impossible without it. Let all who love and fear God, diligently learn the difference, not only in theory but also in practice.
Understanding the correct distinction between Law and Gospel is crucial. Christian doctrine relies on it. Everyone who loves and fears God should work hard to grasp the difference, both in theory and in practice.
When your conscience gets into trouble, say to yourself: "There is a time to die, and a time to live; a time to learn the Law, and a time to unlearn the Law; a time to hear the Gospel, and a time to ignore the Gospel. Let the Law now depart, and let the Gospel enter, for now is the right time to hear the Gospel, and not the Law." However, when the conflict of conscience is over and external duties must be performed, close your ears to the Gospel, and open them wide to the Law.
When your conscience is feeling troubled, tell yourself: "There's a time to die and a time to live; a time to learn the Law and a time to forget it; a time to listen to the Gospel and a time to tune it out. Let the Law go for now and let the Gospel in, because now is the right moment to hear the Gospel, not the Law." However, once the inner conflict is resolved and you need to fulfill your responsibilities, shut your ears to the Gospel and listen closely to the Law.
VERSE 14. I said unto Peter before them all, If thou being a Jew, livest after the manner of Gentiles, and not as do the Jews, why compellest thou the Gentiles to live as do the Jews
VERSE 14. I said to Peter in front of everyone, If you, being a Jew, live like the Gentiles and not like the Jews, why are you forcing the Gentiles to live like the Jews?
To live as a Jew is nothing bad. To eat or not to eat pork, what difference does it make? But to play the Jew, and for conscience' sake to abstain from certain meats, is a denial of Christ. When Paul saw that Peter's attitude tended to this, he withstood Peter and said to him: "You know that the observance of the Law is not needed unto righteousness. You know that we are justified by faith in Christ. You know that we may eat all kinds of meats. Yet by your example you obligate the Gentiles to forsake Christ, and to return to the Law. You give them reason to think that faith is not sufficient unto salvation."
To live as a Jew isn’t bad at all. Whether or not you eat pork, what difference does it make? But pretending to be a Jew and, for the sake of conscience, avoiding certain meats is a denial of Christ. When Paul noticed that Peter’s attitude leaned this way, he confronted Peter and said, “You know that following the Law isn’t necessary for righteousness. You know that we are justified by faith in Christ. You know that we can eat all kinds of meats. Yet by your example, you’re making the Gentiles feel like they should abandon Christ and go back to the Law. You’re giving them a reason to think that faith alone isn’t enough for salvation.”
Peter did not say so, but his example said quite plainly that the observance of the Law must be added to faith in Christ, if men are to be saved. From Peter's example the Gentiles could not help but draw the conclusion that the Law was necessary unto salvation. If this error had been permitted to pass unchallenged, Christ would have lost out altogether.
Peter didn’t say it directly, but his actions made it clear that following the Law needed to be combined with faith in Christ for people to be saved. From Peter’s behavior, the Gentiles inevitably concluded that the Law was essential for salvation. If this mistake had been allowed to go unaddressed, it would have completely undermined Christ’s message.
The controversy involved the preservation of pure doctrine. In such a controversy Paul did not mind if anybody took offense.
The debate was about maintaining the integrity of pure doctrine. In this debate, Paul didn't care if anyone was offended.
VERSE 15. We who are Jews by nature, and not sinners of the Gentiles.
VERSE 15. We who are Jews by birth, and not sinners like the Gentiles.
"When we Jews compare ourselves with the Gentiles, we look pretty good. We have the Law, we have good works. Our rectitude dates from our birth, because the Jewish religion is natural to us. But all this does not make us righteous before God." Peter and the others lived up to the requirements of the Law. They had circumcision, the covenant, the promises, the apostleship. But because of these advantages they were not to think themselves righteous before God. None of these prerogatives spell faith in Christ, which alone can justify a person. We do not mean to imply that the Law is bad. We do not condemn the Law, circumcision, etc., for their failure to justify us. Paul spoke disparagingly of these ordinances, because the false apostles asserted that mankind is saved by them without faith. Paul could not let this assertion stand, for without faith all things are deadly.
"When we Jews compare ourselves to Gentiles, we seem pretty good. We have the Law, we do good works. Our righteousness has been with us since birth because the Jewish religion is natural to us. But none of this makes us righteous before God." Peter and the others lived according to the Law. They had circumcision, the covenant, the promises, and the apostleship. But because of these advantages, they shouldn’t consider themselves righteous before God. None of these privileges equate to faith in Christ, which alone can justify a person. We don’t mean to suggest that the Law is bad. We don’t condemn the Law, circumcision, etc., for not being able to justify us. Paul spoke negatively about these rules because false apostles claimed that people are saved by them without faith. Paul couldn’t let that claim go unchallenged because without faith, everything is meaningless.
VERSE 16. Knowing that a man is not justified by the works of the law, but by the faith of Jesus Christ.
VERSE 16. Understanding that a person is not justified by following the law, but through faith in Jesus Christ.
For the sake of argument let us suppose that you could fulfill the Law in the spirit of the first commandment of God: "Thou shalt love the Lord, thy God, with all thy heart." It would do you no good. A person simply is not justified by the works of the Law.
For the sake of argument, let's assume that you could follow the Law in the spirit of the first commandment of God: "You shall love the Lord your God with all your heart." It wouldn't do you any good. A person is simply not justified by the works of the Law.
The works of the Law, according to Paul, include the whole Law, judicial, ceremonial, moral. Now, if the performance of the moral law cannot justify, how can circumcision justify, when circumcision is part of the ceremonial law?
The works of the Law, according to Paul, include the entire Law: judicial, ceremonial, and moral. So, if following the moral law can't justify anyone, how can circumcision justify a person when it's part of the ceremonial law?
The demands of the Law may be fulfilled before and after justification. There were many excellent men among the pagans of old, men who never heard of justification. They lived moral lives. But that fact did not justify them. Peter, Paul, all Christians, live up to the Law. But that fact does not justify them. "For I know nothing by myself," says Paul, "yet am I not hereby justified." (I Cor. 4:4.)
The requirements of the Law can be met before and after someone is justified. There were many good people among the ancients who never learned about justification. They led moral lives. But that alone didn’t justify them. Peter, Paul, and all Christians follow the Law. But that doesn’t justify them either. "For I know nothing against myself," says Paul, "yet I am not justified by this." (I Cor. 4:4.)
The nefarious opinion of the papists, which attributes the merit of grace and the remission of sins to works, must here be emphatically rejected. The papists say that a good work performed before grace has been obtained, is able to secure grace for a person, because it is no more than right that God should reward a good deed. When grace has already been obtained, any good work deserves everlasting life as a due payment and reward for merit. For the first, God is no debtor, they say; but because God is good and just, it is no more than right (they say) that He should reward a good work by granting grace for the service. But when grace has already been obtained, they continue, God is in the position of a debtor, and is in duty bound to reward a good work with the gift of eternal life. This is the wicked teaching of the papacy.
The harmful belief of the Catholics, which claims that the merit of grace and the forgiveness of sins come from good works, must be strongly rejected here. They argue that a good deed done before receiving grace can earn grace for someone, since it's only fair that God rewards a good action. Once grace has been received, they state, any good work should be rewarded with eternal life as a rightful payment for merit. They say that in the first case, God doesn’t owe anything; however, they insist that because God is good and just, it’s only right for Him to reward a good deed by granting grace in return. But once grace has been received, they argue, God owes a debt and is obligated to reward a good work with the gift of eternal life. This is the corrupt teaching of the papacy.
Now, if I could perform any work acceptable to God and deserving of grace, and once having obtained grace my good works would continue to earn for me the right and reward of eternal life, why should I stand in need of the grace of God and the suffering and death of Christ? Christ would be of no benefit to me. Christ's mercy would be of no use to me.
Now, if I could do any work that God would accept and that would earn me grace, and if once I received grace my good deeds would keep earning me the right to eternal life, why would I need God's grace and the suffering and death of Christ? Christ wouldn't be of any benefit to me. Christ's mercy wouldn't be useful to me.
This shows how little insight the pope and the whole of his religious coterie have into spiritual matters, and how little they concern themselves with the spiritual health of their forlorn flocks. They cannot believe that the flesh is unable to think, speak, or do anything except against God. If they could see evil rooted in the nature of man, they would never entertain such silly dreams about man's merit or worthiness.
This shows how little understanding the pope and his entire religious group have about spiritual issues, and how little they care for the spiritual well-being of their lost followers. They can’t believe that the flesh can’t think, speak, or act in any way that isn’t against God. If they could recognize that evil is ingrained in human nature, they would never have such foolish ideas about human merit or worthiness.
With Paul we absolutely deny the possibility of self merit. God never yet gave to any person grace and everlasting life as a reward for merit. The opinions of the papists are the intellectual pipe-dreams of idle pates, that serve no other purpose but to draw men away from the true worship of God. The papacy is founded upon hallucinations.
With Paul, we completely deny the idea of earning merit. God has never given anyone grace and eternal life as a reward for their own merit. The views of the papists are just the fanciful ideas of lazy minds, serving only to distract people from genuine worship of God. The papacy is based on delusions.
The true way of salvation is this. First, a person must realize that he is a sinner, the kind of a sinner who is congenitally unable to do any good thing. "Whatsoever is not of faith, is sin." Those who seek to earn the grace of God by their own efforts are trying to please God with sins. They mock God, and provoke His anger. The first step on the way to salvation is to repent.
The true way to salvation is this: First, a person must recognize that they are a sinner, the kind of sinner who is naturally unable to do anything good. "Anything not from faith is sin." Those who try to earn God's grace through their own efforts are attempting to impress God with their sins. They mock God and provoke His anger. The first step toward salvation is to repent.
The second part is this. God sent His only-begotten Son into the world that we may live through His merit. He was crucified and killed for us. By sacrificing His Son for us God revealed Himself to us as a merciful Father who donates remission of sins, righteousness, and life everlasting for Christ's sake. God hands out His gifts freely unto all men. That is the praise and glory of His mercy.
The second part is this. God sent His only Son into the world so we can live through His goodness. He was crucified and killed for us. By sacrificing His Son, God showed us He is a merciful Father who offers forgiveness, righteousness, and eternal life for Christ's sake. God gives His gifts freely to everyone. That is the praise and glory of His mercy.
The scholastics explain the way of salvation in this manner. When a person happens to perform a good deed, God accepts it and as a reward for the good deed God pours charity into that person. They call it "charity infused." This charity is supposed to remain in the heart. They get wild when they are told that this quality of the heart cannot justify a person.
The scholars explain salvation like this: when someone does a good deed, God accepts it, and as a reward, God fills that person with charity. They refer to it as "infused charity." This charity is meant to stay in the heart. They get upset when they hear that this quality of the heart cannot justify a person.
They also claim that we are able to love God by our own natural strength, to love God above all things, at least to the extent that we deserve grace. And, say the scholastics, because God is not satisfied with a literal performance of the Law, but expects us to fulfill the Law according to the mind of the Lawgiver, therefore we must obtain from above a quality above nature, a quality which they call "formal righteousness."
They also argue that we can love God through our own natural abilities, to love God above everything else, at least to the degree that we deserve grace. And, according to the scholastics, since God isn't just looking for a strict adherence to the Law, but wants us to follow the Law in the spirit of the Lawgiver, we need to receive from above a quality that surpasses nature, which they refer to as "formal righteousness."
We say, faith apprehends Jesus Christ. Christian faith is not an inactive quality in the heart. If it is true faith it will surely take Christ for its object. Christ, apprehended by faith and dwelling in the heart, constitutes Christian righteousness, for which God gives eternal life.
We say that faith understands Jesus Christ. Christian faith isn't just a passive feeling in the heart. If it’s genuine faith, it will definitely focus on Christ as its object. Christ, understood by faith and residing in the heart, forms Christian righteousness, for which God grants eternal life.
In contrast to the doting dreams of the scholastics, we teach this: First a person must learn to know himself from the Law. With the prophet he will then confess: "All have sinned, and come short of the glory of God." And, "there is none that doeth good, no, not one." And, "against thee, thee only, have I sinned."
In contrast to the indulgent aspirations of the scholars, we teach this: First, a person must learn to understand themselves through the Law. With the prophet, they will then confess: "All have sinned and fall short of the glory of God." And, "there is no one who does good, not even one." And, "against you, you only, have I sinned."
Having been humbled by the Law, and having been brought to a right estimate of himself, a man will repent. He finds out that he is so depraved, that no strength, no works, no merits of his own will ever deliver him from his guilt. He will then understand the meaning of Paul's words: "I am sold under sin"; and "they are all under sin."
Having been humbled by the Law and having come to a proper understanding of himself, a person will repent. He realizes that he is so corrupted that no amount of strength, good deeds, or personal merits will ever free him from his guilt. He will then grasp the meaning of Paul's words: "I am sold under sin"; and "they are all under sin."
At this state a person begins to lament: "Who is going to help me?" In due time comes the Word of the Gospel, and says: "Son, thy sins are forgiven thee. Believe in Jesus Christ who was crucified for your sins. Remember, your sins have been imposed upon Christ."
At this point, a person starts to feel sorry for themselves: "Who’s going to help me?" Eventually, the message of the Gospel arrives and says: "Son, your sins are forgiven. Have faith in Jesus Christ, who was crucified for your sins. Remember, your sins were placed on Christ."
In this way are we delivered from sin. In this way are we justified and made heirs of everlasting life.
In this way, we are freed from sin. In this way, we are justified and become heirs of eternal life.
In order to have faith you must paint a true portrait of Christ. The scholastics caricature Christ into a judge and tormentor. But Christ is no law giver. He is the Lifegiver. He is the Forgiver of sins. You must believe that Christ might have atoned for the sins of the world with one single drop of His blood. Instead, He shed His blood abundantly in order that He might give abundant satisfaction for our sins.
To have faith, you need to create an accurate picture of Christ. The scholars turn Christ into a judge and tormentor. But Christ isn't a lawgiver; He is the Lifegiver. He is the Forgiver of sins. You must believe that Christ could have atoned for the world's sins with just one drop of His blood. Instead, He shed His blood generously so that He could provide ample satisfaction for our sins.
Here let me say, that these three things, faith, Christ, and imputation of righteousness, are to be joined together. Faith takes hold of Christ. God accounts this faith for righteousness.
Here, let me say that these three things—faith, Christ, and the imputation of righteousness—should be connected. Faith clings to Christ. God considers this faith as righteousness.
This imputation of righteousness we need very much, because we are far from perfect. As long as we have this body, sin will dwell in our flesh. Then, too, we sometimes drive away the Holy Spirit; we fall into sin, like Peter, David, and other holy men. Nevertheless we may always take recourse to this fact, "that our sins are covered," and that "God will not lay them to our charge." Sin is not held against us for Christ's sake. Where Christ and faith are lacking, there is no remission or covering of sins, but only condemnation.
We really need this imputation of righteousness because we are far from perfect. As long as we have this body, sin will remain in our flesh. Sometimes, we also drive away the Holy Spirit; we stumble into sin, just like Peter, David, and other faithful people. However, we can always rely on the fact that "our sins are covered" and that "God will not hold them against us." Sin is not counted against us because of Christ. Without Christ and faith, there is no forgiveness or covering of sins, only condemnation.
After we have taught faith in Christ, we teach good works. "Since you have found Christ by faith," we say, "begin now to work and do well. Love God and your neighbor. Call upon God, give thanks unto Him, praise Him, confess Him. These are good works. Let them flow from a cheerful heart, because you have remission of sin in Christ."
After we teach faith in Christ, we teach about doing good works. "Now that you’ve found Christ through faith," we say, "start working and doing good. Love God and your neighbor. Pray to God, thank Him, praise Him, and confess your faith. These are good works. Let them come from a joyful heart because you have forgiveness of sins in Christ."
When crosses and afflictions come our way, we bear them patiently. "For Christ's yoke is easy, and His burden is light." When sin has been pardoned, and the conscience has been eased of its dreadful load, a Christian can endure all things in Christ.
When challenges and hardships come our way, we accept them with patience. "For Christ's yoke is easy, and His burden is light." When sin is forgiven, and the conscience is freed from its heavy weight, a Christian can handle anything through Christ.
To give a short definition of a Christian: A Christian is not somebody who chalks(sp) sin, because of his faith in Christ. This doctrine brings comfort to consciences in serious trouble. When a person is a Christian he is above law and sin. When the Law accuses him, and sin wants to drive the wits out of him, a Christian looks to Christ. A Christian is free. He has no master except Christ. A Christian is greater than the whole world.
To put it simply, a Christian isn't someone who ignores sin because of their faith in Christ. This belief provides comfort to those with troubled consciences. When someone is a Christian, they're above the law and sin. When the law points fingers at them and sin tries to overwhelm them, a Christian turns to Christ. A Christian is free. They have no master except Christ. A Christian is greater than the whole world.
VERSE 16. Even we have believed in Jesus Christ, that we might be justified.
VERSE 16. Even we have put our faith in Jesus Christ, so that we could be justified.
The true way of becoming a Christian is to be justified by faith in Jesus Christ, and not by the works of the Law.
The real path to becoming a Christian is to be justified by faith in Jesus Christ, not by the works of the Law.
We know that we must also teach good works, but they must be taught in their proper turn, when the discussion is concerning works and not the article of justification.
We understand that we also need to teach good deeds, but they should be addressed at the right time, when the conversation is about actions and not about the matter of justification.
Here the question arises by what means are we justified? We answer with Paul, "By faith only in Christ are we pronounced righteous, and not by works." Not that we reject good works. Far from it. But we will not allow ourselves to be removed from the anchorage of our salvation.
Here the question comes up about how we are justified. We respond with Paul, "We are declared righteous only by faith in Christ, not by our deeds." This doesn’t mean we reject good works. Not at all. But we won't let ourselves be swayed away from the foundation of our salvation.
The Law is a good thing. But when the discussion is about justification, then is no time to drag in the Law. When we discuss justification we ought to speak of Christ and the benefits He has brought us.
The Law is a good thing. But when we talk about justification, it's not the right time to bring up the Law. When we discuss justification, we should focus on Christ and the benefits He has given us.
Christ is no sheriff. He is "the Lamb of God, which taketh away the sin of the world." (John 1:29.)
Christ isn't a sheriff. He is "the Lamb of God, who takes away the sin of the world." (John 1:29.)
VERSE 16. That we might be justified by the faith of Christ, and not by the works of the Law.
VERSE 16. That we might be made right through the faith of Christ, and not by the actions dictated by the Law.
We do not mean to say that the Law is bad. Only it is not able to justify us. To be at peace with God, we have need of a far better mediator than Moses or the Law. We must know that we are nothing. We must understand that we are merely beneficiaries and recipients of the treasures of Christ.
We’re not saying that the Law is bad. It just can’t justify us. To be at peace with God, we need a much better mediator than Moses or the Law. We have to realize that we are nothing. We need to understand that we are just beneficiaries and recipients of the gifts of Christ.
So far, the words of Paul were addressed to Peter. Now Paul turns to the Galatians and makes this summary statement:
So far, Paul has been speaking to Peter. Now he turns to the Galatians and makes this summary statement:
VERSE 16. For by the works of the law shall no flesh be justified.
VERSE 16. No one will be justified by following the law.
By the term "flesh" Paul does not understand manifest vices. Such sins he usually calls by their proper names, as adultery, fornication, etc. By "flesh" Paul understands what Jesus meant in the third chapter of John, "That which is born of the flesh is flesh". (John 3:6.) "Flesh" here means the whole nature of man, inclusive of reason and instincts. "This flesh," says Paul, "is not justified by the works of the law."
By "flesh," Paul doesn't refer to obvious vices. He typically names these sins directly, like adultery or fornication. When Paul talks about "flesh," he's referring to what Jesus meant in the third chapter of John, "That which is born of the flesh is flesh." (John 3:6.) Here, "flesh" means all of human nature, including both reason and instincts. Paul says, "This flesh is not justified by the works of the law."
The papists do not believe this. They say, "A person who performs this good deed or that, deserves the forgiveness of his sins. A person who joins this or that holy order, has the promise of everlasting life."
The Catholics don't believe this. They say, "Someone who does this good deed or that one deserves to have their sins forgiven. A person who joins this or that religious order is guaranteed eternal life."
To me it is a miracle that the Church, so long surrounded by vicious sects, has been able to survive at all. God must have been able to call a few who in their failure to discover any good in themselves to cite against the wrath and judgment of God, simply took to the suffering and death of Christ, and were saved by this simple faith.
To me, it's a miracle that the Church, having been surrounded for so long by harmful sects, has managed to survive at all. God must have called a few people who, in their inability to find any good within themselves to counter the wrath and judgment of God, simply turned to the suffering and death of Christ, and were saved by this straightforward faith.
Nevertheless God has punished the contempt of the Gospel and of Christ on the part of the papists, by turning them over to a reprobate state of mind in which they reject the Gospel, and receive with gusto the abominable rules, ordinances, and traditions of men in preference to the Word of God, until they went so far as to forbid marriage. God punished them justly, because they blasphemed the only Son of God.
Nevertheless, God has punished the disdain for the Gospel and Christ exhibited by the papists by allowing them to fall into a warped state of mind where they reject the Gospel and eagerly embrace the terrible rules, regulations, and traditions of men over the Word of God, even going so far as to prohibit marriage. God justified this punishment because they blasphemed the only Son of God.
This is, then, our general conclusion: "By the works of the law shall no flesh be justified."
This is our overall conclusion: "No one will be justified by doing the works of the law."
VERSE 17. But if, while we seek to be justified by Christ, we ourselves also are found sinners, is therefore Christ the minister of sin? God forbid.
VERSE 17. But if, while we try to be justified by Christ, we ourselves are still found to be sinners, does that mean Christ is a servant of sin? Absolutely not.
Either we are not justified by Christ, or we are not justified by the Law. The fact is, we are justified by Christ. Hence, we are not justified by the Law. If we observe the Law in order to be justified, or after having been justified by Christ, we think we must further be justified by the Law, we convert Christ into a legislator and a minister of sin.
Either we are not justified by Christ, or we are not justified by the Law. The reality is, we are justified by Christ. Therefore, we are not justified by the Law. If we follow the Law to be justified, or if after being justified by Christ we believe we need to be justified by the Law, we make Christ into a lawgiver and a servant of sin.
"What are these false apostles doing?" Paul cries. "They are turning Law into grace, and grace into Law. They are changing Moses into Christ, and Christ into Moses. By teaching that besides Christ and His righteousness the performance of the Law is necessary unto salvation, they put the Law in the place of Christ, they attribute to the Law the power to save, a power that belongs to Christ only."
"What are these fake apostles up to?" Paul exclaims. "They’re twisting the Law into grace and grace into the Law. They’re transforming Moses into Christ and Christ back into Moses. By saying that, along with Christ and His righteousness, following the Law is needed for salvation, they’re putting the Law where Christ should be. They’re giving the Law the ability to save, a power that only belongs to Christ."
The papists quote the words of Christ: "If thou wilt enter into life, keep the commandments." (Matt. 19:17.) With His own words they deny Christ and abolish faith in Him. Christ is made to lose His good name, His office, and His glory, and is demoted to the status of a law enforcer, reproving, terrifying, and chasing poor sinners around.
The Catholics quote the words of Christ: "If you want to enter life, keep the commandments." (Matt. 19:17.) With His own words, they deny Christ and undermine faith in Him. Christ is made to lose His good name, His role, and His glory, and is reduced to being a law enforcer, scolding, intimidating, and chasing after poor sinners.
The proper office of Christ is to raise the sinner, and extricate him from his sins.
The main role of Christ is to lift the sinner up and free him from his sins.
Papists and Anabaptists deride us because we so earnestly require faith. "Faith," they say, "makes men reckless." What do these law-workers know about faith, when they are so busy calling people back from baptism, from faith, from the promises of Christ to the Law?
Papists and Anabaptists mock us because we insist on the importance of faith. "Faith," they claim, "makes people careless." What do these law workers understand about faith when they are so focused on pulling people away from baptism, from faith, and from the promises of Christ back to the Law?
With their doctrine these lying sects of perdition deface the benefits of Christ to this day. They rob Christ of His glory as the Justifier of mankind and cast Him into the role of a minister of sin. They are like the false apostles. There is not a single one among them who knows the difference between law and grace.
With their beliefs, these deceitful groups are still undermining the benefits of Christ today. They steal Christ's glory as the Justifier of humanity and reduce Him to a mere servant of sin. They resemble the false apostles. Not one of them understands the difference between law and grace.
We can tell the difference. We do not here and now argue whether we ought to do good works, or whether the Law is any good, or whether the Law ought to be kept at all. We will discuss these questions some other time. We are now concerned with justification. Our opponents refuse to make this distinction. All they can do is to bellow that good works ought to be done. We know that. We know that good works ought to be done, but we will talk about that when the proper time comes. Now we are dealing with justification, and here good works should not be so much as mentioned.
We can tell the difference. Right now, we’re not arguing about whether we should do good works, if the Law is useful, or if the Law should even be followed. We’ll talk about those questions another time. Right now, we’re focused on justification. Our opponents refuse to see this distinction. All they do is shout that good works need to be done. We understand that. We know good works need to be done, but we’ll discuss that when the time is right. For now, we’re dealing with justification, and good works shouldn’t even be brought up.
Paul's argument has often comforted me. He argues: "If we who have been justified by Christ are counted unrighteous, why seek justification in Christ at all? If we are justified by the Law, tell me, what has Christ achieved by His death, by His preaching, by His victory over sin and death? Either we are justified by Christ, or we are made worse sinners by Him."
Paul's argument has often comforted me. He argues: "If we who have been justified by Christ are considered unrighteous, why pursue justification in Christ at all? If we are justified by the Law, then what has Christ accomplished through His death, His preaching, and His victory over sin and death? Either we are justified by Christ, or we are made worse sinners by Him."
The Sacred Scriptures, particularly those of the New Testament, make frequent mention of faith in Christ. "Whosoever believeth in him is saved, shall not perish, shall have everlasting life, is not judged," etc. In open contradiction to the Scriptures, our opponents misquote, "He that believeth in Christ is condemned, because he has faith without works." Our opponents turn everything topsy-turvy. They make Christ over into a murderer, and Moses into a savior. Is not this horrible blasphemy?
The Sacred Scriptures, especially the New Testament, often talk about faith in Christ. "Anyone who believes in him will be saved, will not perish, will have everlasting life, will not be judged," and so on. In direct contradiction to the Scriptures, our opponents twist the words, saying, "Whoever believes in Christ is condemned because he has faith without works." They completely distort everything. They turn Christ into a murderer and Moses into a savior. Isn’t this terrible blasphemy?
VERSE 17. Is therefore Christ the minister of sin?
VERSE 17. Is Christ then the servant of sin?
This is Hebrew phraseology, also used by Paul in II Corinthians, chapter 3. There Paul speaks of two ministers: The minister of the letter, and the minister of the spirit; the minister of the Law, and the minister of grace; the minister of death, and the minister of life. "Moses," says Paul, "is the minister of the Law, of sin, wrath, death, and condemnation."
This is Hebrew phrasing, also used by Paul in II Corinthians, chapter 3. There, Paul talks about two ministers: the minister of the letter and the minister of the spirit; the minister of the Law and the minister of grace; the minister of death and the minister of life. "Moses," Paul says, "is the minister of the Law, sin, wrath, death, and condemnation."
Whoever teaches that good works are indispensable unto salvation, that to gain heaven a person must suffer afflictions and follow the example of Christ and of the saints, is a minister of the Law, of sin, wrath, and of death, for the conscience knows how impossible it is for a person to fulfill the Law. Why, the Law makes trouble even for those who have the Holy Spirit. What will not the Law do in the case of the wicked who do not even have the Holy Spirit?
Whoever teaches that good works are essential for salvation, and that to reach heaven one must endure hardships and follow the example of Christ and the saints, is promoting the Law, which leads to sin, wrath, and death. The conscience knows how impossible it is for anyone to completely fulfill the Law. After all, the Law causes issues even for those who possess the Holy Spirit. Imagine what the Law does to those who are wicked and don’t even have the Holy Spirit.
The Law requires perfect obedience. It condemns all who do not accomplish the will of God. But show me a person who is able to render perfect obedience. The Law cannot justify. It can only condemn according to the passage: "Cursed is every one that continueth not in all things which are written in the book of the law to do them."
The Law demands complete obedience. It condemns anyone who doesn’t fulfill God’s will. But show me someone who can provide perfect obedience. The Law can't justify anyone. It can only condemn, as stated in the passage: "Cursed is everyone who does not continue to do everything written in the book of the law."
Paul has good reason for calling the minister of the Law the minister of sin, for the Law reveals our sinfulness. The realization of sin in turn frightens the heart and drives it to despair. Therefore all exponents of the Law and of works deserve to be called tyrants and oppressors.
Paul has a valid reason for referring to the minister of the Law as the minister of sin, because the Law exposes our sinful nature. This awareness of sin, in turn, instills fear and leads to despair. Thus, all proponents of the Law and of works can rightly be seen as tyrants and oppressors.
The purpose of the Law is to reveal sin. That this is the purpose of the Law can be seen from the account of the giving of the Law as reported in the nineteenth and twentieth chapters of Exodus. Moses brought the people out of their tents to have God speak to them personally from a cloud. But the people trembled with fear, fled, and standing aloof they begged Moses: "Speak thou with us, and we will hear: but let not God speak with us, lest we die." The proper office of the Law is to lead us out of our tents, in other words, out of the security of our self-trust, into the presence of God, that we may perceive His anger at our sinfulness.
The purpose of the Law is to reveal sin. This can be seen in the account of how the Law was given, as described in the nineteenth and twentieth chapters of Exodus. Moses brought the people out of their tents so they could hear God speak to them personally from a cloud. However, the people were terrified, ran away, and stood back, asking Moses: "You speak to us, and we’ll listen; but don’t let God speak to us, or we’ll die." The main role of the Law is to bring us out of our comfort zones, or out of our false sense of security, and into the presence of God, so we can recognize His anger towards our sin.
All who say that faith alone in Christ does not justify a person, convert Christ into a minister of sin, a teacher of the Law, and a cruel tyrant who requires the impossible. All merit-seekers take Christ for a new lawgiver.
All who claim that faith alone in Christ doesn’t justify a person turn Christ into a minister of sin, a teacher of the Law, and a harsh tyrant who demands the impossible. All those seeking merit see Christ as a new lawgiver.
In conclusion, if the Law is the minister of sin, it is at the same time the minister of wrath and death. As the Law reveals sin it fills a person with the fear of death and condemnation. Eventually the conscience wakes up to the fact that God is angry. If God is angry with you, He will destroy and condemn you forever. Unable to stand the thought of the wrath and judgment of God, many a person commits suicide.
In conclusion, if the Law is the authority on sin, it also brings about wrath and death. As the Law exposes sin, it fills a person with fear of death and judgment. Eventually, the conscience realizes that God is angry. If God is angry with you, He will destroy and condemn you forever. Unable to bear the thought of God's wrath and judgment, many people take their own lives.
VERSE 17. God forbid.
No way.
Christ is not the minister of sin, but the Dispenser of righteousness and the Giver of life. Christ is Lord over law, sin and death. All who believe in Him are delivered from law, sin and death.
Christ is not the minister of sin but the provider of righteousness and the giver of life. Christ is in charge of the law, sin, and death. Everyone who believes in Him is freed from the law, sin, and death.
The Law drives us away from God, but Christ reconciles God unto us, for "He is the Lamb of God, that taketh away the sins of the world." Now if the sin of the world is taken away, it is taken away from me. If sin is taken away, the wrath of God and His condemnation are also taken away. Let us practice this blessed conviction.
The Law separates us from God, but Christ brings us back to Him, for "He is the Lamb of God who takes away the sins of the world." If the sin of the world is removed, it is removed from me. If sin is gone, then God's anger and condemnation are also gone. Let's embrace this wonderful truth.
VERSE 18. For if I build again the things which I destroyed, I make myself a transgressor.
VERSE 18. For if I rebuild what I tore down, I make myself a wrongdoer.
"I have not preached to the end that I build again the things which I destroyed. If I should do so, I would not only be laboring in vain, but I would make myself guilty of a great wrong. By the ministry of the Gospel I have destroyed sin, heaviness of heart, wrath, and death. I have abolished the Law, so that it should not bother your conscience any more. Should I now once again establish the Law, and set up the rule of Moses? This is exactly what I should be doing, if I would urge circumcision and the performance of the Law as necessary unto salvation. Instead of righteousness and life, I would restore sin and death."
"I haven't preached so that I would rebuild what I've already destroyed. If I did that, I'd not only be wasting my efforts, but I'd also be committing a serious wrong. Through the ministry of the Gospel, I've put an end to sin, sorrow, anger, and death. I've done away with the Law, so it wouldn't trouble your conscience anymore. Should I now go back and re-establish the Law, and enforce the rules of Moses? That's exactly what I'd be doing if I insisted that circumcision and following the Law are necessary for salvation. Instead of bringing righteousness and life, I'd be bringing back sin and death."
By the grace of God we know that we are justified through faith in Christ alone. We do not mingle law and grace, faith and works. We keep them far apart. Let every true Christian mark the distinction between law and grace, and mark it well.
By God's grace, we understand that we are justified through faith in Christ alone. We do not mix law and grace, or faith and works. We keep them completely separate. Every true Christian should clearly recognize the difference between law and grace, and remember it well.
We must not drag good works into the article of justification as the monks do who maintain that not only good works, but also the punishment which evildoers suffer for their wicked deeds, deserve everlasting life. When a criminal is brought to the place of execution, the monks try to comfort him in this manner: "You want to die willingly and patiently, and then you will merit remission of your sins and eternal life." What cruelty is this, that a wretched thief, murderer, robber should be so miserably misguided in his extreme distress, that at the very point of death he should be denied the sweet promises of Christ, and directed to hope for pardon of his sins in the willingness and patience with which he is about to suffer death for his crimes? The monks are showing him the paved way to hell.
We shouldn't mix good deeds into the discussion of justification like the monks do, who claim that not only good works but also the punishment that wrongdoers face for their evil actions can earn them eternal life. When a criminal faces execution, the monks try to console him by saying, "If you accept your fate willingly and patiently, you will earn forgiveness for your sins and eternal life." How cruel is it that a miserable thief, murderer, or robber could be so badly misled in his final moments, being denied the comforting promises of Christ? Instead, he’s directed to find hope for forgiveness in the acceptance and patience he is supposed to show while facing death for his actions. The monks are leading him straight to hell.
These hypocrites do not know the first thing about grace, the Gospel, or Christ. They retain the appearance and the name of the Gospel and of Christ for a decoy only. In their confessional writings faith or the merit of Christ are never mentioned. In their writings they play up the merits of man, as can readily be seen from the following form of absolution used among the monks.
These hypocrites have no understanding of grace, the Gospel, or Christ. They only keep the appearance and the name of the Gospel and of Christ as a façade. In their confessional writings, they never mention faith or the merit of Christ. Instead, they emphasize the merits of humans, as can clearly be seen from the following form of absolution used among the monks.
"God forgive thee, brother. The merit of the passion of our Lord Jesus Christ, and of the blessed Saint Mary, always a virgin, and of all the saints; the merit of thy order, the strictness of thy religion, the humility of thy profession, the contrition of thy heart, the good works thou hast done and shalt do for the love of our Lord Jesus Christ, be available unto thee for the remission of thy sins, the increase of thy worth and grace, and the reward of everlasting life. Amen."
"God forgive you, brother. May the merit of the passion of our Lord Jesus Christ, the blessed Saint Mary, always a virgin, and all the saints; the merit of your order, the discipline of your faith, the humility of your commitment, the sorrow in your heart, the good works you have done and will do for the love of our Lord Jesus Christ be granted to you for the forgiveness of your sins, the growth of your worth and grace, and the reward of eternal life. Amen."
True, the merit of Christ is mentioned in this formula of absolution. But if you look closer you will notice that Christ's merit is belittled, while monkish merits are aggrandized. They confess Christ with their lips, and at the same time deny His power to save. I myself was at one time entangled in this error. I thought Christ was a judge and had to be pacified by a strict adherence to the rules of my order. But now I give thanks unto God, the Father of all mercies, who has called me out of darkness into the light of His glorious Gospel, and has granted unto me the saving knowledge of Christ Jesus, my Lord.
True, the merit of Christ is mentioned in this formula of absolution. But if you look closer, you’ll notice that Christ's merit is downplayed, while the merits of monks are exaggerated. They acknowledge Christ with their words but deny His power to save. I, too, was once caught up in this mistake. I believed that Christ was a judge who needed to be appeased by strictly following the rules of my order. But now I thank God, the Father of all mercies, who has brought me out of darkness into the light of His glorious Gospel and has given me the saving knowledge of Christ Jesus, my Lord.
We conclude with Paul, that we are justified by faith in Christ, without the Law. Once a person has been justified by Christ, he will not be unproductive of good, but as a good tree he will bring forth good fruit. A believer has the Holy Spirit, and the Holy Spirit will not permit a person to remain idle, but will put him to work and stir him up to the love of God, to patient suffering in affliction, to prayer, thanksgiving, to the habit of charity towards all men.
We conclude with Paul that we are justified by faith in Christ, apart from the Law. Once someone has been justified by Christ, they will not be unproductive; like a good tree, they will produce good fruit. A believer has the Holy Spirit, and the Holy Spirit won’t let someone stay idle but will encourage them to love God, to be patient in suffering, to pray, give thanks, and develop a habit of charity towards everyone.
VERSE 19. For I through the law am dead to the law, that I might live unto God.
VERSE 19. Because of the law, I am no longer bound by the law, so that I can live for God.
This cheering form of speech is frequently met with in the Scriptures, particularly in the writings of St. Paul, when the Law is set against the Law, and sin is made to oppose sin, and death is arrayed against death, and hell is turned loose against hell, as in the following quotations: "Thou hast led captivity captive," Psalm 68:18. "O death, I will be thy plagues; O grave, I will be thy destruction," Hosea 13:14. "And for sin, condemned sin in the flesh," Romans 8:3.
This uplifting way of speaking often appears in the Scriptures, especially in St. Paul's writings, where the Law confronts the Law, sin battles against sin, death stands against death, and hell challenges hell, as seen in the following quotes: "You have taken captivity captive," Psalm 68:18. "O death, I will be your plagues; O grave, I will be your destruction," Hosea 13:14. "And for sin, He condemned sin in the flesh," Romans 8:3.
Here Paul plays the Law against the Law, as if to say: "The Law of Moses condemns me; but I have another law, the law of grace and liberty which condemns the accusing Law of Moses."
Here Paul contrasts the Law with the Law, as if to say: "The Law of Moses condemns me; but I have another law, the law of grace and freedom that judges the accusing Law of Moses."
On first sight Paul seems to be advancing a strange and ugly heresy. He says, "I am dead to the law, that I might live unto God." The false apostles said the very opposite. They said, "If you do not live to the law, you are dead unto God."
At first glance, Paul appears to promote a strange and unattractive belief. He states, "I am dead to the law so that I can live for God." The false apostles claimed the exact opposite. They insisted, "If you don't live according to the law, you are dead to God."
The doctrine of our opponents is similar to that of the false apostles in Paul's day. Our opponents teach, "If you want to live unto God, you must live after the Law, for it is written, Do this and thou shalt live." Paul, on the other hand, teaches, "We cannot live unto God unless we are dead unto the Law." If we are dead unto the Law, the Law can have no power over us.
The beliefs of our opponents are like those of the false apostles during Paul's time. They say, "If you want to live for God, you have to follow the Law, because it says, 'Do this and you will live.'" Paul, however, teaches that "we can't live for God unless we are dead to the Law." If we are dead to the Law, then it has no power over us.
Paul does not only refer to the Ceremonial Law, but to the whole Law. We are not to think that the Law is wiped out. It stays. It continues to operate in the wicked. But a Christian is dead to the Law. For example, Christ by His resurrection became free from the grave, and yet the grave remains. Peter was delivered from prison, yet the prison remains. The Law is abolished as far as I am concerned, when it has driven me into the arms of Christ. Yet the Law continues to exist and to function. But it no longer exists for me.
Paul isn’t just talking about the Ceremonial Law; he’s referring to the entire Law. We shouldn’t think that the Law is gone. It still exists. It continues to affect the wicked. However, a Christian is free from the Law. For instance, Christ, through His resurrection, overcame death, yet death still exists. Peter was released from prison, but the prison still exists. The Law no longer applies to me when it has led me to Christ. Yet the Law continues to exist and operate. But it no longer applies to me.
"I have nothing to do with the Law," cries Paul. He could not have uttered anything more devastating to the prestige of the Law. He declares that he does not care for the Law, that he does not intend ever to be justified by the Law.
"I have nothing to do with the Law," Paul exclaims. He couldn't have said anything more damaging to the reputation of the Law. He claims that he doesn't care about the Law and that he has no intention of ever being justified by it.
To be dead to the Law means to be free of the Law. What right, then, has the Law to accuse me, or to hold anything against me? When you see a person squirming in the clutches of the Law, say to him: "Brother, get things straight. You let the Law talk to your conscience. Make it talk to your flesh. Wake up, and believe in Jesus Christ, the Conqueror of Law and sin. Faith in Christ will lift you high above the Law into the heaven of grace. Though Law and sin remain, they no longer concern you, because you are dead to the Law and dead to sin."
To be free from the Law means you are no longer bound by it. So, what right does the Law have to accuse me or hold anything against me? When you see someone struggling under the burden of the Law, tell them: "Hey, get this straight. You’ve let the Law dictate your conscience. Make it speak to your actions. Wake up and believe in Jesus Christ, the one who defeated the Law and sin. Having faith in Christ will lift you above the Law into a state of grace. Even though the Law and sin still exist, they don't matter to you anymore because you are free from the Law and free from sin."
Blessed is the person who knows how to use this truth in times of distress. He can talk. He can say: "Mr. Law, go ahead and accuse me as much as you like. I know I have committed many sins, and I continue to sin daily. But that does not bother me. You have got to shout louder, Mr. Law. I am deaf, you know. Talk as much as you like, I am dead to you. If you want to talk to me about my sins, go and talk to my flesh. Belabor that, but don't talk to my conscience. My conscience is a lady and a queen, and has nothing to do with the likes of you, because my conscience lives to Christ under another law, a new and better law, the law of grace."
Blessed is the person who knows how to use this truth in tough times. He can speak up. He can say: "Mr. Law, go ahead and accuse me as much as you want. I know I've sinned plenty and keep sinning every day. But that doesn’t bother me. You’ll have to shout louder, Mr. Law. I can't hear you, you know. Talk all you want, I’m dead to you. If you want to discuss my sins, go talk to my body. Go ahead and beat that down, but don’t talk to my conscience. My conscience is a lady and a queen, and she has nothing to do with the likes of you, because my conscience belongs to Christ under a different law, a new and better law, the law of grace."
We have two propositions: To live unto the Law, is to die unto God. To die unto the Law, is to live unto God. These two propositions go against reason. No law-worker can ever understand them. But see to it that you understand them. The Law can never justify and save a sinner. The Law can only accuse, terrify, and kill him. Therefore to live unto the Law is to die unto God. Vice versa, to die unto the Law is to live unto God. If you want to live unto God, bury the Law, and find life through faith in Christ Jesus.
We have two statements: Living by the Law means dying to God. Dying to the Law means living for God. These two statements defy logic. No one who relies on the law can grasp them. But make sure you understand them. The Law can never justify or save a sinner. The Law can only accuse, frighten, and condemn them. So, living by the Law is like dying to God. On the flip side, dying to the Law means living for God. If you want to truly live for God, let go of the Law and discover life through faith in Christ Jesus.
We have enough arguments right here to conclude that justification is by faith alone. How can the Law effect our justification, when Paul so plainly states that we must be dead to the Law if we want to live unto God? If we are dead to the Law and the Law is dead to us, how can it possibly contribute anything to our justification? There is nothing left for us but to be justified by faith alone.
We have enough reasons right here to conclude that justification is based solely on faith. How can the Law affect our justification when Paul clearly says that we must be dead to the Law if we want to live for God? If we are dead to the Law and the Law is dead to us, how can it possibly add anything to our justification? There's nothing left for us but to be justified by faith alone.
This nineteenth verse is loaded with consolation. It fortifies a person against every danger. It allows you to argue like this:
This nineteenth verse is full of comfort. It strengthens a person against any threat. It lets you think like this:
"I confess I have sinned." "Then God will punish you." "No, He will not do that." "Why not? Does not the Law say so?" "I have nothing to do with the Law." "How so?" "I have another law, the law of liberty." "What do you mean—'liberty'?" "The liberty of Christ, for Christ has made me free from the Law that held me down. That Law is now in prison itself, held captive by grace and liberty."
"I admit I've messed up." "Then God will punish you." "No, He won't do that." "Why not? Doesn't the Law say so?" "I don't care about the Law." "What do you mean?" "I follow a different law, the law of freedom." "What do you mean by 'freedom'?" "The freedom of Christ, because Christ has freed me from the Law that kept me trapped. That Law is now locked away, held captive by grace and freedom."
By faith in Christ a person may gain such sure and sound comfort, that he need not fear the devil, sin, death, or any evil. "Sir Devil," he may say, "I am not afraid of you. I have a Friend whose name is Jesus Christ, in whom I believe. He has abolished the Law, condemned sin, vanquished death, and destroyed hell for me. He is bigger than you, Satan. He has licked you, and holds you down. You cannot hurt me." This is the faith that overcomes the devil.
By believing in Christ, a person can find such solid and genuine comfort that they don’t need to fear the devil, sin, death, or any evil. "Hey, Devil," they might say, "I’m not scared of you. I have a Friend named Jesus Christ, whom I trust. He has gotten rid of the Law, defeated sin, conquered death, and destroyed hell for me. He’s greater than you, Satan. He has beaten you and keeps you down. You can’t harm me." This is the faith that conquers the devil.
Paul manhandles the Law. He treats the Law as if it were a thief and a robber He treats the Law as contemptible to the conscience, in order that those who believe in Christ may take courage to defy the Law, and say: "Mr. Law, I am a sinner. What are you going to do about it?"
Paul wrestles with the Law. He treats the Law like it’s a thief and a robber. He views the Law as something that disrespects the conscience, so that those who believe in Christ can feel brave enough to challenge the Law and say: "Hey, Law, I'm a sinner. What are you going to do about it?"
Or take death. Christ is risen from death. Why should we now fear the grave? Against my death I set another death, or rather life, my life in Christ.
Or take death. Christ has risen from the dead. Why should we fear the grave now? In opposition to my death, I hold onto another death, or rather life—my life in Christ.
Oh, the sweet names of Jesus! He is called my law against the Law, my sin against sin, my death against death. Translated, it means that He is my righteousness, my life, my everlasting salvation. For this reason was He made the law of the Law, the sin of sin, the death of death, that He might redeem me from the curse of the Law. He permitted the Law to accuse Him, sin to condemn Him, and death to take Him, to abolish the Law, to condemn sin, and to destroy death for me.
Oh, the beautiful names of Jesus! He is my law against the Law, my sin against sin, my death against death. In simpler terms, He is my righteousness, my life, my eternal salvation. That's why He became the law of the Law, the sin of sin, the death of death, so that He could save me from the curse of the Law. He allowed the Law to accuse Him, sin to condemn Him, and death to take Him, in order to cancel the Law, condemn sin, and destroy death for me.
This peculiar form of speech sounds much sweeter than if Paul had said: "I through liberty am dead to the law." By putting it in this way, "I through the law am dead to the law," he opposes one law with another law, and has them fight it out.
This strange way of speaking sounds much nicer than if Paul had just said, "I am dead to the law through liberty." By phrasing it like this, "I am dead to the law through the law," he pits one law against another and lets them clash.
In this masterly fashion Paul draws our attention away from the Law, sin, death, and every evil, and centers it upon Christ.
In this impressive way, Paul shifts our focus from the Law, sin, death, and all evil, and directs it towards Christ.
VERSE 20. I am crucified with Christ.
VERSE 20. I am crucified with Christ.
Christ is Lord over the Law, because He was crucified unto the Law. I also am lord over the Law, because by faith I am crucified with Christ.
Christ is the master of the Law because He was crucified for it. I am also a master of the Law because through faith, I am crucified with Christ.
Paul does not here speak of crucifying the flesh, but he speaks of that higher crucifying wherein sin, devil, and death are crucified in Christ and in me. By my faith in Christ I am crucified with Christ. Hence these evils are crucified and dead unto me.
Paul isn't talking about just crucifying the flesh here; he's referring to a higher kind of crucifixion where sin, the devil, and death are crucified in Christ and in me. Through my faith in Christ, I am crucified with Christ. Because of this, those evils are crucified and dead to me.
VERSE 20. Nevertheless I live.
VERSE 20. Still, I'm alive.
"I do not mean to create the impression as though I did not live before this. But in reality I first live now, now that I have been delivered from the Law, from sin, and death. Being crucified with Christ and dead unto the Law, I may now rise unto a new and better life."
"I don't want to give the impression that I didn't exist before this. But in reality, I truly live now, free from the Law, sin, and death. Having been crucified with Christ and dead to the Law, I can now rise to a new and better life."
We must pay close attention to Paul's way of speaking. He says that we are crucified and dead unto the Law. The fact is, the Law is crucified and dead unto us. Paul purposely speaks that way in order to increase the portion of our comfort.
We need to really consider how Paul speaks. He says that we are crucified and dead to the Law. The truth is, the Law is crucified and dead to us. Paul deliberately phrases it this way to enhance our comfort.
VERSE 20. Yet not I.
VERSE 20. But not me.
Paul explains what constitutes true Christian righteousness. True Christian righteousness is the righteousness of Christ who lives in us. We must look away from our own person. Christ and my conscience must become one, so that I can see nothing else but Christ crucified and raised from the dead for me. If I keep on looking at myself, I am gone.
Paul explains what true Christian righteousness is. True Christian righteousness comes from Christ living in us. We need to stop focusing on ourselves. Christ and my conscience need to unite, so that all I can see is Christ crucified and raised from the dead for me. If I keep looking at myself, I will be lost.
If we lose sight of Christ and begin to consider our past, we simply go to pieces. We must turn our eyes to the brazen serpent, Christ crucified, and believe with all our heart that He is our righteousness and our life. For Christ, on whom our eyes are fixed, in whom we live, who lives in us, is Lord over Law, sin, death, and all evil.
If we take our focus off Christ and start thinking about our past, we just fall apart. We need to look to the brazen serpent, Christ on the cross, and truly believe that He is our righteousness and our life. Because Christ, whom we focus on, in whom we live, and who lives in us, is in control of the Law, sin, death, and all evil.
VERSE 20. But Christ liveth in me.
VERSE 20. But Christ lives in me.
"Thus I live," the Apostle starts out. But presently he corrects himself, saying, "Yet not I, but Christ liveth in me." He is the form of my perfection. He embellishes my faith.
"That's how I live," the Apostle begins. But then he reconsiders, saying, "Actually, it's not me, but Christ who lives in me." He is the source of my perfection. He enhances my faith.
Since Christ is now living in me, He abolishes the Law, condemns sin, and destroys death in me. These foes vanish in His presence. Christ abiding in me drives out every evil. This union with Christ delivers me from the demands of the Law, and separates me from my sinful self. As long as I abide in Christ, nothing can hurt me.
Since Christ is now living in me, He eliminates the Law, condemns sin, and defeats death in me. These enemies disappear in His presence. Christ dwelling in me pushes out all evil. This connection with Christ frees me from the requirements of the Law and separates me from my sinful nature. As long as I remain in Christ, nothing can harm me.
Christ domiciling in me, the old Adam has to stay outside and remain subject to the Law. Think what grace, righteousness, life, peace, and salvation there is in me, thanks to that inseparable conjunction between Christ and me through faith!
Christ living in me means that the old Adam has to stay out and remain under the Law. Just think of the grace, righteousness, life, peace, and salvation in me, all because of that unbreakable connection between Christ and me through faith!
Paul has a peculiar style, a celestial way of speaking. "I live," he says, "I live not; I am dead, I am not dead; I am a sinner, I am not a sinner; I have the Law, I have no Law." When we look at ourselves we find plenty of sin. But when we look at Christ, we have no sin. Whenever we separate the person of Christ from our own person, we live under the Law and not in Christ; we are condemned by the Law, dead before God.
Paul has a unique style, a heavenly way of speaking. "I live," he says, "I live not; I am dead, I am not dead; I am a sinner, I am not a sinner; I have the Law, I have no Law." When we reflect on ourselves, we see a lot of sin. But when we focus on Christ, we see no sin. Whenever we separate Christ’s identity from our own, we fall under the Law and not in Christ; we are judged by the Law, dead in the eyes of God.
Faith connects you so intimately with Christ, that He and you become as it were one person. As such you may boldly say: "I am now one with Christ. Therefore Christ's righteousness, victory, and life are mine." On the other hand, Christ may say: "I am that big sinner. His sins and his death are mine, because he is joined to me, and I to him."
Faith connects you so closely with Christ that you and He become like one person. Because of this, you can confidently say: "I am now one with Christ. Therefore, Christ's righteousness, victory, and life are mine." Similarly, Christ can say: "I am that big sinner. His sins and his death are mine because he is joined to me, and I to him."
Whenever remission of sins is freely proclaimed, people misinterpret it according to Romans 3:8, "Let us do evil, that good may come." As soon as people hear that we are not justified by the Law, they reason maliciously: "Why, then let us reject the Law. If grace abounds, where sin abounds, let us abound in sin, that grace may all the more abound." People who reason thus are reckless. They make sport of the Scriptures and slander the sayings of the Holy Ghost.
Whenever forgiveness of sins is freely announced, people misunderstand it according to Romans 3:8, "Let us do evil, so that good may come." As soon as they hear that we are not justified by the Law, they think wickedly: "Then let's ignore the Law. If grace increases where sin increases, let's sin more so that grace can increase even more." People who think this way are reckless. They mock the Scriptures and twist the words of the Holy Spirit.
However, there are others who are not malicious, only weak, who may take offense when told that Law and good works are unnecessary for salvation. These must be instructed as to why good works do not justify, and from what motives good works must be done. Good works are not the cause, but the fruit of righteousness. When we have become righteous, then first are we able and willing to do good. The tree makes the apple; the apple does not make the tree.
However, there are others who aren't malicious, just weak, who might take offense when told that the Law and good deeds aren't necessary for salvation. They need to be taught why good works don't justify us and what motives should drive us to do good. Good works aren't the cause; they're the result of being righteous. Once we are made righteous, that's when we can and want to do good. The tree produces the apple; the apple doesn't create the tree.
VERSE 20. And the life which I now live in the flesh I live by the faith of the Son of God.
VERSE 20. And the life I now live in the body, I live by faith in the Son of God.
Paul does not deny the fact that he is living in the flesh. He performs the natural functions of the flesh. But he says that this is not his real life. His life in the flesh is not a life after the flesh.
Paul acknowledges that he is living in the physical body. He carries out the normal functions of the body. However, he states that this is not his true life. His life in the body is not a life driven by physical desires.
"I live by the faith of the Son of God," he says. "My speech is no longer directed by the flesh, but by the Holy Ghost. My sight is no longer governed by the flesh, but by the Holy Ghost. My hearing is no longer determined by the flesh, but by the Holy Ghost. I cannot teach, write, pray, or give thanks without the instrumentality of the flesh; yet these activities do not proceed from the flesh, but from God."
"I live by the faith of the Son of God," he says. "My words are no longer driven by my physical desires, but by the Holy Spirit. My vision is no longer controlled by the flesh, but by the Holy Spirit. My hearing is no longer influenced by the flesh, but by the Holy Spirit. I can’t teach, write, pray, or give thanks without using my physical body; yet these activities don’t come from my body, but from God."
A Christian uses earthly means like any unbeliever. Outwardly they look alike. Nevertheless there is a great difference between them. I may live in the flesh, but I do not live after the flesh. I do my living now "by the faith of the Son of God." Paul had the same voice, the same tongue, before and after his conversion. Before his conversion his tongue uttered blasphemies. But after his conversion his tongue spoke a spiritual, heavenly language.
A Christian uses worldly tools just like anyone who doesn't believe. On the surface, they may seem similar. However, there is a significant difference between them. I live in the physical world, but I don’t live just for physical things. I live now "by the faith of the Son of God." Paul had the same voice and the same way of speaking before and after he converted. Before his conversion, he spoke blasphemies. But after he converted, his speech expressed a spiritual, heavenly language.
We may now understand how spiritual life originates. It enters the heart by faith. Christ reigns in the heart with His Holy Spirit, who sees, hears, speaks, works, suffers, and does all things in and through us over the protest and the resistance of the flesh.
We can now understand how spiritual life begins. It enters the heart through faith. Christ rules in the heart with His Holy Spirit, who sees, hears, speaks, acts, suffers, and does everything in and through us despite the objections and resistance of our physical selves.
VERSE 20. Who loved me, and gave himself for me.
VERSE 20. Who loved me and gave himself for me.
The sophistical papists assert that a person is able by natural strength to love God long before grace has entered his heart, and to perform works of real merit. They believe they are able to fulfill the commandments of God. They believe they are able to do more than God expects of them, so that they are in a position to sell their superfluous merits to laymen, thereby saving themselves and others. They are saving nobody. On the contrary, they abolish the Gospel, they deride, deny, and blaspheme Christ, and call upon themselves the wrath of God. This is what they get for living in their own righteousness, and not in the faith of the Son of God.
The clever papists claim that a person can naturally love God long before grace comes into their heart and can do works that really matter. They believe they can follow God's commandments and do more than what God expects of them, putting themselves in a position to sell their extra merits to others, saving themselves and others in the process. But they are saving no one. Instead, they're undermining the Gospel, mocking, denying, and blaspheming Christ, bringing God's wrath upon themselves. This is the result of relying on their own righteousness instead of having faith in the Son of God.
The papists will tell you to do the best you can, and God will give you His grace. They have a rhyme for it:
The Catholics will tell you to do your best, and God will give you His grace. They even have a saying for it:
"God will no more require of man, Than of himself perform he can."
"God won't ask anything of man that He can't do Himself."
This may hold true in ordinary civic life. But the papists apply it to the spiritual realm where a person can perform nothing but sin, because he is sold under sin.
This might be true in everyday civic life. But the Catholics apply it to the spiritual realm where a person can only sin, because they are trapped in sin.
Our opponents go even further than that. They say, nature is depraved, but the qualities of nature are untainted. Again we say: This may hold true in everyday life, but not in the spiritual life. In spiritual matters a person is by nature full of darkness, error, ignorance, malice, and perverseness in will and in mind. In view of this, Paul declares that Christ began and not we. "He loved me, and gave Himself for me. He found in me no right mind and no good will. But the good Lord had mercy upon me. Out of pure kindness He loved me, loved me so that He gave Himself for me, that I should be free from the Law, from sin, devil, and death."
Our opponents take it even further. They claim that nature is corrupt, but the qualities of nature are pure. We respond: This may be true in everyday life, but not in spiritual life. In spiritual matters, a person is naturally filled with darkness, error, ignorance, malice, and a twisted will and mind. Given this, Paul states that Christ initiated everything, not us. "He loved me and gave Himself for me. He found nothing right in my mind or good in my will. But the good Lord had mercy on me. Out of pure kindness, He loved me so much that He gave Himself for me, so I could be free from the Law, from sin, the devil, and death."
The words, "The Son of God who loved me, and gave Himself for me," are so many thunderclaps and lightning bolts of protest from heaven against the righteousness of the Law. The wickedness, error, darkness, ignorance in my mind and my will were so great, that it was quite impossible for me to be saved by any other means than by the inestimable price of Christ's death.
The phrase, "The Son of God who loved me and gave Himself for me," is like a thunderous protest from heaven against the strictness of the Law. The wickedness, mistakes, darkness, and ignorance in my mind and will were so overwhelming that there was no way for me to be saved except through the immeasurable sacrifice of Christ's death.
Let us count the price. When you hear that such an enormous price was paid for you, will you still come along with your cowl, your shaven pate, your chastity, your obedience, your poverty, your works, your merits? What do you want with all these trappings? What good are the works of all men, and all the pains of the martyrs, in comparison with the pains of the Son of God dying on the Cross, so that there was not a drop of His precious blood, but it was all shed for your sins. If you could properly evaluate this incomparable price, you would throw all your ceremonies, vows, works, and merits into the ash can. What awful presumption to imagine that there is any work good enough to pacify God, when to pacify God required the invaluable price of the death and blood of His own and only Son?
Let’s consider the cost. When you realize that such an enormous price was paid for you, will you still show up with your hood, your shaved head, your vows of chastity, your obedience, your poverty, your good deeds, and your merits? What do you need all these things for? What value do the works of all people, and all the suffering of the martyrs, have compared to the suffering of the Son of God dying on the Cross, where not a single drop of His precious blood was spared, as it was all shed for your sins? If you truly understood this unmatched price, you would toss all your rituals, vows, works, and merits aside. What incredible arrogance it is to think that any work could be good enough to appease God when it took the priceless sacrifice of the death and blood of His one and only Son to do so?
VERSE 20. For me.
VERSE 20. For me.
Who is this "me"? I, wretched and damnable sinner, dearly beloved of the Son of God. If I could by work or merit love the Son of God and come to Him, why should He have sacrificed Himself for me? This shows how the papists ignore the Scriptures, particularly the doctrine of faith. If they had paid any attention at all to these words, that it was absolutely necessary for the Son of God to be given into death for me, they would never have invented so many hideous heresies.
Who is this "me"? I, a miserable and damned sinner, loved dearly by the Son of God. If I could earn the love of the Son of God through my actions or worthiness, why would He have sacrificed Himself for me? This shows how the papists overlook the Scriptures, especially the doctrine of faith. If they had actually listened to these words—that it was essential for the Son of God to be given over to death for me—they would never have created so many horrible heresies.
I always say, there is no remedy against the sects, no power to resist them, except this article of Christian righteousness. If we lose this article we shall never be able to combat errors or sects. What business have they to make such a fuss about works or merits? If I, a condemned sinner, could have been purchased and redeemed by any other price, why should the Son of God have given Himself for me? Just because there was no other price in heaven and on earth big and good enough, was it necessary for the Son of God to be delivered for me. This He did out of His great love for me, for the Apostle says, "Who loved me."
I always say that there’s no way to fight against the sects, no power to resist them, except for this principle of Christian righteousness. If we lose this principle, we’ll never be able to tackle mistakes or sects. What’s their issue with making such a big deal about works or merits? If I, a condemned sinner, could have been bought and saved by any other means, why would the Son of God have sacrificed Himself for me? It was necessary for the Son of God to be given for me simply because there wasn’t any other price in heaven or on earth that was big and good enough. He did this out of His immense love for me, just as the Apostle says, "Who loved me."
Did the Law ever love me? Did the Law ever sacrifice itself for me? Did the Law ever die for me? On the contrary, it accuses me, it frightens me, it drives me crazy. Somebody else saved me from the Law, from sin and death unto eternal life. That Somebody is the Son of God, to whom be praise and glory forever.
Did the Law ever care for me? Did the Law ever make sacrifices for me? Did the Law ever die for me? On the flip side, it accuses me, it terrifies me, it drives me insane. Someone else rescued me from the Law, from sin and death to eternal life. That Someone is the Son of God, to whom be praise and glory forever.
Hence, Christ is no Moses, no tyrant, no lawgiver, but the Giver of grace, the Savior, full of mercy. In short, He is no less than infinite mercy and ineffable goodness, bountifully giving Himself for us. Visualize Christ in these His true colors. I do not say that it is easy. Even in the present diffusion of the Gospel light, I have much trouble to see Christ as Paul portrays Him. So deeply has the diseased opinion that Christ is a lawgiver sunk into my bones. You younger men are a good deal better off than we who are old. You have never become infected with the nefarious errors on which I suckled all my youth, until at the mention of the name of Christ I shivered with fear. You, I say, who are young may learn to know Christ in all His sweetness.
So, Christ is not Moses, not a tyrant, not a lawmaker, but the Giver of grace, the Savior, overflowing with mercy. In short, He embodies infinite mercy and indescribable goodness, generously giving Himself for us. Picture Christ in His true essence. I’m not saying it’s easy. Even now, with the spread of the Gospel light, I still struggle to see Christ the way Paul describes Him. The deeply ingrained belief that Christ is a lawmaker has settled deep within me. You younger men are much better off than us old folks. You haven’t been tainted by the harmful beliefs that I grew up with, where even the mention of Christ’s name made me shudder with fear. You young ones can learn to appreciate Christ in all His sweetness.
For Christ is Joy and Sweetness to a broken heart. Christ is a Lover of poor sinners, and such a Lover that He gave Himself for us. Now if this is true, and it is true, then are we never justified by our own righteousness.
For Christ brings joy and comfort to a broken heart. Christ loves poor sinners so much that He gave Himself for us. If this is true, and it is true, then we are never justified by our own righteousness.
Read the words "me" and "for me" with great emphasis. Print this "me" with capital letters in your heart, and do not ever doubt that you belong to the number of those who are meant by this "me." Christ did not only love Peter and Paul. The same love He felt for them He feels for us. If we cannot deny that we are sinners, we cannot deny that Christ died for our sins.
Read the words "me" and "for me" with great emphasis. Print this "me" in capital letters in your heart, and never doubt that you are one of those who are meant by this "me." Christ didn't just love Peter and Paul. The same love He had for them, He has for us. If we can't deny that we are sinners, we also can't deny that Christ died for our sins.
VERSE 21. I do not frustrate the grace of God.
VERSE 21. I do not undermine the grace of God.
Paul is now getting ready for the second argument of his Epistle, to the effect that to seek justification by works of the Law, is to reject the grace of God. I ask you, what sin can be more horrible than to reject the grace of God, and to refuse the righteousness of Christ? It is bad enough that we are wicked sinners and transgressors of all the commandments of God; on top of that to refuse the grace of God and the remission of sins offered unto us by Christ, is the worst sin of all, the sin of sins. That is the limit. There is no sin which Paul and the other apostles detested more than when a person despises the grace of God in Christ Jesus. Still there is no sin more common. That is why Paul can get so angry at the Antichrist, because he snubs Christ, rebuffs the grace of God, and refuses the merit of Christ. What else would you call it but spitting in Christ's face, pushing Christ to the side, usurping Christ's throne, and to say: "I am going to justify you people; I am going to save you." By what means? By masses, pilgrimages, pardons, merits, etc. For this is Antichrist's doctrine: Faith is no good, unless it is reinforced by works. By this abominable doctrine Antichrist has spoiled, darkened, and buried the benefit of Christ, and in place of the grace of Christ and His Kingdom, he has established the doctrine of works and the kingdom of ceremonies.
Paul is now preparing for the second point of his letter, arguing that seeking justification through the works of the Law means rejecting the grace of God. I ask you, what sin could be worse than rejecting God's grace and dismissing Christ's righteousness? It's already bad that we're wicked sinners and violators of all of God's commandments; to then reject God's grace and the forgiveness of sins offered to us by Christ is the worst sin of all. That's the limit. There is no sin that Paul and the other apostles loathed more than when someone disregards God's grace in Christ Jesus. Yet, this sin is also very common. This is why Paul gets so furious at the Antichrist, because he dismisses Christ, turns away from God's grace, and rejects the merit of Christ. What else can you call it but spitting in Christ's face, pushing Him aside, usurping His throne, and saying, "I'm going to justify you people; I'm going to save you." By what means? Through masses, pilgrimages, indulgences, merits, and so on. This is the Antichrist's teaching: Faith is useless unless it is backed by works. With this awful doctrine, the Antichrist has corrupted, obscured, and buried the benefits of Christ, and in place of Christ's grace and His Kingdom, he has established a doctrine of works and a kingdom of rituals.
We despise the grace of God when we observe the Law for the purpose of being justified. The Law is good, holy, and profitable, but it does not justify. To keep the Law in order to be justified means to reject grace, to deny Christ, to despise His sacrifice, and to be lost.
We undermine the grace of God when we follow the Law to be justified. The Law is good, holy, and beneficial, but it doesn't provide justification. Trying to keep the Law to gain justification means rejecting grace, denying Christ, disregarding His sacrifice, and ultimately being lost.
VERSE 21. For if righteousness come by the law, then Christ is dead in vain.
VERSE 21. If righteousness comes through the law, then Christ died for nothing.
Did Christ die, or did He not die? Was His death worth while, or was it not? If His death was worth while, it follows that righteousness does not come by the Law. Why was Christ born anyway? Why was He crucified? Why did He suffer? Why did He love me and give Himself for me? It was all done to no purpose if righteousness is to be had by the Law.
Did Christ die, or didn’t He die? Was His death meaningful, or wasn’t it? If His death was meaningful, then righteousness doesn’t come from the Law. Why was Christ born at all? Why was He crucified? Why did He suffer? Why did He love me and give Himself for me? It all becomes pointless if righteousness can be achieved through the Law.
Or do you think that God spared not His Son, but delivered Him for us all, for the fun of it? Before I would admit anything like that, I would consign the holiness of the saints and of the angels to hell.
Or do you really think that God didn't spare His Son, but gave Him up for us all, just for kicks? Before I could accept anything like that, I would send the holiness of the saints and angels straight to hell.
To reject the grace of God is a common sin, of which everybody is guilty who sees any righteousness in himself or in his deeds. And the Pope is the sole author of this iniquity. Not content to spoil the Gospel of Christ, he has filled the world with his cursed traditions, e.g., his bulls and indulgences.
To turn away from God's grace is a common sin, one that everyone commits who thinks they have any goodness in themselves or their actions. And the Pope is the main cause of this wrongdoing. Not only does he distort the Gospel of Christ, but he has also filled the world with his harmful traditions, like his decrees and indulgences.
We will always affirm with Paul that either Christ died in vain, or else the Law cannot justify us. But Christ did not suffer and die in vain. Hence, the Law does not justify.
We will always agree with Paul that either Christ died for nothing, or the Law can't justify us. But Christ didn't suffer and die for nothing. Therefore, the Law doesn't justify.
If my salvation was so difficult to accomplish that it necessitated the death of Christ, then all my works, all the righteousness of the Law, are good for nothing. How can I buy for a penny what cost a million dollars? The Law is a penny's worth when you compare it with Christ. Should I be so stupid as to reject the righteousness of Christ which cost me nothing, and slave like a fool to achieve the righteousness of the Law which God disdains?
If my salvation was so hard to achieve that it required Christ's death, then all my actions and all the righteousness of the Law are worthless. How can I expect to get something that costs a million dollars for just a penny? The Law is just a penny compared to Christ. Should I really be foolish enough to turn away from the righteousness of Christ, which cost me nothing, and work myself to death trying to earn the righteousness of the Law that God looks down on?
Man's own righteousness is in the last analysis a despising and rejecting of the grace of God. No combination of words can do justice to such an outrage. It is an insult to say that any man died in vain. But to say that Christ died in vain is a deadly insult. To say that Christ died in vain is to make His resurrection, His victory, His glory, His kingdom, heaven, earth, God Himself, of no purpose and benefit whatever.
Man's own righteousness ultimately disrespects and rejects the grace of God. No words can fully express such an offense. It’s an insult to claim that anyone died in vain. But to say that Christ died in vain is a grave insult. Saying that Christ died in vain undermines His resurrection, His victory, His glory, His kingdom, heaven, earth, and even God Himself, rendering them pointless and without benefit.
That is enough to set any person against the righteousness of the Law and all the trimmings of men's own righteousness, the orders of monks and friars, and their superstitions.
That’s enough to make anyone oppose the fairness of the Law and all the details of human righteousness, including the rules of monks and friars and their superstitions.
Who would not detest his own vows, his cowls, his shaven crown, his bearded traditions, yes, the very Law of Moses, when he hears that for such things he rejected the grace of God and the death of Christ. It seems that such a horrible wickedness could not enter a man's heart, that he should reject the grace of God, and despise the death of Christ. And yet this atrocity is all too common. Let us be warned. Everyone who seeks righteousness without Christ, either by works, merits, satisfactions, actions, or by the Law, rejects the grace of God, and despises the death of Christ.
Who wouldn’t loathe their own promises, their robes, their shaved heads, their old traditions, and yes, even the Law of Moses, when they realize that for these things they’ve turned away from the grace of God and the death of Christ? It seems unimaginable that someone could actually reject God’s grace and disregard Christ’s sacrifice. Yet, this dreadful act is all too common. Let this be a warning. Anyone who seeks righteousness without Christ—whether through actions, merits, satisfyings, or by following the Law—rejects God’s grace and disrespects the death of Christ.
CHAPTER 3
VERSE 1. O foolish Galatians.
O foolish Galatians.
THE Apostle Paul manifests his apostolic care for the Galatians. Sometimes he entreats them, then again he reproaches them, in accordance with his own advice to Timothy: "Preach the word; be instant in season, out of season; reprove, rebuke, exhort."
THE Apostle Paul shows his concern for the Galatians. At times, he urges them, while at other times he criticizes them, following his own advice to Timothy: "Preach the word; be ready at all times; correct, rebuke, encourage."
In the midst of his discourse on Christian righteousness Paul breaks off, and turns to address the Galatians. "O foolish Galatians," he cries. "I have brought you the true Gospel, and you received it with eagerness and gratitude. Now all of a sudden you drop the Gospel. What has got into you?"
In the middle of his talk about Christian righteousness, Paul suddenly stops and addresses the Galatians. "Oh, you foolish Galatians," he exclaims. "I brought you the true Gospel, and you accepted it with eagerness and gratitude. Now, out of nowhere, you abandon the Gospel. What’s wrong with you?"
Paul reproves the Galatians rather sharply when he calls them "fools, bewitched, and disobedient." Whether he is indignant or sorry, I cannot say. He may be both. It is the duty of a Christian pastor to reprove the people committed to his charge. Of course, his anger must not flow from malice, but from affection and a real zeal for Christ.
Paul scolds the Galatians pretty harshly when he calls them "fools, bewitched, and disobedient." It's hard to tell if he's angry or sad—maybe he's feeling both. A Christian pastor has a responsibility to correct the people in his care. However, his anger shouldn't come from hatred, but from love and a genuine passion for Christ.
There is no question that Paul is disappointed. It hurts him to think that his Galatians showed so little stability. We can hear him say: "I am sorry to hear of your troubles, and disappointed in you for the disgraceful part you played." I say rather much on this point to save Paul from the charge that he railed upon the churches, contrary to the spirit of the Gospel.
There’s no doubt that Paul is let down. It pains him to realize that his Galatians lacked so much stability. We can imagine him saying, “I’m really sorry to hear about your issues and disappointed in you for the shameful role you took.” I emphasize this point to defend Paul from being accused of unfairly criticizing the churches, which goes against the essence of the Gospel.
A certain distance and coolness can be noted in the title with which the Apostle addresses the Galatians. He does not now address them as his brethren, as he usually does. He addresses them as Galatians in order to remind them of their national trait to be foolish.
A certain distance and coolness can be noted in the title with which the Apostle addresses the Galatians. He does not now address them as his brethren, as he usually does. He addresses them as Galatians in order to remind them of their national trait to be foolish.
We have here an example of bad traits that often cling to individual Christians and entire congregations. Grace does not suddenly transform a Christian into a new and perfect creature. Dregs of the old and natural corruption remain. The Spirit of God cannot at once overcome human deficiency. Sanctification takes time.
We have here an example of negative traits that often stick to individual Christians and entire congregations. Grace doesn’t instantly turn a Christian into a new and perfect being. Some remnants of the old and natural corruption still stick around. The Spirit of God can’t immediately fix human shortcomings. Sanctification takes time.
Although the Galatians had been enlightened by the Holy Spirit through the preaching of faith, something of their national trait of foolishness plus their original depravity clung to them. Let no man think that once he has received faith, he can presently be converted into a faultless creature. The leavings of old vices will stick to him, be he ever so good a Christian.
Although the Galatians had been inspired by the Holy Spirit through preaching about faith, their national tendency toward foolishness and their original sinfulness still affected them. No one should think that once they have accepted faith, they can instantly be transformed into a perfect person. The remnants of past vices will cling to them, no matter how devoted a Christian they may be.
VERSE 1. Who hath bewitched you, that ye should not obey the truth?
VERSE 1. Who has tricked you into not following the truth?
Paul calls the Galatians foolish and bewitched. In the fifth chapter he mentions sorcery among the works of the flesh, declaring that witchcraft and sorcery are real manifestations and legitimate activities of the devil. We are all exposed to the influence of the devil, because he is the prince and god of the world in which we live.
Paul refers to the Galatians as foolish and misled. In the fifth chapter, he lists sorcery as one of the works of the flesh, stating that witchcraft and sorcery are genuine expressions and real activities of the devil. We are all subject to the devil's influence since he is the prince and god of the world we live in.
Satan is clever. He does not only bewitch men in a crude manner, but also in a more artful fashion. He bedevils the minds of men with hideous fallacies. Not only is he able to deceive the self-assured, but even those who profess the true Christian faith. There is not one among us who is not at times seduced by Satan into false beliefs.
Satan is clever. He doesn't just trick people in obvious ways, but also in more subtle ones. He confuses people's minds with ugly lies. He can deceive not only the arrogant but also those who claim to have true Christian faith. There’s no one among us who hasn’t been misled by Satan into false beliefs at times.
This accounts for the many new battles we have to wage nowadays. But the attacks of the old Serpent are not without profit to us, for they confirm our doctrine and strengthen our faith in Christ. Many a time we were wrestled down in these conflicts with Satan, but Christ has always triumphed and always will triumph. Do not think that the Galatians were the only ones to be bewitched by the devil. Let us realize that we too may be seduced by Satan.
This explains the many new battles we have to fight these days. But the attacks from the old Serpent aren't without benefit to us; they reinforce our beliefs and strengthen our faith in Christ. Many times we've been brought down in our struggles with Satan, but Christ has always won and will continue to win. Don’t assume that the Galatians were the only ones deceived by the devil. Let’s acknowledge that we too can be misled by Satan.
VERSE 1. Who hath bewitched you?
VERSE 1. Who has put a spell on you?
In this sentence Paul excuses the Galatians, while he blames the false apostles for the apostasy of the Galatians.
In this sentence, Paul makes excuses for the Galatians while holding the false apostles responsible for their turning away from the faith.
As if he were saying: "I know your defection was not willful. The devil sent the false apostles to you, and they tallied you into believing that you are justified by the Law. With this our epistle we endeavor to undo the damage which the false apostles have inflicted upon you."
As if he were saying: "I know your turning away wasn't intentional. The devil sent fake apostles to you, convincing you that you're justified by the Law. With this letter, we’re trying to fix the harm that the fake apostles have caused you."
Like Paul, we struggle with the Word of God against the fanatical Anabaptists of our day; and our efforts are not entirely in vain. The trouble is there are many who refuse to be instructed. They will not listen to reason; they will not listen to the Scriptures, because they are bewitched by the tricky devil who can make a lie look like the truth.
Like Paul, we struggle with the Word of God against the fanatic Anabaptists of our time, and our efforts aren't entirely in vain. The problem is that many refuse to be taught. They won't listen to reason; they won't listen to the Scriptures because they are enchanted by the sly devil who can make a lie seem like the truth.
Since the devil has this uncanny ability to make us believe a lie until we would swear a thousand times it were the truth, we must not be proud, but walk in fear and humility, and call upon the Lord Jesus to save us from temptation.
Since the devil has this weird ability to make us believe a lie until we’d swear up and down it’s the truth, we shouldn’t be proud, but rather walk in fear and humility, and ask the Lord Jesus to save us from temptation.
Although I am a doctor of divinity, and have preached Christ and fought His battles for a long time, I know from personal experience how difficult it is to hold fast to the truth. I cannot always shake off Satan. I cannot always apprehend Christ as the Scriptures portray Him. Sometimes the devil distorts Christ to my vision. But thanks be to God, who keeps us in His Word, in faith, and in prayer.
Although I’m a doctor of divinity and have preached Christ and fought His battles for a long time, I know from personal experience how hard it is to stay committed to the truth. I can’t always shake off Satan. I can’t always see Christ the way the Scriptures describe Him. Sometimes the devil distorts my vision of Christ. But thank God, who keeps us grounded in His Word, in faith, and in prayer.
The spiritual witchery of the devil creates in the heart a wrong idea of Christ. Those who share the opinion that a person is justified by the works of the Law, are simply bewitched. Their belief goes against faith and Christ.
The spiritual deception of the devil creates a distorted view of Christ in the heart. Those who believe that a person is justified by following the Law are simply under a spell. Their belief contradicts faith and Christ.
VERSE 1. That ye should not obey the truth.
VERSE 1. That you should not follow the truth.
Paul incriminates the Galatians in worse failure. "You are so bewitched that you no longer obey the truth. I fear many of you have strayed so far that you will never return to the truth."
Paul accuses the Galatians of an even greater failure. "You are so misled that you no longer follow the truth. I'm worried that many of you have gone so far off course that you'll never come back to the truth."
The apostasy of the Galatians is a fine indorsement of the Law, all right. You may preach the Law ever so fervently; if the preaching of the Gospel does not accompany it, the Law will never produce true conversion and heartfelt repentance. We do not mean to say that the preaching of the Law is without value, but it only serves to bring home to us the wrath of God. The Law bows a person down. It takes the Gospel and the preaching of faith in Christ to raise and save a person.
The abandonment of faith by the Galatians is certainly a strong endorsement of the Law. You can preach the Law as passionately as you want; if the message of the Gospel isn't there too, the Law will never lead to real conversion and genuine repentance. We’re not saying that preaching the Law is pointless, but it primarily highlights God's anger towards us. The Law brings a person down. It takes the Gospel and the message of faith in Christ to lift someone up and save them.
VERSE 1. Before whose eyes Jesus Christ hath been evidently set forth.
VERSE 1. Before whose eyes Jesus Christ has been clearly presented.
Paul's increasing severity becomes apparent as he reminds the Galatians that they disobeyed the truth in defiance of the vivid description he had given them of Christ. So vividly had he described Christ to them that they could almost see and handle Him. As if Paul were to say: "No artist with all his colors could have pictured Christ to you as vividly as I have pictured Him to you by my preaching. Yet you permitted yourselves to be seduced to the extent that you disobeyed the truth of Christ."
Paul's growing frustration is clear as he reminds the Galatians that they've turned away from the truth despite the vivid way he portrayed Christ to them. He described Christ so clearly that they could almost see and touch Him. It’s as if Paul is saying: "No artist, no matter how skilled, could have painted a picture of Christ for you as vividly as I have through my preaching. Yet you allowed yourselves to be misled to the point of disobeying the truth of Christ."
VERSE 1. Crucified among you.
Crucified among you.
"You have not only rejected the grace of God, you have shamefully crucified Christ among you." Paul employs the same phraseology in Hebrews 6:6: "Seeing they crucify to themselves the Son of God afresh, and put him to an open shame."
"You haven't just turned away from God's grace; you've disgracefully crucified Christ right in front of you." Paul uses the same wording in Hebrews 6:6: "Since they are crucifying the Son of God all over again and exposing him to public shame."
It should make any person afraid to hear Paul say that those who seek to be justified by the Law, not only deny Christ, but also crucify Him anew. If those who seek to be justified by the Law and its works are crucifiers of Christ, what are they, I like to know, who seek salvation by the filthy rags of their own work-righteousness?
It should scare anyone to hear Paul say that those who want to be justified by the Law not only reject Christ but also crucify Him again. If those who try to find justification through the Law and its actions are the ones crucifying Christ, then what does that make those who seek salvation through the dirty rags of their own self-righteousness?
Can there be anything more horrible than the papacy, an alliance of people who crucify Christ in themselves, in the Church, and in the hearts of the believers?
Can there be anything more terrible than the papacy, a group of people who crucify Christ within themselves, in the Church, and in the hearts of the faithful?
Of all the diseased and vicious doctrines of the papacy the worst is this: "If you want to serve God you must earn your own remission of sins and everlasting life, and in addition help others to obtain salvation by giving them the benefit of your extra work-holiness." Monks, friars, and all the rest of them brag that besides the ordinary requirements common to all Christians, they do the works of supererogation, i.e., the performance of more than is required. This is certainly a fiendish illusion.
Of all the corrupt and harmful teachings of the papacy, the worst is this: "If you want to serve God, you need to earn your own forgiveness for sins and everlasting life, and also help others achieve salvation by sharing the benefits of your extra good deeds." Monks, friars, and others boast that in addition to the basic requirements for all Christians, they perform works of supererogation, meaning they do more than what is required. This is definitely a wicked delusion.
No wonder Paul employs such sharp language in his effort to recall the Galatians from the doctrine of the false apostles. He says to them: "Don't you realize what you have done? You have crucified Christ anew because you seek salvation by the Law."
No wonder Paul uses such strong language to bring the Galatians back from the teachings of the false apostles. He asks them, "Don’t you see what you’ve done? You have crucified Christ again because you’re looking for salvation through the Law."
True, Christ can no longer be crucified in person, but He is crucified in us when we reject grace, faith, free remission of sins and endeavor to be justified by our own works, or by the works of the Law.
True, Christ can no longer be crucified in person, but He is crucified in us when we reject grace, faith, the free forgiveness of sins, and try to justify ourselves through our own actions or by following the Law.
The Apostle is incensed at the presumptuousness of any person who thinks he can perform the Law of God to his own salvation. He charges that person with the atrocity of crucifying anew the Son of God.
The Apostle is furious at anyone who believes they can follow God's Law for their own salvation. He accuses that person of the terrible act of crucifying the Son of God again.
VERSE 2. This only would I learn of you, Received ye the Spirit by the works of the law, or by the hearing of faith?
VERSE 2. I just want to know this from you: Did you receive the Spirit by following the law, or by believing what you heard?
There is a touch of irony in these words of the Apostle. "Come on now, my smart Galatians, you who all of a sudden have become doctors, while I seem to be your pupil: Received ye the Holy Ghost by the works of the Law, or by the preaching of the Gospel?" This question gave them something to think about, because their own experience contradicted them.
There’s a bit of irony in these words from the Apostle. "Come on, my clever Galatians, who suddenly think you’re experts, while I seem to be the one learning from you: Did you receive the Holy Spirit by following the Law, or by the preaching of the Gospel?" This question made them reflect, because their own experiences contradicted their beliefs.
"You cannot say that you received the Holy Spirit by the Law. As long as you were servants of the Law, you never received the Holy Ghost. Nobody ever heard of the Holy Ghost being given to anybody, be he doctor or dunce, as a result of the preaching of the Law. In your own case, you have not only learned the Law by heart, you have labored with all your might to perform it. You most of all should have received the Holy Ghost by the Law, if that were possible. You cannot show me that this ever happened. But as soon as the Gospel came your way, you received the Holy Ghost by the simple hearing of faith, before you ever had a chance to do a single good deed." Luke verifies this statement of Paul in the Book of Acts: "While Peter yet spake these words, the Holy Ghost fell on all them which heard the word." (Acts 10:44.) "And as I began to speak, the Holy Ghost fell on them, as on us at the beginning." (Acts 11:15.)
You can’t claim that you received the Holy Spirit through the Law. While you were under the Law, you never received the Holy Spirit. Nobody has ever heard of the Holy Spirit being given to anyone, whether they’re knowledgeable or not, as a result of the preaching of the Law. In your case, you not only memorized the Law, but you also worked hard to follow it. You should have received the Holy Spirit through the Law, if that were possible. You can’t prove that this ever happened. But as soon as the Gospel reached you, you received the Holy Spirit by simply hearing the message of faith, before you had the chance to do any good deeds. Luke confirms this statement of Paul in the Book of Acts: "While Peter was still speaking these words, the Holy Spirit fell on all who heard the message." (Acts 10:44.) "As I began to speak, the Holy Spirit came on them as it had come on us at the beginning." (Acts 11:15.)
Try to appreciate the force of Paul's argument which is so often repeated in the Book of Acts. That Book was written for the express purpose of verifying Paul's assertion, that the Holy Ghost comes upon men, not in response to the preaching of the Law, but in response to the preaching of the Gospel. When Peter preached Christ at the first Pentecost, the Holy Ghost fell upon the hearers, "and the same day there were added unto them about three thousand souls." Cornelius received the Holy Ghost while Peter was speaking of Christ. "The Holy Ghost fell on all of them which heard the word." These are actual experiences that cannot very well be denied. When Paul and Barnabas returned to Jerusalem and reported what they had been able to accomplish among the Gentiles, the whole Church was astonished, particularly when it heard that the uncircumcised Gentiles had received the Holy Ghost by the preaching of faith in Christ.
Try to understand the power of Paul's argument, which is frequently repeated in the Book of Acts. This book was specifically written to back up Paul's claim that the Holy Spirit comes upon people, not because of preaching the Law, but because of preaching the Gospel. When Peter preached Christ at the first Pentecost, the Holy Spirit came upon the audience, "and that day about three thousand souls were added to them." Cornelius received the Holy Spirit while Peter was talking about Christ. "The Holy Spirit came upon all who heard the message." These are genuine experiences that are hard to deny. When Paul and Barnabas returned to Jerusalem and shared what they had accomplished among the Gentiles, the entire Church was amazed, especially when they learned that the uncircumcised Gentiles had received the Holy Spirit through faith in Christ.
Now as God gave the Holy Ghost to the Gentiles without the Law by the simple preaching of the Gospel, so He gave the Holy Ghost also to the Jews, without the Law, through faith alone. If the righteousness of the Law were necessary unto salvation, the Holy Ghost would never have come to the Gentiles, because they did not bother about the Law. Hence the Law does not justify, but faith in Christ justifies.
Now, just as God gave the Holy Spirit to the Gentiles without the Law through the straightforward preaching of the Gospel, He also gave the Holy Spirit to the Jews, without the Law, by faith alone. If following the Law were necessary for salvation, the Holy Spirit would never have been given to the Gentiles, since they didn't adhere to the Law. Therefore, the Law does not justify; rather, faith in Christ justifies.
How was it with Cornelius? Cornelius and his friends whom he had invited over to his house, do nothing but sit and listen. Peter is doing the talking. They just sit and do nothing. The Law is far removed from their thoughts. They burn no sacrifices. They are not at all interested in circumcision. All they do is to sit and listen to Peter. Suddenly the Holy Ghost enters their hearts. His presence is unmistakable, "for they spoke with tongues and magnified God."
How was it with Cornelius? Cornelius and the friends he invited over just sit and listen. Peter does all the talking. They just sit there, doing nothing. The Law isn’t even on their minds. They don’t make any sacrifices. They couldn’t care less about circumcision. All they do is sit and listen to Peter. Suddenly, the Holy Spirit fills their hearts. His presence is clear, "for they spoke with tongues and magnified God."
Right here we have one more difference between the Law and the Gospel. The Law does not bring on the Holy Ghost. The Gospel, however, brings on the gift of the Holy Ghost, because it is the nature of the Gospel to convey good gifts. The Law and the Gospel are contrary ideas. They have contrary functions and purposes. To endow the Law with any capacity to produce righteousness is to plagiarize the Gospel. The Gospel brings donations. It pleads for open hands to take what is being offered. The Law has nothing to give. It demands, and its demands are impossible.
Right here we see another difference between the Law and the Gospel. The Law doesn’t bring the Holy Spirit. In contrast, the Gospel brings the gift of the Holy Spirit because it’s the nature of the Gospel to deliver good gifts. The Law and the Gospel are opposing concepts. They have different functions and purposes. To give the Law any ability to create righteousness is to steal from the Gospel. The Gospel offers gifts. It invites us to open our hands and receive what’s being given. The Law doesn’t offer anything. It just demands, and those demands are impossible to meet.
Our opponents come back at us with Cornelius. Cornelius, they point out, was "a devout man, and one that feared God with all his house, which gave much alms to the people and prayed God always." Because of these qualifications, he merited the forgiveness of sins, and the gift of the Holy Ghost. So reason our opponents.
Our opponents counter with Cornelius. They highlight that Cornelius was "a devout man, and one who feared God along with his entire household, who gave generously to those in need and prayed to God constantly." Because of these qualities, he earned the forgiveness of sins and the gift of the Holy Spirit. That's their argument.
I answer: Cornelius was a Gentile. You cannot deny it. As a Gentile he was uncircumcised. As a Gentile he did not observe the Law. He never gave the Law any thought. For all that, he was justified and received the Holy Ghost. How can the Law avail anything unto righteousness? Our opponents are not satisfied. They reply: "Granted that Cornelius was a Gentile and did not receive the Holy Ghost by the Law, yet the text plainly states that he was a devout man who feared God, gave alms, and prayed. Don't you think he deserved the gift of the Holy Ghost?" I answer: Cornelius had the faith of the fathers who were saved by faith in the Christ to come. If Cornelius had died before Christ, he would have been saved because he believed in the Christ to come. But because the Messiah had already come, Cornelius had to be apprized of the fact. Since Christ has come we cannot be saved by faith in the Christ to come, but we must believe that he has come. The object of Peter's visit was to acquaint Cornelius with the fact that Christ was no longer to be looked for, because He is here.
I respond: Cornelius was a Gentile. You can't deny that. As a Gentile, he was uncircumcised. As a Gentile, he didn't follow the Law. He never even thought about the Law. Still, he was justified and received the Holy Spirit. How can the Law contribute anything to righteousness? Our opponents aren't satisfied. They argue: "Okay, Cornelius was a Gentile and didn't receive the Holy Spirit through the Law, but the text clearly states that he was a devout man who feared God, gave to the needy, and prayed. Don’t you think he deserved the gift of the Holy Spirit?" I reply: Cornelius had the faith of the ancestors who were saved by faith in the Christ to come. If Cornelius had died before Christ, he would have been saved because he believed in the future Christ. But since the Messiah has already come, Cornelius needed to be informed about it. Now that Christ has come, we can't be saved by faith in the future Christ; we must believe that He has come. The purpose of Peter's visit was to let Cornelius know that Christ doesn’t need to be awaited anymore because He is here.
As to the contention of our opponents that Cornelius deserved grace and the gift of the Holy Ghost, because he was devout and just, we say that these attributes are the characteristics of a spiritual person who already has faith in Christ, and not the characteristics of a Gentile or of natural man. Luke first praises Cornelius for being a devout and God-fearing man, and then Luke mentions the good works, the alms and prayers of Cornelius. Our opponents ignore the sequence of Luke's words. They pounce on this one sentence, "which gave much alms to the people," because it serves their assertion that merit precedes grace. The fact is that Cornelius gave alms and prayed to God because he had faith. And because of his faith in the Christ to come, Peter was delegated to preach unto Cornelius faith in the Christ who had already come. This argument is convincing enough. Cornelius was justified without the Law, therefore the Law cannot justify.
Regarding our opponents' claim that Cornelius deserved grace and the gift of the Holy Spirit because he was devout and just, we argue that these qualities are signs of a spiritual person who already has faith in Christ, not characteristics of a Gentile or a natural person. Luke first commends Cornelius for being a devout and God-fearing man, and then he mentions Cornelius's good deeds, including his charitable donations and prayers. Our opponents overlook the order of Luke's words. They focus solely on the phrase, "who gave much alms to the people," because it supports their argument that merit comes before grace. The reality is that Cornelius gave to charity and prayed to God because he had faith. And due to his faith in the Christ to come, Peter was sent to preach to Cornelius about faith in the Christ who had already arrived. This argument is strong enough. Cornelius was justified without the Law, which means the Law cannot justify.
Take the case of Naaman, the Syrian, who was a Gentile and did not belong to the race of Moses. Yet his flesh was cleansed, the God of Israel was revealed unto him, and he received the Holy Ghost. Naaman confessed his faith: "Behold, now I know that there is no God in all the earth, but in Israel." (II Kings 5:15.) Naaman does not do a thing. He does not busy himself with the Law. He was never circumcised. That does not mean that his faith was inactive. He said to the Prophet Elisha: "Thy servant will henceforth offer neither burnt offering nor sacrifice unto other gods, but unto the Lord. In this thing the Lord pardon thy servant, that when my master goeth into the house of Rimmon to worship there, and he leaneth on my hand, and I bow myself in the house of Rimmon: when I bow down myself in the house of Rimmon, the Lord pardon thy servant in this thing." What did the Prophet tell him? "Go in peace." The Jews do not like to hear the prophet say this. "What," they exclaim, "should this heathen be justified without the Law? Should he be made equal to us who are circumcised?"
Take the case of Naaman, the Syrian, who was a Gentile and didn’t belong to the race of Moses. Still, his skin was healed, the God of Israel showed Himself to him, and he received the Holy Spirit. Naaman expressed his faith: "Look, now I know that there is no God on earth except in Israel." (II Kings 5:15.) Naaman didn’t do anything. He didn’t concern himself with the Law. He was never circumcised. That doesn’t mean his faith was inactive. He said to the Prophet Elisha: "Your servant will no longer offer burnt offerings or sacrifices to other gods, but to the Lord. In this matter, may the Lord forgive your servant, for when my master goes into the house of Rimmon to worship there, and he leans on my hand, and I bow down in the house of Rimmon: when I bow down in the house of Rimmon, may the Lord forgive your servant in this matter." What did the Prophet tell him? "Go in peace." The Jews don’t like to hear the prophet say this. "What," they shout, "should this pagan be justified without the Law? Should he be made equal to us who are circumcised?"
Long before the time of Moses, God justified men without the Law. He justified many kings of Egypt and Babylonia. He justified Job. Nineveh, that great city, was justified and received the promise of God that He would not destroy the city. Why was Nineveh spared? Not because it fulfilled the Law, but because Nineveh believed the word of God. The Prophet Jonah writes: "So the people of Nineveh believed God, and proclaimed a fast, and put on sackcloth." They repented. Nowhere in the Book of Jonah do you read that the Ninevites received the Law of Moses, or that they were circumcised, or that they offered sacrifices.
Long before Moses' time, God justified people without the Law. He justified many kings of Egypt and Babylon. He justified Job. Nineveh, that great city, was justified and received God's promise that He wouldn’t destroy it. Why was Nineveh spared? Not because it followed the Law, but because Nineveh trusted in God's word. The Prophet Jonah writes: "So the people of Nineveh believed God, and proclaimed a fast, and put on sackcloth." They repented. Nowhere in the Book of Jonah do you find that the Ninevites received the Law of Moses, or that they were circumcised, or that they made sacrifices.
All this happened long before Christ was born. If the Gentiles were justified without the Law and quietly received the Holy Spirit at a time when the Law was in full force, why should the Law count unto righteousness now, now that Christ has fulfilled the Law?
All this happened long before Christ was born. If the Gentiles were justified without the Law and peacefully received the Holy Spirit when the Law was fully in effect, why should the Law matter for righteousness now, since Christ has fulfilled the Law?
And yet many devote much time and labor to the Law, to the decrees of the fathers, and to the traditions of the Pope. Many of these specialists have incapacitated themselves for any kind of work, good or bad, by their rigorous attention to rules and laws. All the same, they could not obtain a quiet conscience and peace in Christ. But the moment the Gospel of Christ touches them, certainty comes to them, and joy, and a right judgment.
And yet many spend a lot of time and effort on the Law, on the commands of the fathers, and on the traditions of the Pope. Many of these experts have made themselves unable to do any kind of work, whether good or bad, because of their strict adherence to rules and laws. Still, they couldn't find a clear conscience or peace in Christ. But the moment the Gospel of Christ reaches them, they experience certainty, joy, and sound judgment.
I have good reason for enlarging upon this point. The heart of man finds it difficult to believe that so great a treasure as the Holy Ghost is gotten by the mere hearing of faith. The hearer likes to reason like this: Forgiveness of sins, deliverance from death, the gift of the Holy Ghost, everlasting life are grand things. If you want to obtain these priceless benefits, you must engage in correspondingly great efforts. And the devil says, "Amen."
I have a valid reason for discussing this in more detail. It's hard for people to believe that receiving something as precious as the Holy Spirit can come simply from hearing about faith. Listeners often think like this: Forgiveness of sins, freedom from death, the gift of the Holy Spirit, and eternal life are amazing gifts. To attain these invaluable benefits, you need to put in equally significant effort. And the devil agrees with that.
We must learn that forgiveness of sins, Christ, and the Holy Ghost, are freely granted unto us at the preaching of faith, in spite of our sinfulness. We are not to waste time thinking how unworthy we are of the blessings of God. We are to know that it pleased God freely to give us His unspeakable gifts. If He offers His gifts free of charge, why not take them? Why worry about our lack of worthiness? Why not accept gifts with joy and thanksgiving?
We need to understand that forgiveness for our sins, along with Christ and the Holy Spirit, are given to us freely through faith, regardless of our shortcomings. We shouldn't spend time feeling unworthy of God's blessings. We should recognize that it delighted God to give us His incredible gifts without any cost. If He offers His gifts for free, why shouldn't we accept them? Why stress over our feelings of unworthiness? Why not receive these gifts with joy and gratitude?
Right away foolish reason is once more offended. It scolds us. "When you say that a person can do nothing to obtain the grace of God, you foster carnal security. People become shiftless and will do no good at all. Better not preach this doctrine of faith. Rather urge the people to exert and to exercise themselves in good works, so that the Holy Ghost will feel like coming to them."
Right away, foolish reason is offended again. It scolds us: "When you say that a person can’t do anything to earn God’s grace, you create a false sense of security. People become lazy and won't do anything good. It's better not to preach this idea of faith. Instead, encourage people to put in effort and engage in good works so that the Holy Spirit will want to come to them."
What did Jesus say to Martha when she was very "careful and troubled about many things" and could hardly stand to see her sister Mary sitting at the feet of Jesus, just listening? "Martha, Martha," Jesus said, "thou art careful and troubled about many things: but one thing is needful; and Mary hath chosen that good part, which shall not be taken away from her." A person becomes a Christian not by working, but by hearing. The first step to being a Christian is to hear the Gospel. When a person has accepted the Gospel, let him first give thanks unto God with a glad heart, and then let him get busy on the good works to strive for, works that really please God, and not man-made and self-chosen works.
What did Jesus say to Martha when she was very "worried and upset about many things" and could hardly stand to see her sister Mary sitting at Jesus' feet, just listening? "Martha, Martha," Jesus said, "you are worried and upset about many things, but only one thing is necessary; and Mary has chosen what is best, which will not be taken away from her." A person becomes a Christian not by working, but by listening. The first step to being a Christian is to hear the Gospel. When someone accepts the Gospel, they should first thank God with a joyful heart, and then get busy doing good works that truly please God, rather than man-made and self-chosen tasks.
Our opponents regard faith as an easy thing, but I know from personal experience how hard it is to believe. That the Holy Ghost is received by faith, is quickly said, but not so quickly done.
Our opponents see faith as something simple, but I know from personal experience how difficult it is to believe. It's easy to say that the Holy Spirit is received through faith, but it's not so easy to actually do it.
All believers experience this difficulty. They would gladly embrace the Word with a full faith, but the flesh deters them. You see, our reason always thinks it is too easy and cheap to have righteousness, the Holy Spirit, and life everlasting by the mere hearing of the Gospel.
All believers face this challenge. They would happily accept the Word with complete faith, but their flesh holds them back. You see, our minds often think it's too simple and inexpensive to attain righteousness, the Holy Spirit, and eternal life just by hearing the Gospel.
VERSE 3. Are ye so foolish? having begun in the Spirit, are ye now made perfect by the flesh?
VERSE 3. Are you so foolish? After starting with the Spirit, do you think you can be made complete by the flesh now?
Paul now begins to warn the Galatians against a twofold danger. The first danger is: "Are ye so foolish, that after ye have begun in the Spirit, ye would now end in the flesh?"
Paul now starts warning the Galatians about a twofold danger. The first danger is: "Are you really that foolish, that after you've begun in the Spirit, you would now finish in the flesh?"
"Flesh" stands for the righteousness of reason which seeks justification by the accomplishment of the Law. I am told that I began in the spirit under the papacy, but am ending up in the flesh because I got married. As though single life were a spiritual life, and married life a carnal life. They are silly. All the duties of a Christian husband, e.g., to love his wife, to bring up his children, to govern his family, etc., are the very fruits of the Spirit.
"Flesh" represents the righteousness of reason that looks for justification through following the Law. I've been told that I started in the spirit under the papacy, but I'm ending up in the flesh because I got married. As if being single were a spiritual life and being married a carnal life. That’s just silly. All the responsibilities of a Christian husband, like loving his wife, raising his children, and managing his family, are actually the true fruits of the Spirit.
The righteousness of the Law which Paul also terms the righteousness of the flesh is so far from justifying a person that those who once had the Holy Spirit and lost Him, end up in the Law to their complete destruction.
The righteousness of the Law, which Paul also calls the righteousness of the flesh, is so far from justifying a person that those who once had the Holy Spirit and lost Him end up in the Law to their complete destruction.
VERSE 4. Have ye suffered so many things in vain?
VERSE 4. Have you gone through so much for nothing?
The other danger against which the Apostle warns the Galatians is this: "Have ye suffered so many things in vain?" Paul wants to say: "Consider not only the good start you had and lost, but consider also the many things you have suffered for the sake of the Gospel and for the name of Christ. You have suffered the loss of your possessions, you have borne reproaches, you have passed through many dangers of body and life. You endured much for the name of Christ and you endured it faithfully. But now you have lost everything, the Gospel, faith, and the spiritual benefit of your sufferings for Christ's sake. What a miserable thing to endure so many afflictions for nothing."
The other danger the Apostle warns the Galatians about is this: "Have you suffered so many things in vain?" Paul wants to say: "Don't just think about the great start you had and lost; think about all the things you've suffered for the Gospel and for the name of Christ. You've lost your possessions, faced insults, and gone through many dangers to your body and life. You endured so much for the name of Christ, and you did it faithfully. But now you've lost everything—the Gospel, your faith, and the spiritual rewards of your suffering for Christ. It's such a pity to go through so many hardships for nothing."
VERSE 4. If it be yet in vain.
VERSE 4. If it's still in vain.
The Apostle adds the afterthought: "If it be yet in vain. I do not despair of all hope for you. But if you continue to look to the Law for righteousness, I think you should be told that all your past true worship of God and all the afflictions that you have endured for Christ's sake are going to help you not at all. I do not mean to discourage you altogether. I do hope you will repent and amend."
The Apostle adds a final thought: "Even if it seems pointless, I still have hope for you. But if you keep relying on the Law for righteousness, you should know that all your previous genuine worship of God and all the struggles you've faced for Christ's sake won’t benefit you at all. I'm not trying to discourage you completely. I really hope you'll repent and make changes."
VERSE 5. He therefore that ministereth to you the Spirit, and worketh miracles among you, doeth he it by the works of the law, or by the hearing of faith?
VERSE 5. So, does the one who gives you the Spirit and performs miracles among you do it by following the law, or by believing what you’ve heard?
This argument based on the experience of the Galatians, pleased the Apostle so well that he returns to it after he had warned them against their twofold danger. "You have not only received the Spirit by the preaching of the Gospel, but by the same Gospel you were enabled to do things." "What things?" we ask. Miracles. At least the Galatians had manifested the striking fruits of faith which true disciples of the Gospel manifested in those days. On one occasion the Apostle wrote: "The kingdom of God is not in word, but in power." This "power" revealed itself not only in readiness of speech, but in demonstrations of the supernatural ability of the Holy Spirit.
This argument, based on the experience of the Galatians, made the Apostle so happy that he brings it up again after warning them about their twofold danger. "You didn't just receive the Spirit through the preaching of the Gospel; you were also empowered to take action through that same Gospel." "What actions?" we ask. Miracles. At the very least, the Galatians showed the remarkable results of faith that true disciples of the Gospel displayed back then. At one point, the Apostle wrote: "The kingdom of God is not just in words, but in power." This "power" showed itself not only in how well they spoke but also in displays of the Holy Spirit's supernatural ability.
When the Gospel is preached unto faith, hope, love, and patience, God gives His wonder-working Spirit. Paul reminds the Galatians of this. "God had not only brought you to faith by my preaching. He had also sanctified you to bring forth the fruits of faith. And one of the fruits of your faith was that you loved me so devotedly that you were willing to pluck out your eyes for me." To love a fellow-man so devotedly as to be ready to bestow upon him money, goods, eyes in order to secure his salvation, such love is the fruit of the Holy Spirit.
When the Gospel is shared with faith, hope, love, and patience, God gives His miraculous Spirit. Paul reminds the Galatians of this. "God didn't just bring you to faith through my preaching. He also set you apart to produce the fruits of faith. And one of the fruits of your faith was your deep love for me, so much so that you would have been willing to give up your own eyes for me." Loving another person so completely that you're ready to give them money, possessions, or even your own eyes to ensure their salvation—such love is the result of the Holy Spirit.
"These products of the Spirit you enjoyed before the false apostles misled you," the Apostle reminds the Galatians. "But you haven't manifested any of these fruits under the regime of the Law. How does it come that you do not grow the same fruits now? You no longer teach truly; you do not believe boldly; you do not live well; you do not work hard; you do not bear things patiently. Who has spoiled you that you no longer love me; that you are not now ready to pluck out your eyes for me? What has happened to cool your personal interest in me?"
"These gifts of the Spirit that you enjoyed before the false apostles led you astray," the Apostle reminds the Galatians. "But you aren’t showing any of these fruits under the Law. Why aren’t you producing the same fruits now? You no longer teach the truth; you don’t believe with confidence; you don’t live well; you don’t work hard; you don’t endure patiently. Who has messed with you that you no longer love me; that you aren’t willing to sacrifice for me? What’s changed to make you less interested in me?"
The same thing happened to me. When I began to proclaim the Gospel, there were many, very many who were delighted with our doctrine and had a good opinion of us. And now? Now they have succeeded in making us so odious to those who formerly loved us that they now hate us like poison.
The same thing happened to me. When I started sharing the Gospel, there were many, a lot of people who were excited about our beliefs and thought highly of us. And now? Now they have managed to make us so detestable to those who once loved us that they now hate us like poison.
Paul argues: "Your experience ought to teach you that the fruits of love do not grow on the stump of the Law. You had not virtue prior to the preaching of the Gospel and you have no virtues now under the regime of the false apostles."
Paul argues: "Your experience should show you that the results of love don’t come from the bare minimum of the Law. You didn’t have virtue before the Gospel was preached, and you have no virtues now under the influence of the false apostles."
We, too, may say to those who misname themselves "evangelical" and flout their new-found liberty: Have you put down the tyranny of the Pope and obtained liberty in Christ through the Anabaptists and other fanatics? Or have you obtained your freedom from us who preach faith in Christ Jesus? If there is any honesty left in them they will have to confess that their freedom dates from the preaching of the Gospel.
We can also ask those who incorrectly call themselves "evangelical" and flaunt their newfound freedom: Have you really escaped the Pope's control and found liberty in Christ through the Anabaptists and other extremists? Or did you gain your freedom from us who preach faith in Christ Jesus? If they have any honesty left, they will have to admit that their freedom comes from the preaching of the Gospel.
VERSE 6. Even as Abraham believed God, and it was accounted to him for righteousness.
VERSE 6. Just like Abraham trusted God, and it was credited to him as righteousness.
The Apostle next adduces the example of Abraham and reviews the testimony of the Scriptures concerning faith. The first passage is taken from Genesis 16:6: "And he believed in the Lord; and he counted it to him for righteousness." The Apostle makes the most of this passage. Abraham may have enjoyed a good standing with men for his upright life, but not with God. In the sight of God, Abraham was a condemned sinner. That he was justified before God was not due to his own exertions, but due to his faith. The Scriptures expressly state: "Abraham believed in the Lord; and he counted it to him for righteousness."
The Apostle then brings up Abraham as an example and discusses the Scriptures' testimony about faith. The first quote is from Genesis 16:6: "And he believed in the Lord; and he counted it to him for righteousness." The Apostle emphasizes this passage. Abraham might have had a good reputation among people for living a moral life, but not with God. In God's eyes, Abraham was a guilty sinner. His justification before God didn’t come from his own efforts, but from his faith. The Scriptures clearly say: "Abraham believed in the Lord; and he counted it to him for righteousness."
Paul places the emphasis upon the two words: Abraham believed. Faith in God constitutes the highest worship, the prime duty, the first obedience, and the foremost sacrifice. Without faith God forfeits His glory, wisdom, truth, and mercy in us. The first duty of man is to believe in God and to honor Him with his faith. Faith is truly the height of wisdom, the right kind of righteousness, the only real religion. This will give us an idea of the excellence of faith.
Paul emphasizes the two words: Abraham believed. Trusting in God is the highest form of worship, our main responsibility, our first act of obedience, and the greatest sacrifice. Without faith, God loses His glory, wisdom, truth, and mercy in us. The primary duty of humanity is to believe in God and to honor Him with that belief. Faith is genuinely the pinnacle of wisdom, the true form of righteousness, and the only real religion. This illustrates the greatness of faith.
To believe in God as Abraham did is to be right with God because faith honors God. Faith says to God: "I believe what you say." When we pay attention to reason, God seems to propose impossible matters in the Christian Creed. To reason it seems absurd that Christ should offer His body and blood in the Lord's Supper; that Baptism should be the washing of regeneration; that the dead shall rise; that Christ the Son of God was conceived in the womb of the Virgin Mary, etc. Reason shouts that all this is preposterous. Are you surprised that reason thinks little of faith? Reason thinks it ludicrous that faith should be the foremost service any person can render unto God.
Believing in God like Abraham did puts you in a good place with Him because faith respects God. Faith tells God, "I believe what you say." When we rely on logic, God seems to present impossible ideas in the Christian Creed. It seems absurd to reason that Christ would offer His body and blood in the Lord's Supper, that Baptism is a rebirth, that the dead will rise, or that Christ, the Son of God, was conceived in the Virgin Mary's womb, among other things. Logic insists that all of this is ridiculous. Are you surprised that reason undermines faith? Reason finds it laughable that faith could be the greatest service anyone can provide to God.
Let your faith supplant reason. Abraham mastered reason by faith in the Word of God. Not as though reason ever yields meekly. It put up a fight against the faith of Abraham. Reason protested that it was absurd to think that Sarah who was ninety years old and barren by nature, should give birth to a son. But faith won the victory and routed reason, that ugly beast and enemy of God. Everyone who by faith slays reason, the world's biggest monster, renders God a real service, a better service than the religions of all races and all the drudgery of meritorious monks can render.
Let your faith take over from reason. Abraham overcame reason by believing in the Word of God. It's not like reason gives up easily. It fought against Abraham's faith. Reason argued that it was ridiculous to think that Sarah, who was ninety years old and naturally barren, could give birth to a son. But faith triumphed and defeated reason, that ugly beast and enemy of God. Anyone who, through faith, defeats reason, the world's greatest monster, does a real service to God, a greater service than all the religions of every race and all the hard work of devoted monks combined.
Men fast, pray, watch, suffer. They intend to appease the wrath of God and to deserve God's grace by their exertions. But there is no glory in it for God, because by their exertions these workers pronounce God an unmerciful slave driver, an unfaithful and angry Judge. They despise God, make a liar out of Him, snub Christ and all His benefits; in short they pull God from His throne and perch themselves on it.
Men fast, pray, watch, and suffer. They aim to calm God’s anger and earn His grace through their efforts. But there’s no honor in this for God because, through their struggles, these workers portray Him as a harsh taskmaster, an unfaithful and angry judge. They disrespect God, make Him out to be a liar, dismiss Christ and all His blessings; in short, they push God off His throne and take His place.
Faith truly honors God. And because faith honors God, God counts faith for righteousness.
Faith genuinely honors God. And because faith honors God, God regards faith as righteousness.
Christian righteousness is the confidence of the heart in God through Christ Jesus. Such confidence is accounted righteousness for Christ's sake. Two things make for Christian righteousness: Faith in Christ, which is a gift of God; and God's acceptance of this imperfect faith of ours for perfect righteousness. Because of my faith in Christ, God overlooks my distrust, the unwillingness of my spirit, my many other sins. Because the shadow of Christ's wing covers me I have no fear that God will cover all my sins and take my imperfections for perfect righteousness.
Christian righteousness is the heart's confidence in God through Christ Jesus. This confidence is considered righteousness because of Christ. There are two things that contribute to Christian righteousness: Faith in Christ, which is a gift from God, and God's acceptance of our imperfect faith as perfect righteousness. Because of my faith in Christ, God overlooks my doubts, my unwillingness, and my many other sins. Because I am sheltered under Christ's wing, I have no fear that God will overlook all my sins and accept my imperfections as perfect righteousness.
God "winks" at my sins and covers them up. God says: "Because you believe in My Son I will forgive your sins until death shall deliver you from the body of sin."
God "winks" at my sins and hides them away. God says: "Because you believe in My Son, I will forgive your sins until death frees you from the body of sin."
Learn to understand the constitution of your Christian righteousness. Faith is weak, but it means enough to God that He will not lay sin to our charge. He will not punish nor condemn us for it. He will forgive our sins as though they amount to nothing at all. He will do it not because we are worthy of such mercy. He will do it for Jesus' sake in whom we believe.
Learn to understand the nature of your Christian righteousness. Faith may be weak, but it matters enough to God that He won’t hold our sins against us. He won’t punish or condemn us for them. He will forgive our sins as if they’re worth nothing at all. He will do this not because we deserve such mercy, but for the sake of Jesus, in whom we believe.
Paradoxically, a Christian is both right and wrong, holy and profane, an enemy of God and a child of God. These contradictions no person can harmonize who does not understand the true way of salvation. Under the papacy we were told to toil until the feeling of guilt had left us. But the authors of this deranged idea were frequently driven to despair in the hour of death. It would have happened to me, if Christ had not mercifully delivered me from this error.
Paradoxically, a Christian is both right and wrong, holy and unholy, an enemy of God and a child of God. No one can reconcile these contradictions without understanding the true path to salvation. Under the papacy, we were told to work hard until our guilt faded away. But those who promoted this twisted idea often fell into despair at the time of their death. That would have been my fate too, if Christ hadn’t mercifully freed me from this mistake.
We comfort the afflicted sinner in this manner: Brother, you can never be perfect in this life, but you can be holy. He will say: "How can I be holy when I feel my sins?" I answer: You feel sin? That is a good sign. To realize that one is ill is a step, and a very necessary step, toward recovery. "But how will I get rid of my sin?" he will ask. I answer: See the heavenly Physician, Christ, who heals the broken-hearted. Do not consult that Quackdoctor, Reason. Believe in Christ and your sins will be pardoned. His righteousness will become your righteousness, and your sins will become His sins.
We comfort the struggling sinner like this: Brother, you may never be perfect in this life, but you can be holy. He might say, "How can I be holy when I feel my sins?" I respond: You feel sin? That’s a good sign. Recognizing you’re in trouble is a crucial step toward healing. "But how will I get rid of my sin?" he’ll ask. I say: Look to the heavenly Healer, Christ, who mends the broken-hearted. Don’t rely on that so-called expert, Reason. Trust in Christ, and your sins will be forgiven. His righteousness will become your righteousness, and your sins will become His.
On one occasion Jesus said to His disciples: "The Father loveth you." Why? Not because the disciples were Pharisees, or circumcised, or particularly attentive to the Law. Jesus said: "The Father loveth you, because ye have loved me, and have believed that I came out from God. It pleased you to know that the Father sent me into the world. And because you believed it the Father loves you." On another occasion Jesus called His disciples evil and commanded them to ask for forgiveness.
On one occasion, Jesus told His disciples, "The Father loves you." Why? Not because the disciples were Pharisees, or circumcised, or particularly focused on the Law. Jesus said, "The Father loves you because you have loved me and believed that I came from God. You were pleased to know that the Father sent me into the world. And because you believed it, the Father loves you." On another occasion, Jesus referred to His disciples as evil and told them to ask for forgiveness.
A Christian is beloved of God and a sinner. How can these two contradictions be harmonized: I am a sinner and deserve God's wrath and punishment, and yet the Father loves me? Christ alone can harmonize these contradictions. He is the Mediator.
A Christian is loved by God and also a sinner. How can we reconcile these two contradictions: I am a sinner who deserves God's anger and punishment, yet the Father loves me? Only Christ can bridge these contradictions. He is the Mediator.
Do you now see how faith justifies without works? Sin lingers in us, and God hates sin. A transfusion of righteousness therefore becomes vitally necessary. This transfusion of righteousness we obtain from Christ because we believe in Him.
Do you see how faith justifies us without needing works? Sin remains within us, and God detests sin. So, a transfer of righteousness becomes essential. We receive this transfer of righteousness from Christ because we believe in Him.
VERSE 7. Know ye therefore that they which are of faith, the same are the children of Abraham.
VERSE 7. So, recognize that those who have faith are the same as the children of Abraham.
This is the main point of Paul's argument against the Jews: The children of Abraham are those who believe and not those who are born of Abraham's flesh and blood. This point Paul drives home with all his might because the Jews attached saving value to the genealogical fact: "We are the seed and children of Abraham."
This is the main point of Paul's argument against the Jews: The children of Abraham are those who believe, not just those who are born from Abraham's flesh and blood. Paul emphasizes this point strongly because the Jews placed saving value on their genealogy: "We are the seed and children of Abraham."
Let us begin with Abraham and learn how this friend of God was justified and saved. Not because he left his country, his relatives, his father's house; not because he was circumcised; not because he stood ready to sacrifice his own son Isaac in whom he had the promise of posterity. Abraham was justified because he believed. Paul's argumentation runs like this: "Since this is the unmistakable testimony of Holy Writ, why do you take your stand upon circumcision and the Law? Was not Abraham, your father, of whom you make so much, justified and saved without circumcision and the Law by faith alone?" Paul therefore concludes: "They which are of faith, the same are the children of Abraham."
Let’s start with Abraham and see how this friend of God was justified and saved. It wasn’t because he left his homeland, his family, or his father’s house; it wasn’t because he was circumcised; and it certainly wasn’t because he was willing to sacrifice his son Isaac, in whom he had the promise of descendants. Abraham was justified because he had faith. Paul argues like this: “Since this is the clear message of Scripture, why do you focus on circumcision and the Law? Wasn’t Abraham, your father, whom you admire so much, justified and saved by faith alone, without circumcision or the Law?” Therefore, Paul concludes: “Those who have faith are the true children of Abraham.”
Abraham was the father of the faithful. In order to be a child of the believing Abraham you must believe as he did. Otherwise you are merely the physical offspring of the procreating Abraham, i.e., you were conceived and born in sin unto wrath and condemnation.
Abraham was the father of those who have faith. To be a child of the believing Abraham, you need to believe like he did. Otherwise, you're just the biological descendant of Abraham, meaning you were conceived and born into sin, facing wrath and condemnation.
Ishmael and Isaac were both the natural children of Abraham. By rights Ishmael should have enjoyed the prerogatives of the firstborn, if physical generation had any special value. Nevertheless he was left out in the cold while Isaac was called. This goes to prove that the children of faith are the real children of Abraham.
Ishmael and Isaac were both the biological children of Abraham. By rights, Ishmael should have received the privileges of the firstborn if being born first held any significance. However, he was left out while Isaac was chosen. This shows that the children of faith are the true descendants of Abraham.
Some find fault with Paul for applying the term "faith" in Genesis 15:6 to Christ. They think Paul's use of the term too wide and general. They think its meaning should be restricted to the context. They claim Abraham's faith had no more in it than a belief in the promise of God that he should have seed.
Some people criticize Paul for using the term "faith" from Genesis 15:6 in relation to Christ. They believe Paul’s use of the term is too broad and general. They think its meaning should be limited to the specific context. They argue that Abraham's faith was simply a belief in God's promise that he would have descendants.
We reply: Faith presupposes the assurance of God's mercy. This assurance takes in the confidence that our sins are forgiven for Christ's sake. Never will the conscience trust in God unless it can be sure of God's mercy and promises in Christ. Now all the promises of God lead back to the first promise concerning Christ: "And I will put enmity between thee and the woman, and between thy seed and her seed; it shall bruise thy head, and thou shalt bruise his heel." The faith of the fathers in the Old Testament era, and our faith in the New Testament are one and the same faith in Christ Jesus, although times and conditions may differ. Peter acknowledged this in the words: "Which neither our fathers nor we were able to bear? But we believe that through the grace of the Lord Jesus Christ we shall be saved, even as they." (Acts l5: 10, 11.) And Paul writes: "And did all drink the spiritual drink; for they drank of that spiritual Rock that followed them: and that Rock was Christ." (I Cor. 10:4.) And Christ Himself declared: "Your father Abraham rejoiced to see my day: and he saw it and was glad." (John 8:56.) The faith of the fathers was directed at the Christ who was to come, while ours rests in the Christ who has come. Time does not change the object of true faith, or the Holy Spirit. There has always been and always will be one mind, one impression, one faith concerning Christ among true believers whether they live in times past, now, or in times to come. We too believe in the Christ to come as the fathers did in the Old Testament, for we look for Christ to come again on the last day to judge the quick and the dead.
We respond: Faith relies on the assurance of God's mercy. This assurance includes the confidence that our sins are forgiven because of Christ. The conscience will never trust in God unless it is certain of God's mercy and promises in Christ. All of God's promises trace back to the first promise about Christ: "And I will put enmity between you and the woman, and between your offspring and her offspring; he shall bruise your head, and you shall bruise his heel." The faith of the fathers in the Old Testament and our faith in the New Testament are both the same faith in Christ Jesus, even though the times and circumstances may vary. Peter recognized this when he said: "Which neither our fathers nor we were able to bear? But we believe that through the grace of the Lord Jesus Christ we shall be saved, even as they." (Acts 15:10, 11.) And Paul writes: "And all drank the same spiritual drink; for they drank from the spiritual Rock that followed them: and that Rock was Christ." (I Cor. 10:4.) Christ Himself also stated: "Your father Abraham rejoiced to see my day: and he saw it and was glad." (John 8:56.) The faith of the fathers was focused on the Christ who was to come, while ours is placed in the Christ who has come. Time does not change the object of true faith or the Holy Spirit. There has always been and will always be one mindset, one understanding, one faith in Christ among true believers, whether they lived in the past, live now, or will live in the future. We also believe in the Christ to come just as the fathers did in the Old Testament, for we anticipate Christ's return on the last day to judge the living and the dead.
VERSE 7. Know ye therefore that they which are of faith, the same are the children of Abraham.
VERSE 7. So, understand that those who have faith are the same as the children of Abraham.
Paul is saying: "You know from the example of Abraham and from the plain testimony of the Scriptures that they are the children of Abraham, who have faith in Christ, regardless of their nationality, regardless of the Law, regardless of works, regardless of their parentage. The promise was made unto Abraham, 'Thou shalt be a father of many nations'; again, 'And in thee shall all families of the earth be blessed.'" To prevent the Jews from misinterpreting the word "nations," the Scriptures are careful to say "many nations." The true children of Abraham are the believers in Christ from all nations.
Paul is saying: "You know from the example of Abraham and the clear testimony of the Scriptures that the true children of Abraham are those who have faith in Christ, no matter their nationality, the Law, their actions, or their background. The promise was made to Abraham, 'You will be a father of many nations'; and again, 'Through you, all families of the earth will be blessed.'" To avoid any confusion for the Jews regarding the term "nations," the Scriptures specifically mention "many nations." The real children of Abraham are the believers in Christ from all nations.
VERSE 8. And the Scripture, foreseeing that God would justify the heathen through faith.
VERSE 8. And the Scripture, anticipating that God would make the non-Jewish people right through faith.
"Your boasting does not get you anywhere," says Paul to the Galatians, "because the Sacred Scriptures foresaw and foretold long before the Law was ever given, that the heathen should be justified by the blessed 'seed' of Abraham and not by the Law. This promise was made four hundred and thirty years before the Law was given. Because the Law was given so many years after Abraham, it could not abolish the promised blessing." This argument is strong because it is based on the exact factor of time. "Why should you boast of the Law, my Galatians, when the Law came four hundred and thirty years after the promise?"
"Your bragging doesn’t get you anywhere," Paul tells the Galatians, "because the Sacred Scriptures predicted long before the Law was given that the Gentiles would be justified by the blessed 'seed' of Abraham, not by the Law. This promise was made four hundred and thirty years before the Law was established. Since the Law came so many years after Abraham, it couldn’t cancel the promised blessing." This argument is powerful because it hinges on the specific timing. "Why should you take pride in the Law, my Galatians, when the Law arrived four hundred and thirty years after the promise?"
The false apostles glorified the Law and despised the promise made unto Abraham, although it antedated the Law by many years. It was after Abraham was accounted righteous because of his faith that the Scriptures first make mention of circumcision. "The Scriptures," says Paul, "meant to forestall your infatuation for the righteousness of the Law by installing the righteousness of faith before circumcision and the Law ever were ordained."
The fake apostles praised the Law and looked down on the promise given to Abraham, even though it came years before the Law. It was only after Abraham was considered righteous because of his faith that the Scriptures first mentioned circumcision. "The Scriptures," Paul says, "were intended to prevent you from getting caught up in the righteousness of the Law by establishing the righteousness of faith before circumcision and the Law were ever set in place."
VERSE 8. Preached before the gospel unto Abraham, saying, In thee shall all nations be blessed.
VERSE 8. Preached the gospel to Abraham, saying, Through you all nations will be blessed.
The Jews misconstrue this passage. They want the term "to bless" to mean "to praise." They want the passage to read: In thee shall all the nations of the earth be praised. But this is a perversion of the words of Holy Writ. With the words "Abraham believed" Paul describes a spiritual Abraham, renewed by faith and regenerated by the Holy Ghost, that he should be the spiritual father of many nations. In that way all the Gentiles could be given to him for an inheritance.
The Jews misunderstand this passage. They want the term "to bless" to mean "to praise." They want the passage to say: In you shall all the nations of the earth be praised. But this twists the words of Scripture. With the phrase "Abraham believed," Paul depicts a spiritual Abraham, transformed by faith and reborn by the Holy Spirit, so that he would be the spiritual father of many nations. In this way, all the Gentiles could be given to him as an inheritance.
The Scriptures ascribe no righteousness to Abraham except through faith. The Scriptures speak of Abraham as he stands before God, a man justified by faith. Because of his faith God extends to him the promise: "In thee shall all nations be blessed."
The Scriptures attribute no righteousness to Abraham except through faith. The Scriptures describe Abraham as a person standing before God, justified by faith. Because of his faith, God offers him the promise: "In you shall all nations be blessed."
VERSE 9. So then they which be of faith are blessed with faithful Abraham.
VERSE 9. So those who have faith are blessed along with faithful Abraham.
The emphasis lies on the words "with faithful Abraham." Paul distinguishes between Abraham and Abraham. There is a working and there is a believing Abraham. With the working Abraham we have nothing to do. Let the Jews glory in the generating Abraham; we glory in the believing Abraham of whom the Scriptures say that he received the blessing of righteousness by faith, not only for himself but for all who believe as he did. The world was promised to Abraham because he believed. The whole world is blessed if it believes as Abraham believed.
The focus is on the words "with faithful Abraham." Paul differentiates between working Abraham and believing Abraham. We aren't concerned with the working Abraham. Let the Jews take pride in generating Abraham; we take pride in the believing Abraham, of whom the Scriptures say he received the blessing of righteousness through faith, not just for himself but for everyone who believes like he did. The world was promised to Abraham because of his belief. The entire world is blessed if it believes as Abraham did.
The blessing is the promise of the Gospel. That all nations are to be blessed means that all nations are to hear the Gospel. All nations are to be declared righteous before God through faith in Christ Jesus. To bless simply means to spread abroad the knowledge of Christ's salvation. This is the office of the New Testament Church which distributes the promised blessing by preaching the Gospel, by administering the sacraments, by comforting the broken-hearted, in short, by dispensing the benefits of Christ.
The blessing is the promise of the Gospel. That all nations are to be blessed means that all nations are to hear the Gospel. All nations are to be declared righteous before God through faith in Christ Jesus. To bless simply means to spread the knowledge of Christ's salvation. This is the role of the New Testament Church, which shares the promised blessing by preaching the Gospel, administering the sacraments, comforting the broken-hearted, and, in short, providing the benefits of Christ.
The Jews exhibited a working Abraham. The Pope exhibits a working Christ, or an exemplary Christ. The Pope quotes Christ's saying recorded in John 13:15, "I have given you an example, that ye should do as I have done to you." We do not deny that Christians ought to imitate the example of Christ; but mere imitation will not satisfy God. And bear in mind that Paul is not now discussing the example of Christ, but the salvation of Christ. That Abraham submitted to circumcision at the command of God, that he was endowed with excellent virtues, that he obeyed God in all things, was certainly admirable of him. To follow the example of Christ, to love one's neighbor, to do good to them that persecute you, to pray for one's enemies, patiently to bear the ingratitude of those who return evil for good, is certainly praiseworthy. But praiseworthy or not, such virtues do not acquit us before God. It takes more than that to make us righteous before God. We need Christ Himself, not His example, to save us. We need a redeeming, not an exemplary Christ, to save us. Paul is here speaking of the redeeming Christ and the believing Abraham, not of the model Christ or the sweating Abraham.
The Jews showed a working Abraham. The Pope shows a working Christ, or an exemplary Christ. The Pope quotes Christ's saying recorded in John 13:15, "I have given you an example, that you should do as I have done to you." We don’t deny that Christians should imitate Christ’s example; but just imitating won’t satisfy God. And remember that Paul isn’t discussing Christ’s example right now, but Christ’s salvation. That Abraham went through with circumcision at God’s command, that he had great virtues, and that he obeyed God in everything was certainly admirable. Following Christ’s example, loving your neighbor, doing good to those who persecute you, praying for your enemies, and patiently bearing the ingratitude of those who repay good with evil is indeed commendable. But whether commendable or not, those virtues don’t clear us before God. It takes more than that to make us righteous before God. We need Christ Himself, not just His example, to save us. We need a redeeming Christ, not just an exemplary one, to save us. Paul is talking about the redeeming Christ and the believing Abraham here, not about the model Christ or the sweating Abraham.
The believing Abraham is not to lie buried in the grave. He is to be dusted off and brought out before the world. He is to be praised to the sky for his faith. Heaven and earth ought to know about him and about his faith in Christ. The working Abraham ought to look pretty small next to the believing Abraham.
The faithful Abraham is not meant to stay buried in the grave. He is to be dusted off and brought forth for everyone to see. He deserves to be celebrated for his faith. Both heaven and earth should recognize him and his belief in Christ. The active Abraham should seem insignificant compared to the faithful Abraham.
Paul's words contain the implication of contrast. When he quotes Scripture to the effect that all nations that share the faith of faithful Abraham are to be blessed, Paul means to imply the contrast that all nations are accursed without faith in Christ.
Paul's words hint at a contrast. When he quotes Scripture saying that all nations with the faith of faithful Abraham will be blessed, he implies that all nations are cursed without faith in Christ.
VERSE 10. For as many as are of the works of the law are under the curse.
VERSE 10. For everyone who relies on doing the works of the law is under the curse.
The curse of God is like a flood that swallows everything that is not of faith. To avoid the curse we must hold on to the promise of the blessing in Christ.
The curse of God is like a flood that consumes everything that isn't grounded in faith. To escape the curse, we need to cling to the promise of the blessing found in Christ.
The reader is reminded that all this has no bearing upon civil laws, customs, or political matters. Civil laws and ordinances have their place and purpose. Let every government enact the best possible laws. But civil righteousness will never deliver a person from the condemnation of God's Law.
The reader is reminded that none of this affects civil laws, customs, or political issues. Civil laws and ordinances have their own role and purpose. Every government should create the best possible laws. However, being morally upright in society will never save someone from the judgment of God's Law.
I have good reason for calling your attention to this. People easily mistake civil righteousness for spiritual righteousness. In civil life we must, of course, pay attention to laws and deeds, but in the spiritual life we must not think to be justified by laws and works, but always keep in mind the promise and blessing of Christ, our only Savior.
I have a good reason to bring this to your attention. People often confuse civil righteousness with spiritual righteousness. In our everyday lives, we definitely need to pay attention to laws and actions, but in our spiritual lives, we shouldn't believe we're justified by laws and deeds. Instead, we should always remember the promise and blessing of Christ, our only Savior.
According to Paul everything that is not of faith is sin. When our opponents hear us repeat this statement of Paul, they make it appear as if we taught that governments should not be honored, as if we favored rebellion against the constituted authorities, as if we condemned all laws. Our opponents do us a great wrong, for we make a clear-cut distinction between civil and spiritual affairs.
According to Paul, anything that isn't based on faith is sin. When our opponents hear us repeat this statement from Paul, they twist it to suggest that we believe governments shouldn't be respected, as if we promote rebellion against the established authorities or that we reject all laws. Our opponents are seriously misrepresenting us because we clearly distinguish between civil and spiritual matters.
Governmental laws and ordinances are blessings of God for this life only. As for everlasting life, temporal blessings are not good enough. Unbelievers enjoy more temporal blessings than the Christians. Civil or legal righteousness may be good enough for this life but not for the life hereafter. Otherwise the infidels would be nearer heaven than the Christians, for infidels often excel in civil righteousness.
Government laws and regulations are gifts from God for this life only. As for eternal life, temporary blessings aren’t sufficient. Non-believers often have more temporary blessings than Christians. Civil or legal righteousness may be enough for this life, but not for the next one. Otherwise, non-believers would be closer to heaven than Christians, since non-believers frequently excel in civil righteousness.
VERSE 10. For it is written, Cursed is every one that continueth not in all things which are written in the book of the law to do them.
VERSE 10. For it is written, Cursed is everyone who does not continue in all the things that are written in the book of the law to do them.
Paul goes on to prove from this quotation out of the Book of Deuteronomy that all men who are under the Law are under the sentence of sin, of the wrath of God, and of everlasting death. Paul produces his proof in a roundabout way. He turns the negative statement, "Cursed is every one that continueth not in all things which are written in the book of the law to do them," into a positive statement, "As many as are of the works of the law are under the curse." These two statements, one by Paul and the other by Moses, appear to conflict. Paul declares, "Whosoever shall do the works of the Law, is accursed." Moses declares, "Whosoever shall not do the works of the Law, is accursed." How can these two contradictory statements be reconciled? How can the one statement prove the other? No person can hope to understand Paul unless he understands the article of justification. These two statements are not at all inconsistent.
Paul goes on to show from this quote from the Book of Deuteronomy that everyone who is under the Law is under the judgment of sin, the anger of God, and eternal death. Paul makes his point in a roundabout way. He takes the negative statement, "Cursed is everyone who does not continue to do everything written in the book of the law," and turns it into a positive statement, "All who rely on the works of the law are under a curse." These two statements, one from Paul and the other from Moses, seem to contradict each other. Paul says, "Anyone who does the works of the Law is accursed." Moses states, "Anyone who does not do the works of the Law is accursed." How can these contradictory statements be reconciled? How can one statement support the other? No one can truly understand Paul without grasping the concept of justification. These two statements are not inconsistent at all.
We must bear in mind that to do the works of the Law does not mean only to live up to the superficial requirements of the Law, but to obey the spirit of the Law to perfection. But where will you find the person who can do that? Let him step forward and we will praise him.
We need to remember that doing the works of the Law doesn't just mean following the basic rules, but truly adhering to the deeper essence of the Law perfectly. But where can you find someone who can achieve that? Let them come forward, and we will commend them.
Our opponents have their answer ready-made. They quote Paul's own statement in Romans 2:13, "The doers of the law shall be justified." Very well. But let us first find out who the doers of the law are. They call a "doer" of the Law one who performs the Law in its literal sense. This is not to "do" the Law. This is to sin. When our opponents go about to perform the Law they sin against the first, the second, and the third commandments, in fact they sin against the whole Law. For God requires above all that we worship Him in spirit and in faith. In observing the Law for the purpose of obtaining righteousness without faith in Christ these law-workers go smack against the Law and against God. They deny the righteousness of God, His mercy, and His promises. They deny Christ and all His benefits.
Our opponents have their answer all set. They reference Paul's own words in Romans 2:13, "The doers of the law shall be justified." That’s fine. But let’s first clarify who the doers of the law actually are. They consider a "doer" of the Law to be someone who follows it in its literal sense. This isn’t truly “doing” the Law; this is actually sinning. When our opponents try to follow the Law, they violate the first, second, and third commandments, and in fact, they break the entire Law. God requires above all that we worship Him in spirit and in faith. By trying to follow the Law to gain righteousness without faith in Christ, these law-followers are directly opposing the Law and God. They reject the righteousness of God, His mercy, and His promises. They deny Christ and all that comes with Him.
In their ignorance of the true purpose of the Law the exponents of the Law abuse the Law, as Paul says, Romans 10:3, "For they, being ignorant of God's righteousness, and going about to establish their own righteousness, have not submitted themselves unto the righteousness of God."
In their lack of understanding of the true purpose of the Law, the advocates of the Law misuse it. As Paul states in Romans 10:3, "For they, not knowing God's righteousness and trying to establish their own righteousness, have not submitted to the righteousness of God."
In their folly our opponents rush into the Scriptures, pick out a sentence here and a sentence there about the Law and imagine they know all about it. Their work-righteousness is plain idolatry and blasphemy against God. No wonder they abide under the curse of God.
In their ignorance, our opponents dive into the Scriptures, grabbing a sentence here and a sentence there about the Law, thinking they understand it completely. Their belief in earning salvation through works is straightforward idolatry and disrespect toward God. It's no surprise they live under God's curse.
Because God saw that we could not fulfill the Law, He provided a way of salvation long before the Law was ever given, a salvation that He promised to Abraham, saying, "In thee shall all nations be blessed."
Because God knew we couldn't keep the Law, He made a plan for salvation long before the Law was ever established, a salvation He promised to Abraham, saying, "Through you, all nations will be blessed."
The very first thing for us to do is to believe in Christ. First, we must receive the Holy Spirit, who enlightens and sanctifies us so that we can begin to do the Law, i.e., to love God and our neighbor. Now, the Holy Ghost is not obtained by the Law, but by faith in Christ. In the last analysis, to do the Law means to believe in Jesus Christ. The tree comes first, and then come the fruits.
The very first thing we need to do is believe in Christ. First, we must receive the Holy Spirit, who enlightens and sanctifies us so we can start following the Law, which means loving God and our neighbor. Now, the Holy Spirit isn’t received through the Law, but through faith in Christ. Ultimately, following the Law means believing in Jesus Christ. The tree comes first, and then the fruit.
The scholastics admit that a mere external and superficial performance of the Law without sincerity and good will is plain hypocrisy. Judas acted like the other disciples. What was wrong with Judas? Mark what Rome answers, "Judas was a reprobate. His motives were perverse, therefore his works were hypocritical and no good." Well, well. Rome does admit, after all, that works in themselves do not justify unless they issue from a sincere heart. Why do our opponents not profess the same truth in spiritual matters? There, above all, faith must precede everything. The heart must be purified by faith before a person can lift a finger to please God.
The scholastics recognize that simply going through the motions of the Law without genuine sincerity and goodwill is just plain hypocrisy. Judas behaved like the other disciples. What was wrong with Judas? Note how Rome responds, "Judas was a reprobate. His motives were twisted, so his actions were hypocritical and meaningless." Well, it seems Rome does acknowledge, after all, that actions alone don't justify unless they come from a sincere heart. Why don't our opponents acknowledge the same truth in spiritual matters? In that case, faith must come first. The heart needs to be cleansed by faith before anyone can even attempt to please God.
There are two classes of doers of the Law, true doers and hypocritical doers. The true doers of the Law are those who are moved by faith in Christ to do the Law. The hypocritical doers of the Law are those who seek to obtain righteousness by a mechanical performance of good works while their hearts are far removed from God. They act like the foolish carpenter who starts with the roof when he builds a house. Instead of doing the Law, these law-conscious hypocrites break the Law. They break the very first commandment of God by denying His promise in Christ. They do not worship God in faith. They worship themselves.
There are two types of people when it comes to the Law: genuine doers and hypocritical doers. The genuine doers are motivated by their faith in Christ to follow the Law. The hypocritical doers, on the other hand, try to achieve righteousness through a mechanical execution of good works, even though their hearts are far from God. They resemble the foolish carpenter who starts building a house from the roof. Instead of adhering to the Law, these law-obsessed hypocrites actually break it. They violate the very first commandment of God by rejecting His promise in Christ. They don’t worship God in faith; they worship themselves.
No wonder Paul was able to foretell the abominations that Antichrist would bring into the Church. That Antichrists would come, Christ Himself prophesied, Matthew 24:5, "For many shall come in my name, saying, I am Christ; and shall deceive many." Whoever seeks righteousness by works denies God and makes himself God. He is an Antichrist because he ascribes to his own works the omnipotent capability of conquering sin, death, devil, hell, and the wrath of God. An Antichrist lays claim to the honor of Christ. He is an idolater of himself. The law-righteous person is the worst kind of infidel.
No wonder Paul could predict the terrible things that the Antichrist would bring into the Church. Christ Himself prophesied that Antichrists would come, as stated in Matthew 24:5: "For many will come in my name, claiming, I am the Christ; and they will deceive many." Anyone who seeks righteousness through their own actions denies God and places themselves in God's position. This person is an Antichrist because they attribute to their own actions the power to overcome sin, death, the devil, hell, and the wrath of God. An Antichrist claims the honor due to Christ. They are an idolater of themselves. The person who is righteous through the law is the worst kind of unbeliever.
Those who intend to obtain righteousness by their own efforts do not say in so many words: "I am God; I am Christ." But it amounts to that. They usurp the divinity and office of Christ. The effect is the same as if they said, "I am Christ; I am a Savior. I save myself and others." This is the impression the monks give out.
Those who plan to achieve righteousness through their own efforts don’t explicitly say, "I am God; I am Christ." But it amounts to that. They take on the divinity and role of Christ. The outcome is the same as if they declared, "I am Christ; I am a Savior. I save myself and others." This is the impression that monks give off.
The Pope is the Antichrist, because he is against Christ, because he takes liberties with the things of God, because he lords it over the temple of God.
The Pope is the Antichrist because he opposes Christ, because he misuses the things of God, and because he controls the temple of God.
I cannot tell you in words how criminal it is to seek righteousness before God without faith in Christ, by the works of the Law. It is the abomination standing in the holy place. It deposes the Creator and deifies the creature.
I can’t express how wrong it is to try to achieve righteousness before God without faith in Christ, relying solely on the works of the Law. It’s a disgrace invading the sacred space. It replaces the Creator with the created.
The real doers of the Law are the true believers. The Holy Spirit enables them to love God and their neighbor. But because we have only the first-fruits of the Spirit and not the tenth-fruits, we do not observe the Law perfectly. This imperfection of ours, however, is not imputed to us, for Christ's sake.
The real followers of the Law are the true believers. The Holy Spirit helps them love God and their neighbor. However, since we only have the first-fruits of the Spirit and not the complete harvest, we don’t perfectly follow the Law. This flaw of ours, though, isn’t counted against us because of Christ.
Hence, the statement of Moses, "Cursed is every one that continueth not in all things which are written in the book of the law to do them," is not contrary to Paul. Moses requires perfect doers of the Law. But where will you find them? Nowhere. Moses himself confessed that he was not a perfect doer of the Law. He said to the Lord: "Pardon our iniquity and our sin." Christ alone can make us innocent of any transgression. How so? First, by the forgiveness of our sins and the imputation of His righteousness. Secondly, by the gift of the Holy Ghost, who engenders new life and activity in us.
Therefore, Moses’ statement, “Cursed is everyone who does not continue to do everything written in the Book of the Law,” doesn’t contradict Paul. Moses demands perfect adherence to the Law. But where can you find such people? Nowhere. Moses himself admitted that he wasn’t a perfect follower of the Law. He said to the Lord, “Forgive our wrongdoing and our sins.” Only Christ can make us free from any wrongdoing. How? First, by forgiving our sins and crediting us with His righteousness. Second, by giving us the Holy Spirit, who creates new life and action within us.
Objections to the Doctrine of Faith Disproved
Objections to the Doctrine of Faith Disproved
Here we shall take the time to enter upon the objections which our opponents raise against the doctrine of faith. There are many passages in the Bible that deal with works and the reward of works which our opponents cite against us in the belief that these will disprove the doctrine of faith which we teach.
Here, we will take the time to address the objections that our opponents have against the doctrine of faith. There are many passages in the Bible that talk about works and the rewards for those works, which our opponents use to argue against us, thinking that these will disprove the doctrine of faith that we teach.
The scholastics grant that according to the reasonable order of nature being precedes doing. They grant that any act is faulty unless it proceeds from a right motive. They grant that a person must be right before he can do right. Why don't they grant that the right inclination of the heart toward God through faith in Christ must precede works?
The scholars agree that, according to the natural order of things, being comes before doing. They believe that any action is flawed unless it comes from the right motive. They accept that a person must be good before they can do good. So, why don't they acknowledge that a genuine desire in the heart for God through faith in Christ must come before actions?
In the eleventh chapter of the Epistle to the Hebrews we find a catalogue of various works and deeds of the saints of the Bible. David, who killed a lion and a bear, and defeated Goliath, is mentioned. In the heroic deeds of David the scholastic can discover nothing more than outward achievement. But the deeds of David must be evaluated according to the personality of David. When we understand that David was a man of faith, whose heart trusted in the Lord, we shall understand why he could do such heroic deeds. David said: "The Lord that delivered me out of the paw of the lion, and out of the paw of the bear, he will deliver me out of the hand of this Philistine." Again: "Thou comest to me with a sword, and with a spear, and with a shield: but I come to thee in the name of the Lord of hosts, the God of the armies of Israel, whom thou hast defied. This day will the Lord deliver thee into mine hand; and I will smite thee, and take thine head from thee." (I Samuel 17:37, 45, 46.) Before David could achieve a single heroic deed he was already a man beloved of God, strong and constant in faith.
In the eleventh chapter of the Epistle to the Hebrews, we find a list of various works and deeds of the saints from the Bible. David, who killed a lion and a bear and defeated Goliath, is mentioned. However, in David's heroic deeds, one can see more than just external accomplishments. We need to evaluate David's actions in the context of his personality. When we realize that David was a man of faith whose heart trusted in the Lord, it helps us understand why he could perform such heroic acts. David said, "The Lord who rescued me from the paw of the lion and the paw of the bear will rescue me from the hand of this Philistine." He also stated, "You come to me with a sword, a spear, and a shield; but I come to you in the name of the Lord of hosts, the God of the armies of Israel, whom you have defied. Today, the Lord will deliver you into my hands, and I will strike you down and cut off your head." (I Samuel 17:37, 45, 46.) Before David accomplished any heroic acts, he was already a man loved by God, strong and unwavering in faith.
Of Abel it is said in the same Epistle: "By faith Abel offered unto God a more excellent sacrifice than Cain." When the scholastics come upon the parallel passage in Genesis 4:4 they get no further than the words: "And the Lord had respect unto Abel and to his offering." "Aha!" they cry. "See, God has respect to offerings. Works do justify." With mud in their eyes they cannot see that the text says in Genesis that the Lord had respect to the person of Abel first. Abel pleased the Lord because of his faith. Because the person of Abel pleased the Lord, the offering of Abel pleased the Lord also. The Epistle to the Hebrews expressly states: "By faith Abel offered unto God a more excellent sacrifice."
Of Abel, it is said in the same letter: "By faith Abel offered to God a better sacrifice than Cain." When the scholars come across the similar passage in Genesis 4:4, they only focus on the words: "And the Lord had regard for Abel and his offering." "Aha!" they exclaim. "See, God values offerings. Good deeds matter." With a blind spot, they fail to notice that the text in Genesis indicates that the Lord first regarded Abel himself. Abel pleased the Lord because of his faith. Because Abel himself pleased the Lord, his offering also pleased the Lord. The letter to the Hebrews clearly states: "By faith Abel offered to God a better sacrifice."
In our dealings with God the work is worth nothing without faith, for "without faith it is impossible to please him." (Hebrews 11:6.) The sacrifice of Abel was better than the sacrifice of Cain, because Abel had faith. As to Cain he had no faith or trust in God's grace, but strutted about in his own fancied worth. When God refused to recognize Cain's worth, Cain got angry at God and at Abel. The Holy Spirit speaks of faith in different ways in the Sacred Scriptures. Sometimes He speaks of faith independently of other matters. When the Scriptures speak of faith in the absolute or abstract, faith refers to justification directly. But when the Scripture speaks of rewards and works it speaks of compound or relative faith. We will furnish some examples. Galatians 5:6, "Faith which worketh by love." Leviticus 18:5, "Which if a man do, he shall live in them." Matthew 19:17, "If thou wilt enter into life, keep the commandments." Psalm 37:27, "Depart from evil, and do good." In these and other passages where mention is made of doing, the Scriptures always speak of a faithful doing, a doing inspired by faith. "Do this and thou shalt live," means: First have faith in Christ, and Christ will enable you to do and to live.
In our relationship with God, our efforts are worthless without faith, because "without faith it is impossible to please him." (Hebrews 11:6.) Abel's sacrifice was better than Cain's because Abel had faith. Cain lacked faith or trust in God's grace and instead relied on his own self-importance. When God rejected Cain's worth, Cain became angry with God and Abel. The Holy Spirit describes faith in various ways in the Scriptures. Sometimes faith is discussed on its own. When the Scriptures talk about faith in a pure or abstract sense, it directly refers to justification. But when the Scriptures mention rewards and actions, they refer to a more complex or relative faith. Here are a few examples. Galatians 5:6, "Faith that works through love." Leviticus 18:5, "If a man does this, he will live by them." Matthew 19:17, "If you want to enter life, keep the commandments." Psalm 37:27, "Turn away from evil and do good." In these and other verses that speak of action, the Scriptures always refer to an action rooted in faith, an action inspired by faith. "Do this and you will live" means: First, have faith in Christ, and Christ will empower you to act and to truly live.
In the Word of God all things that are attributed to works are attributable to faith. Faith is the divinity of works. Faith permeates all the deeds of the believer, as Christ's divinity permeated His humanity. Abraham was accounted righteous because faith pervaded his whole personality and his every action.
In the Word of God, everything linked to actions comes from faith. Faith is the essence of actions. Faith influences everything a believer does, just as Christ's divinity influenced His humanity. Abraham was considered righteous because faith filled every part of his character and every action he took.
When you read how the fathers, prophets, and kings accomplished great deeds, remember to explain them as the Epistle to the Hebrews accounts for them: "Who through faith subdued kingdoms, wrought righteousness, obtained promises, stopped the mouths of lions." (Hebrews 11:33.) In this way will we correctly interpret all those passages that seem to support the righteousness of works. The Law is truly observed only through faith. Hence, every "holy," "moral" law-worker is accursed.
When you read about how the fathers, prophets, and kings did great things, remember to explain them as the Epistle to the Hebrews describes: "Who through faith conquered kingdoms, achieved righteousness, received promises, and shut the mouths of lions." (Hebrews 11:33.) This way, we will accurately interpret all those passages that seem to endorse the righteousness of works. The Law is genuinely followed only through faith. Therefore, every so-called "holy," "moral" law-worker is cursed.
Supposing that this explanation will not satisfy the scholastics, supposing that they should completely wrap me up in their arguments (they cannot do it), I would rather be wrong and give all credit to Christ alone. Here is Christ. Paul, Christ's apostle, declares that "Christ hath redeemed us from the curse of the law, being made a curse for us." (Gal. 3:13.) I hear with my own ears that I cannot be saved except by the blood and death of Christ. I conclude, therefore, that it is up to Christ to overcome my sins, and not up to the Law, or my own efforts. If He is the price of my redemption, if He was made sin for my justification, I don't give a care if you quote me a thousand Scripture passages for the righteousness of works against the righteousness of faith. I have the Author and Lord of the Scriptures on my side. I would rather believe Him than all that riffraff of "pious" law-workers.
If this explanation won’t satisfy the scholars, and if they try to completely entangle me in their arguments (which they can’t), I’d rather be wrong and give all the credit to Christ alone. Here is Christ. Paul, Christ's apostle, says that "Christ has redeemed us from the curse of the law, being made a curse for us." (Gal. 3:13.) I hear clearly that I can’t be saved except through the blood and death of Christ. So, I conclude that it’s up to Christ to deal with my sins, not the Law or my own efforts. If He is the price of my redemption, if He became sin for my justification, then I don’t care if you quote me a thousand Scripture passages about the righteousness of works versus the righteousness of faith. I have the Author and Lord of the Scriptures on my side. I’d rather believe Him than all those “holy” law-workers.
VERSE 11. But that no man is justified by the law in the sight of God, it is evident: for, The just shall live by faith.
VERSE 11. But it’s clear that no one is justified by the law in the sight of God, for the just shall live by faith.
The Apostle draws into his argument the testimony of the Prophet Habakkuk: "The just shall live by his faith." This passage carries much weight because it eliminates the Law and the deeds of the Law as factors in the process of our justification.
The Apostle includes the testimony of the Prophet Habakkuk in his argument: "The just shall live by his faith." This passage is significant because it removes the Law and the actions of the Law as elements in our justification process.
The scholastics misconstrue this passage by saying: "The just shall live by faith, if it is a working faith, or a faith formed and performed by charitable works." Their annotation is a forgery. To speak of formed or unformed faith, a sort of double faith, is contrary to the Scriptures. If charitable works can form and perfect faith I am forced to say eventually that charitable deeds constitute the essential factor in the Christian religion. Christ and His benefits would be lost to us.
The scholars misunderstand this passage by saying, "The righteous will live by faith, if it’s a working faith, or a faith shaped and carried out by good deeds." Their interpretation is misleading. To discuss formed or unformed faith, essentially creating a sort of two-tier faith, goes against the Scriptures. If good deeds can shape and complete faith, I have to conclude that charitable acts become the core of the Christian faith. Then, we would lose Christ and His blessings.
VERSE 12. And the law is not of faith.
VERSE 12. And the law is not based on faith.
In direct opposition to the scholastics Paul declares: "The law is not of faith." What is this charity the scholastics talk so much about? Does not the Law command charity? The fact is the Law commands nothing but charity, as we may gather from the following Scripture passages: "Thou shalt love the Lord thy God with all thine heart, and with all thy soul, and with all thy might" (Deut. 6:5.) "Strewing mercy unto thousands of them that love me, and keep my commandments." (Exodus 20:6.) "On these two commandments hang all the law and the prophets." (Matt. 22:40.) If the law requires charity, charity is part of the Law and not of faith. Since Christ has displaced the Law which commands charity, it follows that charity has been abrogated with the Law as a factor in our justification, and only faith is left.
In stark contrast to the scholastics, Paul states, "The law is not based on faith." What’s this charity that the scholastics keep talking about? Doesn’t the Law demand charity? The truth is, the Law requires nothing but charity, as we can see from the following scripture passages: "You shall love the Lord your God with all your heart, and with all your soul, and with all your strength" (Deut. 6:5). "Showing mercy to thousands who love me and keep my commandments" (Exodus 20:6). "All the Law and the Prophets depend on these two commandments" (Matt. 22:40). If the Law requires charity, then charity is part of the Law and not part of faith. Since Christ has replaced the Law that commands charity, it follows that charity has been set aside along with the Law as a factor in our justification, leaving only faith.
VERSE 12. But, The man that doeth them shall live in them.
VERSE 12. But the person who does them will live by them.
Paul undertakes to explain the difference between the righteousness of the Law and the righteousness of faith. The righteousness of the Law is the fulfillment of the Law according to the passage: "The man that doeth them shall live in them." The righteousness of faith is to believe the Gospel according to the passage: "The just shall live by faith." The Law is a statement of debit, the Gospel a statement of credit. By this distinction Paul explains why charity which is the commandment of the Law cannot justify, because the Law contributes nothing to our justification.
Paul sets out to clarify the difference between the righteousness of the Law and the righteousness of faith. The righteousness of the Law is about following the Law, as stated: "The man who does these things will live by them." The righteousness of faith involves believing the Gospel, illustrated by the statement: "The righteous will live by faith." The Law is about what we owe, while the Gospel is about what we are given. With this distinction, Paul explains that charity, which is a commandment of the Law, cannot justify us because the Law does not add anything to our justification.
Indeed, works do follow after faith, but faith is not therefore a meritorious work. Faith is a gift. The character and limitations of the Law must be rigidly maintained.
Indeed, actions do follow faith, but faith is not a worthy deed in itself. Faith is a gift. The nature and boundaries of the Law must be strictly upheld.
When we believe in Christ we live by faith. When we believe in the Law we may be active enough but we have no life. The function of the Law is not to give life; the function of the Law is to kill. True, the Law says: "The man that doeth them shall live in them." But where is the person who can do "them," i.e., love God with all his heart, soul, and mind, and his neighbor as himself?
When we believe in Christ, we live by faith. When we follow the Law, we might be very diligent, but we have no real life. The purpose of the Law isn't to give life; it's to bring about death. It's true that the Law says, "The person who does them will live by them." But where is the person who can actually do that—love God with all their heart, soul, and mind, and love their neighbor as themselves?
Paul has nothing against those who are justified by faith and therefore are true doers of the Law. He opposes those who think they can fulfill the Law when in reality they can only sin against the Law by trying to obtain righteousness by the Law. The Law demands that we fear, love, and worship God with a true faith. The law-workers fail to do this. Instead, they invent new modes of worship and new kinds of works which God never commanded. They provoke His anger according to the passage: "But in vain they do worship me, teaching for doctrines the commandments of men." (Matthew 15:9.) Hence, the law-righteous workers are downright rebels against God, and idolaters who constantly sin against the first commandment. In short, they are no good at-all though outwardly they seem to be extremely solicitous of the honor of God.
Paul has nothing against those who are justified by faith and are therefore genuine doers of the Law. He opposes those who believe they can fulfill the Law when, in reality, they only sin against it by trying to gain righteousness through it. The Law requires us to fear, love, and worship God with true faith. Those who rely solely on the Law fail to do this. Instead, they create new forms of worship and types of works that God never commanded. They provoke His anger, as stated in the passage: "But in vain do they worship me, teaching for doctrines the commandments of men." (Matthew 15:9.) Thus, those who try to achieve righteousness through the Law are outright rebels against God and idolaters who continually sin against the first commandment. In short, they are not good at all, even though they may outwardly appear to be very concerned about God's honor.
We who are justified by faith as the saints of old, may be under the Law, but we are not under the curse of the Law because sin is not imputed to us for Christ's sake. If the Law cannot be fulfilled by the believers, if sin continues to cling to them despite their love for God, what can you expect of people who are not yet justified by faith, who are still enemies of God and His Word, like the unbelieving law-workers? It goes to show how impossible it is for those who have not been justified by faith to fulfill the Law.
We who are justified by faith, just like the saints of old, might be bound by the Law, but we aren't under its curse because sin isn't counted against us for Christ's sake. If believers can't fulfill the Law, and if sin still hangs on to them despite their love for God, what can we expect from those who aren't justified by faith yet, who are still enemies of God and His Word, like the unbelieving law-workers? This shows how impossible it is for those who haven't been justified by faith to fulfill the Law.
VERSE 13. Christ hath redeemed us from the curse of the law, being made a curse for us: for it is written, Cursed is every one that hangeth on a tree.
VERSE 13. Christ has freed us from the curse of the law by becoming a curse for us: for it is written, Cursed is everyone who hangs on a tree.
Jerome and his present-day followers rack their miserable brains over this comforting passage in an effort to save Christ from the fancied insult of being called a curse. They say: "This quotation from Moses does not apply to Christ. Paul is taking liberties with Moses by generalizing the statements in Deuteronomy 21:23. Moses has 'he that is hanged.' Paul puts it 'every one that hangeth.' On the other hand, Paul omits the words 'of God' in his quotation from Moses: 'For he that is hanged is accursed of God.' Moses speaks of a criminal who is worthy of death." "How," our opponents ask, "can this passage be applied to the holy Christ as if He were accursed of God and worthy to be hanged?" This piece of exegesis may impress the naive as a zealous attempt to defend the honor and glory of Christ. Let us see what Paul has in mind.
Jerome and his present-day followers struggle to understand this reassuring passage as they try to protect Christ from the imagined insult of being labeled a curse. They argue: "This quote from Moses doesn’t apply to Christ. Paul is stretching Moses's words by generalizing the statements in Deuteronomy 21:23. Moses says 'he that is hanged.' Paul changes it to 'every one that hangeth.' Furthermore, Paul leaves out the phrase 'of God' from his quote of Moses: 'For he that is hanged is accursed of God.' Moses refers to a criminal deserving of death." "How," our opponents question, "can this passage be related to the holy Christ as if He were accursed by God and deserving of being hanged?" This interpretation might seem like a sincere effort to defend Christ's honor and dignity to the unsuspecting. Let's examine what Paul really means.
Paul does not say that Christ was made a curse for Himself. The accent is on the two words "for us." Christ is personally innocent. Personally, He did not deserve to be hanged for any crime of His own doing. But because Christ took the place of others who were sinners, He was hanged like any other transgressor. The Law of Moses leaves no loopholes. It says that a transgressor should be hanged. Who are the other sinners? We are. The sentence of death and everlasting damnation had long been pronounced over us. But Christ took all our sins and died for them on the Cross. "He was numbered with the transgressors; and he bare the sin of many, and made intercession for the transgressors." (Isaiah 53:12.)
Paul doesn’t say that Christ became a curse for Himself. The focus is on the two words "for us." Christ is completely innocent. He didn’t deserve to be executed for any crime He committed. But because Christ took the place of others who are sinners, He was executed like any other offender. The Law of Moses has no loopholes. It states that an offender should be executed. Who are the other sinners? We are. The sentence of death and eternal damnation had long been declared over us. But Christ took all our sins and died for them on the Cross. "He was numbered with the transgressors; and he bore the sin of many and made intercession for the transgressors." (Isaiah 53:12.)
All the prophets of old said that Christ should be the greatest transgressor, murderer, adulterer, thief, blasphemer that ever was or ever could be on earth. When He took the sins of the whole world upon Himself, Christ was no longer an innocent person. He was a sinner burdened with the sins of a Paul who was a blasphemer; burdened with the sins of a Peter who denied Christ; burdened with the sins of a David who committed adultery and murder, and gave the heathen occasion to laugh at the Lord. In short, Christ was charged with the sins of all men, that He should pay for them with His own blood. The curse struck Him. The Law found Him among sinners. He was not only in the company of sinners. He had gone so far as to invest Himself with the flesh and blood of sinners. So the Law judged and hanged Him for a sinner.
All the prophets from the past said that Christ would be the greatest transgressor, murderer, adulterer, thief, and blasphemer to ever exist on earth. When He took on the sins of the entire world, Christ was no longer innocent. He carried the sins of Paul, who was a blasphemer; the sins of Peter, who denied Christ; the sins of David, who committed adultery and murder, giving non-believers a reason to mock the Lord. In short, Christ was held accountable for the sins of all people, and He was to pay for them with His own blood. The curse fell upon Him. The Law found Him among sinners. He didn’t just hang out with sinners; He went so far as to take on the flesh and blood of sinners. So the Law condemned and crucified Him as if He were a sinner.
In separating Christ from us sinners and holding Him up as a holy exemplar, errorists rob us of our best comfort. They misrepresent Him as a threatening tyrant who is ready to slaughter us at the slightest provocation.
In separating Christ from us sinners and showing Him as a holy example, mistaken people take away our greatest comfort. They portray Him as a menacing tyrant who is ready to punish us at the slightest provocation.
I am told that it is preposterous and wicked to call the Son of God a cursed sinner. I answer: If you deny that He is a condemned sinner, you are forced to deny that Christ died. It is not less preposterous to say, the Son of God died, than to say, the Son of God was a sinner.
I’m told that it's absurd and wrong to call the Son of God a cursed sinner. I respond: If you deny that He is a condemned sinner, you have to deny that Christ died. It’s just as absurd to say the Son of God died as it is to say the Son of God was a sinner.
John the Baptist called Him "the lamb of God, which taketh away the sin of the world." Being the unspotted Lamb of God, Christ was personally innocent. But because He took the sins of the world His sinlessness was defiled with the sinfulness of the world. Whatever sins I, you, all of us have committed or shall commit, they are Christ's sins as if He had committed them Himself. Our sins have to be Christ's sins or we shall perish forever.
John the Baptist referred to Him as "the Lamb of God who takes away the sin of the world." As the flawless Lamb of God, Christ was personally innocent. However, by taking on the sins of the world, His sinlessness became stained with the world's sinfulness. Every sin I, you, and all of us have committed or will commit becomes Christ's sins as if He had done them Himself. Our sins need to be considered Christ's sins, or we will be lost forever.
Isaiah declares of Christ: "The Lord hath laid on him the iniquity of us all." We have no right to minimize the force of this declaration. God does not amuse Himself with words. What a relief for a Christian to know that Christ is covered all over with my sins, your sins, and the sins of the whole world.
Isaiah says about Christ: "The Lord has laid on him the iniquity of us all." We can't downplay the impact of this statement. God doesn’t play around with words. What a relief for a Christian to know that Christ is burdened with my sins, your sins, and the sins of the entire world.
The papists invented their own doctrine of faith. They say charity creates and adorns their faith. By stripping Christ of our sins, by making Him sinless, they cast our sins back at us, and make Christ absolutely worthless to us. What sort of charity is this? If that is a sample of their vaunted charity we want none of it.
The Catholics came up with their own beliefs. They claim that love shapes and enhances their faith. By taking away our sins from Christ and making Him sinless, they throw our sins back at us and make Christ completely irrelevant to us. What kind of love is that? If that’s what they call love, we want nothing to do with it.
Our merciful Father in heaven saw how the Law oppressed us and how impossible it was for us to get out from under the curse of the Law. He therefore sent His only Son into the world and said to Him: "You are now Peter, the liar; Paul, the persecutor; David, the adulterer; Adam, the disobedient; the thief on the cross. You, My Son, must pay the world's iniquity." The Law growls: "All right. If Your Son is taking the sin of the world, I see no sins anywhere else but in Him. He shall die on the Cross." And the Law kills Christ. But we go free.
Our merciful Father in heaven saw how the Law was weighing us down and how impossible it was for us to escape the curse of the Law. So, He sent His only Son into the world and said to Him: "You are now Peter, the liar; Paul, the persecutor; David, the adulterer; Adam, the disobedient; the thief on the cross. You, My Son, must take on the world's wrongdoing." The Law growls: "Fine. If Your Son is taking on the sin of the world, I see no other sins but in Him. He will die on the Cross." And the Law kills Christ. But we go free.
The argument of the Apostle against the righteousness of the Law is impregnable. If Christ bears our sins, we do not bear them. But if Christ is innocent of our sins and does not bear them, we must bear them, and we shall die in our sins. "But thanks be to God, which giveth us the victory through our Lord Jesus Christ."
The Apostle's argument against the righteousness of the Law is unassailable. If Christ takes on our sins, we do not have to carry them. But if Christ is innocent of our sins and doesn’t take them on, we have to bear them ourselves, and we will die in our sins. "But thanks be to God, who gives us the victory through our Lord Jesus Christ."
Let us see how Christ was able to gain the victory over our enemies. The sins of the whole world, past, present, and future, fastened themselves upon Christ and condemned Him. But because Christ is God He had an everlasting and unconquerable righteousness. These two, the sin of the world and the righteousness of God, met in a death struggle. Furiously the sin of the world assailed the righteousness of God. Righteousness is immortal and invincible. On the other hand, sin is a mighty tyrant who subdues all men. This tyrant pounces on Christ. But Christ's righteousness is unconquerable. The result is inevitable. Sin is defeated and righteousness triumphs and reigns forever.
Let’s look at how Christ achieved victory over our enemies. The sins of the entire world—past, present, and future—were placed upon Christ and condemned Him. However, because Christ is God, He possessed an everlasting and unbeatable righteousness. These two forces, the sin of the world and the righteousness of God, clashed in a fierce struggle. The sin of the world aggressively attacked the righteousness of God. Righteousness is immortal and invincible. On the other hand, sin is a powerful tyrant that dominates everyone. This tyrant targeted Christ. But Christ's righteousness cannot be overcome. The outcome is certain: sin is defeated, and righteousness wins and reigns forever.
In the same manner was death defeated. Death is emperor of the world. He strikes down kings, princes, all men. He has an idea to destroy all life. But Christ has immortal life, and life immortal gained the victory over death. Through Christ death has lost her sting. Christ is the Death of death.
In the same way, death was defeated. Death is the ruler of the world. It takes down kings, princes, and all people. It aims to wipe out all life. But Christ embodies eternal life, and that eternal life triumphed over death. Through Christ, death has lost its sting. Christ is the end of death.
The curse of God waged a similar battle with the eternal mercy of God in Christ. The curse meant to condemn God's mercy. But it could not do it because the mercy of God is everlasting. The curse had to give way. If the mercy of God in Christ had lost out, God Himself would have lost out, which, of course, is impossible.
The curse of God fought a similar battle against the eternal mercy of God in Christ. The curse aimed to condemn God's mercy. But it failed because God's mercy is everlasting. The curse had to yield. If the mercy of God in Christ had lost, God Himself would have lost, which, of course, is impossible.
"Christ," says Paul, "spoiled principalities and powers, He made a show of them openly, triumphing over them in it." (Col. 2:15.) They cannot harm those who hide in Christ. Sin, death, the wrath of God, hell, the devil are mortified in Christ. Where Christ is near the powers of evil must keep their distance. St. John says: "And this is the victory that overcometh the world, even our faith." (I John 5:4.)
"Christ," says Paul, "defeated the rulers and authorities; He publicly shamed them and triumphed over them." (Col. 2:15.) They can’t harm those who find refuge in Christ. Sin, death, God's wrath, hell, and the devil are defeated in Christ. Where Christ is present, the forces of evil must stay away. St. John says: "And this is the victory that overcomes the world, our faith." (I John 5:4.)
You may now perceive why it is imperative to believe and confess the divinity of Christ. To overcome the sin of a whole world, and death, and the wrath of God was no work for any creature. The power of sin and death could be broken only by a greater power. God alone could abolish sin, destroy death, and take away the curse of the Law. God alone could bring righteousness, life, and mercy to light. In attributing these achievements to Christ the Scriptures pronounce Christ to be God forever. The article of justification is indeed fundamental. If we remain sound in this one article, we remain sound in all the other articles of the Christian faith. When we teach justification by faith in Christ we confess at the same time that Christ is God.
You can now understand why it's crucial to believe in and acknowledge the divinity of Christ. Overcoming the sins of an entire world, death, and the wrath of God was something no creature could do. Only a greater power could break the hold of sin and death. Only God could eliminate sin, destroy death, and remove the curse of the Law. Only God could bring righteousness, life, and mercy into the light. By attributing these accomplishments to Christ, the Scriptures declare Christ to be God forever. The concept of justification is indeed fundamental. If we uphold this one principle, we remain solid in all other aspects of the Christian faith. When we teach justification through faith in Christ, we also affirm that Christ is God.
I cannot get over the blindness of the Pope's theologians. To imagine that the mighty forces of sin, death, and the curse can be vanquished by the righteousness of man's paltry works, by fasting, pilgrimages, masses, vows, and such gewgaws. These blind leaders of the blind turn the poor people over to the mercy of sin, death, and the devil. What chance has a defenseless human creature against these powers of darkness? They train sinners who are ten times worse than any thief, whore, murderer. The divine power of God alone can destroy sin and death, and create righteousness and life.
I can’t believe how blind the Pope’s theologians are. They actually think that the huge forces of sin, death, and the curse can be overcome by the weak actions of humans—like fasting, pilgrimages, masses, vows, and other shallow gestures. These misguided leaders are leading the vulnerable straight into the hands of sin, death, and the devil. What chance does an unprotected human being have against these dark forces? They raise sinners who are far worse than any thief, prostitute, or murderer. Only the divine power of God can destroy sin and death and bring about righteousness and life.
When we hear that Christ was made a curse for us, let us believe it with joy and assurance. By faith Christ changes places with us. He gets our sins, we get His holiness.
When we hear that Christ took on our curse, let's believe it with joy and confidence. Through faith, Christ trades places with us. He takes on our sins, and we receive His holiness.
By faith alone can we become righteous, for faith invests us with the sinlessness of Christ. The more fully we believe this, the fuller will be our joy. If you believe that sin, death, and the curse are void, why, they are null, zero. Whenever sin and death make you nervous write it down as an illusion of the devil. There is no sin now, no curse, no death, no devil because Christ has done away with them. This fact is sure. There is nothing wrong with the fact. The defect lies in our lack of faith.
By faith alone can we become righteous, because faith gives us the sinlessness of Christ. The more we truly believe this, the more joy we’ll experience. If you believe that sin, death, and the curse are meaningless, then they are truly nothing. Whenever sin and death start to make you anxious, just remember that they are nothing but illusions of the devil. There is no sin now, no curse, no death, and no devil because Christ has eliminated them. This truth is certain. There’s nothing wrong with this truth. The flaw is in our lack of faith.
In the Apostolic Creed we confess: "I believe in the holy Christian Church." That means, I believe that there is no sin, no curse, no evil in the Church of God. Faith says: "I believe that." But if you want to believe your eyes you will find many shortcomings and offenses in the members of the holy Church. You see them succumb to temptation, you see them weak in faith, you see them giving way to anger, envy, and other evil dispositions. "How can the Church be holy?" you ask. It is with the Christian Church as it is with the individual Christian. If I examine myself I find enough unholiness to shock me. But when I look at Christ in me I find that I am altogether holy. And so it is with the Church.
In the Apostolic Creed, we state: "I believe in the holy Christian Church." This means I believe there is no sin, no curse, and no evil in the Church of God. Faith declares: "I believe that." But if you trust what you see, you'll notice many flaws and offenses among the members of the holy Church. You see them give in to temptation, you see them struggling with faith, and you see them giving in to anger, envy, and other negative traits. "How can the Church be holy?" you might wonder. The situation with the Christian Church is similar to that of an individual Christian. When I look at myself, I find plenty of unholiness that shocks me. But when I see Christ in me, I realize that I am completely holy. The same applies to the Church.
Holy Writ does not say that Christ was under the curse. It says directly that Christ was made a curse. In II Corinthians 5:21 Paul writes: "For he (God) hath made him (Christ) to be sin for us, who knew no sin; that we might be made the righteousness of God in him." Although this and similar passages may be properly explained by saying that Christ was made a sacrifice for the curse and for sin, yet in my judgment it is better to leave these passages stand as they read: Christ was made sin itself; Christ was made the curse itself. When a sinner gets wise to himself he does not only feel miserable, he feels like misery personified; he does not only feel like a sinner, he feels like sin itself.
Holy Scripture doesn't say that Christ was under the curse. It states directly that Christ became a curse. In II Corinthians 5:21, Paul says: "For he (God) has made him (Christ) to be sin for us, who knew no sin; that we might be made the righteousness of God in him." While this and similar verses can be interpreted to mean that Christ was made a sacrifice for the curse and for sin, I believe it's better to let these passages stand as they are: Christ was made sin itself; Christ was made the curse itself. When a sinner becomes aware of their condition, they don't just feel miserable; they feel like misery personified. They don't just feel like a sinner; they feel like sin itself.
To finish with this verse: All evils would have overwhelmed us, as they shall overwhelm the unbelievers forever, if Christ had not become the great transgressor and guilty bearer of all our sins. The sins of the world got Him down for a moment. They came around Him like water. Of Christ, the Old Testament Prophet complained: "Thy fierce wrath goeth over me; thy terrors have cut me off." (Psalm 88 16.) By Christ's salvation we have been delivered from the terrors of God to a life of eternal felicity.
To wrap up this verse: All evils would have drowned us, just like they will drown the unbelievers forever, if Christ hadn't taken on the burden of all our sins. For a moment, the world's sins overwhelmed Him. They surrounded Him like a flood. The Old Testament Prophet lamented about Christ: "Your fierce anger overwhelms me; your terrors have cut me off." (Psalm 88:16.) Through Christ's salvation, we have been rescued from God's terrors to a life of eternal happiness.
VERSE 14. That the blessing of Abraham might come, on the Gentiles through Jesus Christ.
VERSE 14. So that the blessing of Abraham can come to the Gentiles through Jesus Christ.
Paul always keeps this text before him: "In thy seed shall all the nations of the earth be blessed." The blessing promised unto Abraham could come upon the Gentiles only by Christ, the seed of Abraham. To become a blessing unto all nations Christ had to be made a curse to take away the curse from the nations of the earth. The merit that we plead, and the work that we proffer is Christ who was made a curse for us.
Paul always keeps this text in mind: "In your seed shall all the nations of the earth be blessed." The blessing promised to Abraham could only come to the Gentiles through Christ, the seed of Abraham. To be a blessing to all nations, Christ had to become a curse to remove the curse from the nations of the earth. The merit we plead, and the work we offer, is Christ, who was made a curse for us.
Let us become expert in the art of transferring our sins, our death, and every evil from ourselves to Christ; and Christ's righteousness and blessing from Christ to ourselves.
Let’s get skilled at passing our sins, our death, and every bad thing from ourselves to Christ, and receiving Christ's righteousness and blessings from Him to us.
VERSE 14. That we might receive the promise of the Spirit through faith.
VERSE 14. So that we can receive the promise of the Spirit through faith.
"The promise of the Spirit" is Hebrew for "the promised Spirit." The Spirit spells freedom from the Law, sin, death, the curse, hell, and the judgment of God. No merits are mentioned in connection with this promise of the Spirit and all the blessings that go with Him. This Spirit of many blessings is received by faith alone. Faith alone builds on the promises of God, as Paul says in this verse.
"The promise of the Spirit" means "the promised Spirit." The Spirit means freedom from the Law, sin, death, the curse, hell, and God's judgment. There are no merits mentioned in relation to this promise of the Spirit and all the blessings that come with Him. This Spirit of many blessings is received through faith alone. Faith alone relies on the promises of God, as Paul states in this verse.
Long ago the prophets visualized the happy changes Christ would effect in all things. Despite the fact that the Jews had the Law of God they never ceased to look longingly for Christ. After Moses no prophet or king added a single law to the Book. Any changes or additions were deferred to the time of Christ's coming. Moses told the people: "The Lord thy God will raise up unto thee a Prophet from the midst of thee, of thy brethren, like unto me; unto him ye shall hearken." (Deut. 18:15.)
Long ago, the prophets imagined the joyful changes Christ would bring to everything. Even though the Jews had the Law of God, they always looked forward to Christ. After Moses, no prophet or king added any laws to the Book. Any changes or additions were postponed until Christ's arrival. Moses told the people, "The Lord your God will raise up for you a Prophet from among your own people, like me; you must listen to him." (Deut. 18:15.)
God's people of old felt that the Law of Moses could not be improved upon until the Messiah would bring better things than the Law, i.e., grace and remission of sins.
God's people in the past believed that the Law of Moses couldn't be improved until the Messiah came to offer better things than the Law, like grace and forgiveness of sins.
VERSE 15. Brethren, I speak after the manner of men; Though it be but a man's covenant, yet if it be confirmed, no man disannulleth, or addeth thereto.
VERSE 15. Brothers, I'm speaking in human terms; even if it's just a man's agreement, once it's confirmed, no one can cancel it or add to it.
After the preceding, well-taken argument, Paul offers another based on the similarity between a man's testament and God's testament. A man's testament seems too weak a premise for the Apostle to argue from in confirmation of so important a matter as justification. We ought to prove earthly things by heavenly things, and not heavenly things by earthly things. But where the earthly thing is an ordinance of God we may use it to prove divine matters. In Matthew 7:11 Christ Himself argued from earthly to heavenly things when He said: "If ye then, being evil, know how to give good gifts to your children; how much more shall your Father which is in heaven give good things to them that ask him?"
After the previous, well-made argument, Paul brings up another one focused on the similarity between a person’s will and God’s will. A person’s will seems like a weak basis for the Apostle to use in support of such an important issue as justification. We should prove earthly matters with heavenly matters, not the other way around. However, when the earthly matter is an ordinance of God, we can use it to support divine truths. In Matthew 7:11, Christ Himself made an argument from earthly to heavenly matters when He said: "If you then, being evil, know how to give good gifts to your children; how much more will your Father in heaven give good things to those who ask Him?"
To come to Paul's argument. Civil law, which is God's ordinance, prohibits tampering with any testament of man. Any person's last will and testament must be respected. Paul asks: "Why is it that man's last will is scrupulously respected and not God's testament? You would not think of breaking faith with a man's testament. Why do you not keep faith with God's testament?"
To address Paul's argument: Civil law, which is God's law, forbids interfering with any person's will. Everyone's last will and testament deserve respect. Paul asks, "Why is a person's last will strictly honored but not God's testament? You wouldn’t dream of violating a person's will. Why don’t you honor God's testament?"
The Apostle says that he is speaking after the manner of men. He means to say: "I will give you an illustration from the customs of men. If a man's last will is respected, and it is, how much more ought the testament of God be honored: 'In thy seed shall all the nations of the earth be blessed.' When Christ died, this testament was sealed by His blood. After His death the testament was opened, it was published to the nations. No man ought to alter God's testament as the false apostles do who substitute the Law and traditions of men for the testament of God."
The Apostle says he’s speaking like a human. He’s trying to say: "Let me give you an example from human customs. If a man's last will is respected—and it is—how much more should we honor God’s testament: 'In your seed shall all the nations of the earth be blessed.' When Christ died, this testament was sealed with His blood. After His death, the testament was revealed and shared with the nations. No one should change God’s testament like the false apostles who replace it with the Law and human traditions."
As the false prophets tampered with God's testament in the days of Paul, so many do in our day. They will observe human laws punctiliously, but the laws of God they transgress without the flicker of an eyelid. But the time will come when they will find out that it is no joke to pervert the testament of God.
As false prophets distorted God's message in Paul's time, many do the same today. They closely follow human laws, but they break God's laws without a second thought. But the time will come when they'll realize that twisting God's message is no trivial matter.
VERSE 16. Now to Abraham and his seed were the promises made. He saith not, And to seeds, as of many; but as of one, And to thy seed, which is Christ.
VERSE 16. Now the promises were made to Abraham and his offspring. It doesn't say, "and to offsprings," referring to many; but it says, "And to your offspring," which is Christ.
The word testament is another name for the promise that God made unto Abraham concerning Christ. A testament is not a law, but an inheritance. Heirs do not look for laws and assessments when they open a last will; they look for grants and favors. The testament which God made out to Abraham did not contain laws. It contained promises of great spiritual blessings.
The word testament is another term for the promise that God made to Abraham about Christ. A testament isn’t a law; it’s an inheritance. Heirs don’t look for laws and requirements when they read a last will; they look for gifts and blessings. The testament that God created for Abraham didn’t have laws. It had promises of significant spiritual blessings.
The promises were made in view of Christ, in one seed, not in many seeds. The Jews will not accept this interpretation. They insist that the singular "seed" is put for the plural "seeds." We prefer the interpretation of Paul, who makes a fine case for Christ and for us out of the singular "seed," and is after all inspired to do so by the Holy Ghost.
The promises were made in light of Christ, in one seed, not in many seeds. The Jews will not accept this interpretation. They argue that the singular "seed" represents the plural "seeds." We support Paul's interpretation, who makes a strong case for Christ and for us based on the singular "seed," and he is inspired to do so by the Holy Spirit.
VERSE 17. And this I say, that the covenant, that was confirmed before of God in Christ, the law which was four hundred and thirty years after, cannot disannul, that it should make the promise of none effect.
VERSE 17. And this I say, that the covenant, which was confirmed before by God in Christ, cannot be canceled by the law, which came four hundred and thirty years later, so that it renders the promise ineffective.
The Jews assert that God was not satisfied with His promises, but after four hundred and thirty years He gave the Law. "God," they say, "must have mistrusted His own promises, and considered them inadequate for salvation. Therefore He added to His promises something better, the Law. The Law," they say, "canceled the promises."
The Jews claim that God wasn't happy with His promises, so after four hundred and thirty years, He gave the Law. "God," they say, "must have doubted His own promises and thought they weren't enough for salvation. So He added something better to His promises, the Law. The Law," they say, "overturned the promises."
Paul answers: "The Law was given four hundred and thirty years after the promise was made to Abraham. The Law could not cancel the promise because the promise was the testament of God, confirmed by God in Christ many years before the Law. What God has once promised He does not take back. Every promise of God is a ratified promise."
Paul responds: "The Law was given four hundred and thirty years after the promise was made to Abraham. The Law couldn't nullify the promise because the promise was God's testament, confirmed by God in Christ long before the Law existed. What God has promised, He doesn't take back. Every promise of God is a confirmed promise."
Why was the Law added to the promise? Not to serve as a medium by which the promise might be obtained. The Law was added for these reasons: That there might be in the world a special people, rigidly controlled by the Law, a people out of which Christ should be born in due time; and that men burdened by many laws might sigh and long for Him, their Redeemer, the seed of Abraham. Even the ceremonies prescribed by the Law foreshadowed Christ. Therefore the Law was never meant to cancel the promise of God. The Law was meant to confirm the promise until the time should come when God would open His testament in the Gospel of Jesus Christ.
Why was the Law added to the promise? Not to be the way to get the promise. The Law was added for these reasons: To create a special group of people, strictly governed by the Law, from which Christ would eventually come; and to make people burdened by many laws yearn for Him, their Redeemer, the descendant of Abraham. Even the rituals set by the Law pointed to Christ. Therefore, the Law was never intended to replace God's promise. The Law was meant to support the promise until the time came when God would reveal His testament in the Gospel of Jesus Christ.
God did well in giving the promise so many years before the Law, that it may never be said that righteousness is granted through the Law and not through the promise. If God had meant for us to be justified by the Law, He would have given the Law four hundred and thirty years before the promise, at least He would have given the Law at the same time He gave the promise. But He never breathed a word about the Law until four hundred years after. The promise is therefore better than the Law. The Law does not cancel the promise, but faith in the promised Christ cancels the Law.
God did well by giving the promise so many years before the Law, so that no one can say that righteousness comes from the Law and not from the promise. If God intended for us to be justified by the Law, He would have given the Law four hundred and thirty years before the promise; at the very least, He would have given the Law at the same time as the promise. But He didn’t mention the Law until four hundred years later. So, the promise is better than the Law. The Law doesn’t nullify the promise, but having faith in the promised Christ nullifies the Law.
The Apostle is careful to mention the exact number of four hundred and thirty years. The wide divergence in the time between the promise and the Law helps to clinch Paul's argument that righteousness is not obtained by the Law.
The Apostle takes care to note the specific period of four hundred and thirty years. The significant difference in time between the promise and the Law strengthens Paul's point that righteousness is not achieved through the Law.
Let me illustrate. A man of great wealth adopts a strange lad for his son. Remember, he does not owe the lad anything. In due time he appoints the lad heir to his entire fortune. Several years later the old man asks the lad to do something for him. And the young lad does it. Can the lad then go around and say that he deserved the inheritance by his obedience to the old man's request? How can anybody say that righteousness is obtained by obedience to the Law when the Law was given four hundred and thirty years after God's promise of the blessing?
Let me explain. A very wealthy man adopts a strange boy as his son. Remember, he doesn't owe the boy anything. Eventually, he names the boy the heir to his entire fortune. Years later, the old man asks the boy to do something for him, and the young boy does it. Can the boy then claim that he deserved the inheritance because he obeyed the old man's request? How can anyone say that righteousness comes from obeying the Law when the Law was given four hundred and thirty years after God's promise of the blessing?
One thing is certain, Abraham was never justified by the Law, for the simple reason that the Law was not in his day. If the Law was non-existent how could Abraham obtain righteousness by the Law? Abraham had nothing else to go by but the promise. This promise he believed and that was counted unto him for righteousness. If the father obtained righteousness through faith, the children get it the same way.
One thing is clear: Abraham was never justified by the Law, simply because the Law didn’t exist during his time. If the Law wasn’t there, how could Abraham achieve righteousness through it? Abraham had nothing to rely on except the promise. He believed that promise, and that belief was credited to him as righteousness. If the father obtained righteousness through faith, then the children receive it in the same way.
We use the argument of time also. We say our sins were taken away by the death of Christ fifteen hundred years ago, long before there were any religious orders, canons, or rules of penance, merits, etc. What did people do about their sins before these new inventions were hatched up?
We use the time argument as well. We say our sins were removed by Christ's death fifteen hundred years ago, long before there were any religious orders, canons, or rules for penance or merits. What did people do about their sins before these new ideas came about?
Paul finds his arguments for the righteousness of faith everywhere. Even the element of time serves to build his case against the false apostles. Let us fortify our conscience with similar arguments. They help us in the trials of our faith. They turn our attention from the Law to the promises, from sin to righteousness; from death to life.
Paul finds his reasons for the righteousness of faith all around him. Even the factor of time supports his argument against the false apostles. Let's strengthen our conscience with similar reasons. They assist us during the challenges of our faith. They shift our focus from the Law to the promises, from sin to righteousness; from death to life.
It is not for nothing that Paul bears down on this argument. He foresaw this confusion of the promise and the Law creeping into the Church. Accustom yourself to separate Law and Gospel even in regard to time. When the Law comes to pay your conscience a visit, say: "Mister Law, you come too soon. The four hundred and thirty years aren't up yet. When they are up, you come again. Won't you?"
It’s no coincidence that Paul emphasizes this point. He anticipated the mix-up between the promise and the Law infiltrating the Church. Get into the habit of distinguishing between Law and Gospel, even in terms of timing. When the Law shows up to confront your conscience, say: "Hey Law, you’re here too early. The four hundred and thirty years aren’t over yet. When they are, you can come back. Deal?"
VERSE 18. For if the inheritance be of the law, it is no more of promise.
VERSE 18. Because if the inheritance comes from the law, it is no longer based on a promise.
In Romans 4:14, the Apostle writes: "For if they which are made of the law be heirs, faith is made void, and the promise made of none effect." It cannot be otherwise. That the Law is something entirely different from the promise is plain. The Law thunders: "Thou shalt, thou shalt not." The promise of the "seed" pleads: "Take this gift of God." If the inheritance of the gifts of God were obtained by the Law, God would be a liar. We would have the right to ask Him: "Why did you make this promise in the first place: 'In thy seed shall all the nations of the earth be blessed'? Why did you not say: 'In thy works thou shalt be blessed'?"
In Romans 4:14, the Apostle writes: "For if those who are based on the law are the heirs, then faith is pointless, and the promise is meaningless." It can't be any other way. It's clear that the Law is completely different from the promise. The Law demands: "You must, you must not." The promise of the "seed" invites: "Accept this gift from God." If we could inherit God's gifts through the Law, God would be a liar. We could rightly ask Him: "Why did you make this promise in the first place: 'Through your seed, all the nations of the earth will be blessed'? Why didn't you say: 'Through your works, you will be blessed'?"
VERSE 18. But God gave it to Abraham by promise.
VERSE 18. But God granted it to Abraham as a promise.
So much is certain, before the Law ever existed, God gave Abraham the inheritance or blessing by the promise. In other words, God granted unto Abraham remission of sins, righteousness, salvation, and everlasting life. And not only to Abraham but to all believers, because God said: "In thy seed shall all the nations of the earth be blessed." The blessing was given unconditionally. The Law had no chance to butt in because Moses was not yet born. "How then can you say that righteousness is obtained by the Law?"
So much is clear: before the Law even existed, God gave Abraham the inheritance or blessing through the promise. In other words, God granted Abraham forgiveness of sins, righteousness, salvation, and eternal life. And this wasn't just for Abraham but for all believers, because God said, "In your seed shall all the nations of the earth be blessed." The blessing was given without conditions. The Law couldn't interfere because Moses hadn't been born yet. "So how can you say that righteousness is obtained through the Law?"
The Apostle now goes to work to explain the province and purpose of the Law.
The Apostle now sets out to clarify the scope and purpose of the Law.
VERSE 19. Wherefore then serveth the law?
VERSE 19. So what’s the purpose of the law?
The question naturally arises: If the Law was not given for righteousness or salvation, why was it given? Why did God give the Law in the first place if it cannot justify a person?
The question naturally arises: If the Law wasn't given for righteousness or salvation, then why was it given? Why did God give the Law in the first place if it can't justify a person?
The Jews believed if they kept the Law they would be saved. When they heard that the Gospel proclaimed a Christ who had come into the world to save sinners and not the righteous; when they heard that sinners were to enter the kingdom of heaven before the righteous, the Jews were very much put out. They murmured: "These last have wrought but one hour, and thou hast made them equal unto us, which have borne the burden and heat of the day." (Matthew 20:12.) They complained that the heathen who at one time had been worshipers of idols obtained grace without the drudgery of the Law that was theirs.
The Jews believed that by following the Law, they would be saved. When they heard that the Gospel announced a Christ who came into the world to save sinners, not the righteous; when they heard that sinners would enter the kingdom of heaven before the righteous, the Jews were very upset. They grumbled, "These last workers only did one hour, and you have made them equal to us, who have worked hard all day in the scorching heat." (Matthew 20:12.) They complained that the non-Jews, who had once worshiped idols, received grace without having to follow the burdensome Law that was theirs.
Today we hear the same complaints. "What was the use of our having lived in a cloister, twenty, thirty, forty years; what was the sense of having vowed chastity, poverty, obedience; what good are all the masses and canonical hours that we read; what profit is there in fasting, praying, etc., if any man or woman, any beggar or scour woman is to be made equal to us, or even be considered more acceptable unto God than we?"
Today we hear the same complaints. "What was the point of living in a cloister for twenty, thirty, or forty years? What was the purpose of taking vows of chastity, poverty, and obedience? What good are all the masses and canonical hours we read? What benefit do we get from fasting, praying, etc., if any man or woman, any beggar or cleaner is considered equal to us, or even seen as more acceptable to God than we are?"
Reason takes offense at the statement of Paul: "The law was added because of transgressions." People say that Paul abrogated the Law, that he is a radical, that he blasphemed God when he said that. People say: "We might as well live like wild people if the Law does not count. Let us abound in sin that grace may abound. Let us do evil that good may come of it."
Reason takes issue with Paul's statement: "The law was added because of transgressions." People claim that Paul canceled the Law, that he is extreme, that he disrespected God when he said that. They argue, "We might as well live like wild individuals if the Law doesn't matter. Let's sin more so that grace can increase. Let's do bad things so that good can come from it."
What are we to do? Such scoffing distresses us, but we cannot stop it. Christ Himself was accused of being a blasphemer and rebel. Paul and all the other apostles were told the same things. Let the scoffers slander us, let them spare us not. But we must not on their account keep silent. We must speak frankly in order that afflicted consciences may find surcease. Neither are we to pay any attention to the foolish and ungodly people for abusing our doctrine. They are the kind that would scoff, Law or no Law. Our first consideration must be the comfort of troubled consciences, that they may not perish with the multitudes.
What should we do? Their mockery bothers us, but we can’t stop it. Christ Himself was accused of being a blasphemer and a rebel. Paul and all the other apostles faced the same accusations. Let the mockers slander us, let them hold nothing back. But we must not stay silent because of them. We need to speak openly so that troubled hearts can find relief. We also shouldn’t pay attention to the foolish and wicked people who abuse our doctrine. They would mock regardless of the Law. Our main focus must be the comfort of those with troubled consciences, so they don’t perish along with the masses.
When he saw that some were offended at his doctrine, while others found in it encouragement to live after the flesh, Paul comforted himself with the thought that it was his duty to preach the Gospel to the elect of God, and that for their sake he must endure all things. Like Paul we also do all these things for the sake of God's elect. As for the scoffers and skeptics, I am so disgusted with them that in all my life I would not open my mouth for them once. I wish that they were back there where they belong under the iron heel of the Pope.
When he noticed that some were offended by his teachings, while others took it as encouragement to indulge in worldly desires, Paul reassured himself that it was his duty to share the Gospel with God's chosen ones, and that for their sake, he had to endure everything. Like Paul, we also do all these things for the sake of God's chosen. As for the mockers and doubters, I am so disheartened by them that I wouldn't even bother to speak to them once in my entire life. I wish they would go back to where they belong, under the strict control of the Pope.
People foolish but wise in their conceits jump to the conclusion: If the Law does not justify, it is good for nothing. How about that? Because money does not justify, would you say that money is good for nothing? Because the eyes do not justify, would you have them taken out? Because the Law does not justify it does not follow that the Law is without value. We must find and define the proper purpose of the Law. We do not offhand condemn the Law because we say it does not justify.
People who are foolish yet confident in their beliefs jump to the conclusion: If the Law doesn’t justify, it’s worthless. Really? Just because money doesn’t justify, would you claim that money is useless? Just because the eyes don’t justify, would you want them removed? Just because the Law doesn’t justify doesn’t mean the Law has no value. We need to find and define the true purpose of the Law. We shouldn’t dismiss the Law just because we say it doesn’t justify.
We say with Paul that the Law is good if it is used properly. Within its proper sphere the Law is an excellent thing. But if we ascribe to the Law functions for which it was never intended, we pervert not only the Law but also the Gospel. It is the universal impression that righteousness is obtained through the deeds of the Law. This impression is instinctive and therefore doubly dangerous. Gross sins and vices may be recognized or else repressed by the threat of punishment. But this sin, this opinion of man's own righteousness refuses to be classified as sin. It wants to be esteemed as high-class religion. Hence, it constitutes the mighty influence of the devil over the entire world. In order to point out the true office of the Law, and thus to stamp out that false impression of the righteousness of the Law, Paul answers the question: "Wherefore then serveth the Law?" with the words:
We agree with Paul that the Law is good when used correctly. Within its intended purpose, the Law is a valuable tool. However, if we assign the Law roles it was never meant for, we distort both the Law and the Gospel. There's a widespread belief that righteousness comes from following the Law. This belief is instinctual and therefore particularly dangerous. Serious sins and vices might be acknowledged or suppressed by fear of punishment. But this sin—this belief in one's own righteousness—refuses to be recognized as wrongdoing. It seeks to be regarded as a superior form of religion. As a result, it represents the significant influence of the devil over the entire world. To clarify the true purpose of the Law and dispel the false notion of its righteousness, Paul responds to the question: "What then is the purpose of the Law?" with the words:
VERSE 19. It was added because of transgressions.
VERSE 19. It was added because of wrongdoings.
All things differ. Let everything serve its unique purpose. Let the sun shine by day, the moon and the stars by night. Let the sea furnish fish, the earth grain, the woods trees, etc. Let the Law also serve its unique purpose. It must not step out of character and take the place of anything else. What is the function of the Law? "Transgression," answers the Apostle.
All things are different. Let everything fulfill its unique purpose. Let the sun shine during the day, and the moon and stars at night. Let the sea provide fish, the earth provide grains, and the woods provide trees, etc. Let the Law also serve its unique purpose. It shouldn’t overstep its boundaries or take on the role of anything else. What is the function of the Law? "Transgression," answers the Apostle.
The Twofold Purpose of the Law
The Twofold Purpose of the Law
The Law has a twofold purpose. One purpose is civil. God has ordained civil laws to punish crime. Every law is given to restrain sin. Does it not then make men righteous? No. In refraining from murder, adultery, theft, or other sins, I do so under compulsion because I fear the jail, the noose, the electric chair. These restrain me as iron bars restrain a lion and a bear. Otherwise they would tear everything to pieces. Such forceful restraint cannot be regarded as righteousness, rather as an indication of unrighteousness. As a wild beast is tied to keep it from running amuck, so the Law bridles mad and furious man to keep him from running wild. The need for restraint shows plainly enough that those who need the Law are not righteous, but wicked men who are fit to be tied. No, the Law does not justify.
The Law has two main purposes. One is civil. God has established civil laws to punish crime. Every law is meant to keep sin in check. But does this make people righteous? No. When I avoid murder, adultery, theft, or other sins, I do it because I’m afraid of prison, the death penalty, or the electric chair. These threats restrain me like iron bars hold back a lion and a bear. Otherwise, they would destroy everything in their path. This kind of forced restraint can't be seen as righteousness; instead, it shows a lack of it. Just like a wild animal is tied up to prevent it from causing chaos, the Law keeps an unruly and angry person from going wild. The need for restraint clearly indicates that those who require the Law are not righteous but rather wicked individuals who need to be controlled. No, the Law does not justify.
The first purpose of the Law, accordingly, is to restrain the wicked. The devil gets people into all kinds of scrapes. Therefore God instituted governments, parents, laws, restrictions, and civil ordinances. At least they help to tie the devil's hands so that he does not rage up and down the earth. This civil restraint by the Law is intended by God for the preservation of all things, particularly for the good of the Gospel that it should not be hindered too much by the tumult of the wicked. But Paul is not now treating of this civil use and function of the Law. The second purpose of the Law is spiritual and divine. Paul describes this spiritual purpose of the Law in the words, "Because of transgressions," i.e., to reveal to a person his sin, blindness, misery, his ignorance, hatred, and contempt of God, his death, hell, and condemnation.
The main purpose of the Law is to keep the wicked in check. The devil leads people into all sorts of trouble. That's why God established governments, parents, laws, restrictions, and civil regulations. At the very least, these measures help to limit the devil’s influence so he doesn’t wreak havoc on the earth. This civil restraint by the Law is meant by God to protect everything, especially to ensure that the Gospel isn’t too obstructed by the chaos of the wicked. However, Paul isn’t currently focusing on this civil aspect and purpose of the Law. The second purpose of the Law is spiritual and divine. Paul explains this spiritual purpose of the Law with the phrase, "Because of transgressions," meaning it is meant to show a person their sin, blindness, suffering, ignorance, hatred, and disdain for God, as well as their death, hell, and condemnation.
This is the principal purpose of the Law and its most valuable contribution. As long as a person is not a murderer, adulterer, thief, he would swear that he is righteous. How is God going to humble such a person except by the Law? The Law is the hammer of death, the thunder of hell, and the lightning of God's wrath to bring down the proud and shameless hypocrites. When the Law was instituted on Mount Sinai it was accompanied by lightning, by storms, by the sound of trumpets, to tear to pieces that monster called self-righteousness. As long as a person thinks he is right he is going to be incomprehensibly proud and presumptuous. He is going to hate God, despise His grace and mercy, and ignore the promises in Christ. The Gospel of the free forgiveness of sins through Christ will never appeal to the self-righteous.
This is the main purpose of the Law and its greatest contribution. As long as someone isn’t a murderer, adulterer, or thief, they will insist they are righteous. How will God bring humility to such a person except through the Law? The Law serves as the hammer of death, the thunder of hell, and the lightning of God's wrath to bring down proud and shameless hypocrites. When the Law was given on Mount Sinai, it came with lightning, storms, and the sound of trumpets to shatter that monster called self-righteousness. As long as someone believes they’re right, they will remain incredibly proud and presumptuous. They will hate God, disregard His grace and mercy, and overlook the promises of Christ. The Gospel of free forgiveness of sins through Christ will never resonate with the self-righteous.
This monster of self-righteousness, this stiff-necked beast, needs a big axe. And that is what the Law is, a big axe. Accordingly, the proper use and function of the Law is to threaten until the conscience is scared stiff.
This monster of self-righteousness, this stubborn beast, needs a big axe. And that’s what the Law is, a big axe. Therefore, the right way to use the Law is to threaten until the conscience is frozen in fear.
The awful spectacle at Mount Sinai portrayed the proper use of the Law. When the children of Israel came out of Egypt a feeling of singular holiness possessed them. They boasted: "We are the people of God. All that the Lord hath spoken we will do." (Ex. 19:8) This feeling of holiness was heightened when Moses ordered them to wash their clothes, to refrain from their wives, and to prepare themselves all around. The third day came and Moses led the people out of their tents to the foot of the mountain into the presence of the Lord. What happened? When the children of Israel saw the whole mountain burning and smoking, the black clouds rent by fierce lightning flashing up and down in the inky darkness, when they heard the sound of the trumpet blowing louder and longer, shattered by the roll of thunder, they were so frightened that they begged Moses: "Speak thou with us, and we will hear: but let not God speak with us, lest we die." (Ex. 20:19.) I ask you, what good did their scrubbing, their snow-white clothes, and their continence do them? No good at all. Not a single one could stand in the presence of the glorious Lord. Stricken by the terror of God, they fled back into their tents, as if the devil were after them.
The terrifying scene at Mount Sinai showed how to properly use the Law. When the Israelites left Egypt, they felt an intense sense of holiness. They proudly declared, "We are God’s people. We will do everything the Lord has said." (Ex. 19:8) This feeling of holiness grew stronger when Moses told them to wash their clothes, avoid their wives, and prepare themselves. On the third day, Moses brought the people out of their tents to the foot of the mountain, into the presence of the Lord. What happened next? When the Israelites saw the entire mountain on fire and smoking, with dark clouds torn apart by fierce lightning flashing in the pitch-black sky, and heard the sound of the trumpet blasting louder and longer, mixed with the rumble of thunder, they were so terrified that they begged Moses, "Speak to us, and we will listen; but don’t let God speak to us, or we will die." (Ex. 20:19) I ask you, what good did their scrubbing, their bright white clothes, and their self-control do them? None at all. Not one could stand in the presence of the glorious Lord. Overcome by the fear of God, they ran back to their tents, as if the devil were chasing them.
The Law is meant to produce the same effect today which it produced at Mount Sinai long ago. I want to encourage all who fear God, especially those who intend to become ministers of the Gospel, to learn from the Apostle the proper use of the Law. I fear that after our time the right handling of the Law will become a lost art. Even now, although we continually explain the separate functions of the Law and the Gospel, we have those among us who do not understand how the Law should be used. What will it be like when we are dead and gone?
The Law is meant to have the same impact today as it did at Mount Sinai long ago. I want to encourage everyone who fears God, especially those who plan to become ministers of the Gospel, to learn from the Apostle about the right way to use the Law. I worry that after we're gone, properly handling the Law will become a lost skill. Even now, though we constantly explain the different roles of the Law and the Gospel, we have people among us who don't grasp how the Law should be applied. What will it be like when we're no longer here?
We want it understood that we do not reject the Law as our opponents claim. On the contrary, we uphold the Law. We say the Law is good if it is used for the purposes for which it was designed, to check civil transgression, and to magnify spiritual transgressions. The Law is also a light like the Gospel. But instead of revealing the grace of God, righteousness, and life, the Law brings sin, death, and the wrath of God to light. This is the business of the Law, and here the business of the Law ends, and should go no further.
We want to make it clear that we don't reject the Law as our opponents claim. On the contrary, we support the Law. We believe the Law is good when it's used for its intended purpose: to address civil wrongdoing and highlight spiritual wrongdoing. The Law is also a guide like the Gospel. However, instead of showing God's grace, righteousness, and life, the Law reveals sin, death, and God's wrath. This is the purpose of the Law, and this should be where the Law stops.
The business of the Gospel, on the other hand, is to quicken, to comfort, to raise the fallen. The Gospel carries the news that God for Christ's sake is merciful to the most unworthy sinners, if they will only believe that Christ by His death has delivered them from sin and everlasting death unto grace, forgiveness, and everlasting life. By keeping in mind the difference between the Law and the Gospel we let each perform its special task. Of this difference between the Law and the Gospel nothing can be discovered in the writings of the monks or scholastics, nor for that matter in the writings of the ancient fathers. Augustine understood the difference somewhat. Jerome and others knew nothing of it. The silence in the Church concerning the difference between the Law and the Gospel has resulted in untold harm. Unless a sharp distinction is maintained between the purpose and function of the Law and the Gospel, the Christian doctrine cannot be kept free from error.
The purpose of the Gospel is to uplift, comfort, and help those who are struggling. The Gospel brings the message that God is merciful to even the most unworthy sinners for Christ's sake, as long as they believe that Christ has saved them from sin and eternal death, granting them grace, forgiveness, and eternal life. By understanding the difference between the Law and the Gospel, we allow each to fulfill its unique role. This distinction is not found in the writings of monks or scholars, nor in the works of early church fathers. Augustine had some grasp of this difference, while Jerome and others did not. The lack of discussion in the Church about the difference between the Law and the Gospel has caused significant harm. Without a clear distinction between the purpose and role of the Law and the Gospel, Christian doctrine cannot remain free from error.
VERSE 19. It was added because of transgressions.
VERSE 19. It was added due to wrongdoings.
In other words, that transgressions might be recognized as such and thus increased. When sin, death, and the wrath of God are revealed to a person by the Law, he grows impatient, complains against God, and rebels. Before that he was a very holy man; he worshipped and praised God; he bowed his knees before God and gave thanks, like the Pharisee. But now that sin and death are revealed to him by the Law he wishes there were no God. The Law inspires hatred of God. Thus sin is not only revealed by the Law; sin is actually increased and magnified by the Law.
In other words, transgressions might be recognized as such and therefore increase. When the Law reveals sin, death, and God's wrath to someone, they become impatient, complain about God, and rebel. Before that, they were seen as a very holy person; they worshipped and praised God, bowed their knees before Him, and gave thanks, like the Pharisee. But now that the Law has exposed sin and death to them, they wish there were no God. The Law inspires hatred toward God. So, sin is not only revealed by the Law; it is actually amplified and intensified by the Law.
The Law is a mirror to show a person what he is like, a sinner who is guilty of death, and worthy of everlasting punishment. What is this bruising and beating by the hand of the Law to accomplish? This, that we may find the way to grace. The Law is an usher to lead the way to grace. God is the God of the humble, the miserable, the afflicted. It is His nature to exalt the humble, to comfort the sorrowing, to heal the broken-hearted, to justify the sinners, and to save the condemned. The fatuous idea that a person can be holy by himself denies God the pleasure of saving sinners. God must therefore first take the sledge-hammer of the Law in His fists and smash the beast of self-righteousness and its brood of self-confidence, self-wisdom, self-righteousness, and self-help. When the conscience has been thoroughly frightened by the Law it welcomes the Gospel of grace with its message of a Savior who came into the world, not to break the bruised reed, nor to quench the smoking flax, but to preach glad tidings to the poor, to heal the broken-hearted, and to grant forgiveness of sins to all the captives.
The Law reflects a person's true nature, revealing them as a sinner deserving of death and everlasting punishment. What is the purpose of this harsh treatment by the Law? It serves to guide us toward grace. The Law acts as a guide leading us to grace. God cares for the humble, the suffering, and the troubled. It's in His nature to uplift the humble, comfort the grieving, heal the broken-hearted, justify sinners, and save the condemned. The ridiculous notion that someone can become holy on their own denies God the joy of saving sinners. Therefore, God must first wield the heavy hand of the Law to crush the monster of self-righteousness and its offspring of self-confidence, self-wisdom, self-righteousness, and self-help. Once the conscience is thoroughly shaken by the Law, it is ready to embrace the Gospel of grace, which brings the message of a Savior who came into the world not to break the bruised reed or snuff out the smoking flax, but to share good news with the poor, heal the broken-hearted, and offer forgiveness of sins to all who are captive.
Man's folly, however, is so prodigious that instead of embracing the message of grace with its guarantee of the forgiveness of sin for Christ's sake, man finds himself more laws to satisfy his conscience. "If I live," says he, "I will mend my life. I will do this, I will do that." Man, if you don't do the very opposite, if you don't send Moses with the Law back to Mount Sinai and take the hand of Christ, pierced for your sins, you will never be saved.
Man's foolishness is so great that instead of accepting the message of grace, which promises forgiveness of sin because of Christ, he seeks out more rules to ease his conscience. "If I live," he says, "I will improve my life. I will do this, I will do that." Man, if you don't do the exact opposite—if you don't send Moses and the Law back to Mount Sinai and instead reach for the hand of Christ, who was pierced for your sins—you will never be saved.
When the Law drives you to the point of despair, let it drive you a little farther, let it drive you straight into the arms of Jesus who says: "Come unto me, all ye that labour and are heavy laden, and I will give you rest."
When the Law brings you to the brink of despair, let it push you a bit further, straight into the arms of Jesus who says: "Come to me, all you who are weary and burdened, and I will give you rest."
VERSE 19. Till the seed should come to whom the promise was made.
VERSE 19. Until the seed arrives to whom the promise was made.
The Law is not to have its say indefinitely. We must know how long the Law is to put in its licks. If it hammers away too long, no person would and could be saved. The Law has a boundary beyond which it must not go. How long ought the Law to hold sway? "Till the seed should come to whom the promise was made." That may be taken literally to mean until the time of the Gospel. "From the days of John the Baptist," says Jesus, "until now the kingdom of heaven suffereth violence, and the violent take it by force. For all the prophets and the law prophesied until John." (Matthew 11:12, 13.) When Christ came the Law and the ceremonies of Moses ceased.
The Law isn't meant to last forever. We need to understand how long it should be enforced. If it goes on too long, no one can be saved. The Law has a limit that it can't surpass. How long should the Law be in control? "Until the seed comes to whom the promise was made." This can be understood literally as until the Gospel's time. "From the days of John the Baptist," Jesus says, "until now the kingdom of heaven has been forcefully advancing, and the strong take hold of it. For all the prophets and the law prophesied until John." (Matthew 11:12, 13.) When Christ arrived, the Law and the rituals of Moses ended.
Spiritually, it means that the Law is not to operate on a person after he has been humbled and frightened by the exposure of his sins and the wrath of God. We must then say to the Law: "Mister Law, lay off him. He has had enough. You scared him good and proper." Now it is the Gospel's turn. Now let Christ with His gracious lips talk to him of better things, grace, peace, forgiveness of sins, and eternal life.
Spiritually, it means that the Law shouldn't impact someone after they've been humiliated and terrified by the revelation of their sins and God's anger. We must then say to the Law: "Hey Law, back off. He's had enough. You really scared him." Now it's time for the Gospel. Now let Christ, with His kind words, speak to him about better things: grace, peace, forgiveness of sins, and eternal life.
VERSE 19. And it was ordained by angels in the hand of a mediator.
VERSE 19. And it was established by angels through the hands of a mediator.
The Apostle digresses a little from his immediate theme. Something occurred to him and he throws it in by the way. It occurred to him that the Law differs from the Gospel in another respect, in respect to authorship. The Law was delivered by the angels, but the Gospel by the Lord Himself. Hence, the Gospel is superior to the Law, as the word of a lord is superior to the word of his servant.
The Apostle strays a bit from his main topic. Something comes to mind, and he mentions it in passing. He realizes that the Law is different from the Gospel in one more way—specifically, in who authored them. The Law was given by angels, while the Gospel was given by the Lord Himself. Therefore, the Gospel is greater than the Law, just like a lord's word is greater than a servant's.
The Law was handed down by a being even inferior to the angels, by a middleman named Moses. Paul wants us to understand that Christ is the mediator of a better testament than mediator Moses of the Law. Moses led the people out of their tents to meet God. But they ran away. That is how good a mediator Moses was.
The Law was given by a being lower than the angels, through a middleman named Moses. Paul wants us to see that Christ is the mediator of a better covenant than Moses was of the Law. Moses brought the people out of their tents to meet God. But they ran away. That shows how effective a mediator Moses was.
Paul says: "How can the Law justify when that whole sanctified people of Israel and even mediator Moses trembled at the voice of God? What kind of righteousness do you call that when people run away from it and hate it the worst way? If the Law could justify, people would love the Law. But look at the children of Israel running away from it."
Paul says: "How can the Law justify when that whole holy people of Israel, and even their mediator Moses, were terrified by the voice of God? What kind of righteousness is that when people flee from it and despise it so much? If the Law could justify, people would cherish it. But look at the Israelites running away from it."
The flight of the children of Israel from Mount Sinai indicates how people feel about the Law. They don't like it. If this were the only argument to prove that salvation is not by the Law, this one Bible history would do the work. What kind of righteousness is this law-righteousness when at the commencement exercises of the Law Moses and the scrubbed people run away from it so fast that an iron mountain, the Red Sea even, could not have stopped them until they were back in Egypt once again? If they could not hear the Law, how could they ever hope to perform the Law?
The escape of the people of Israel from Mount Sinai shows how they feel about the Law. They don’t like it. If this were the only reason to prove that salvation isn’t through the Law, this one Bible story would be enough. What kind of righteousness is this law-based righteousness when, at the very start of the Law, Moses and the cleaned-up people run away from it so fast that even an iron mountain or the Red Sea couldn’t stop them until they were back in Egypt again? If they couldn’t listen to the Law, how could they ever expect to follow it?
If all the world had stood at the mountain, all the world would have hated the Law and fled from it as the children of Israel did. The whole world is an enemy of the Law. How, then, can anyone be justified by the Law when everybody hates the Law and its divine author?
If everyone in the world had been at the mountain, everyone would have hated the Law and run away from it just like the children of Israel did. The whole world is against the Law. So, how can anyone be justified by the Law when everyone despises it and its divine creator?
All this goes to show how little the scholastics know about the Law. They do not consider its spiritual effect and purpose, which is not to justify or to pacify afflicted consciences, but to increase sin, to terrify the conscience, and to produce wrath. In their ignorance the papists spout about man's good will and right judgment, and man's capacity to perform the Law of God. Ask the people of Israel who were present at the presentation of the Law on Mount Sinai whether what the scholastics say is true. Ask David, who often complains in the Psalms that he was cast away from God and in hell, that he was frantic about his sin, and sick at the thought of the wrath and judgment of God. No, the Law does not justify.
All this shows how little the scholars understand the Law. They don’t see its spiritual impact and purpose, which isn’t to justify or comfort troubled consciences, but to increase sin, instill fear, and provoke wrath. In their ignorance, the papists talk about human goodwill and sound judgment, and humanity's ability to fulfill God's Law. Ask the people of Israel who were there when the Law was given on Mount Sinai if what the scholars say is true. Ask David, who often expresses in the Psalms how he felt cast away from God and in despair, how he was tormented by his sin, and plagued by thoughts of God’s wrath and judgment. No, the Law does not justify.
VERSE 20. Now a mediator is not a mediator of one.
VERSE 20. A mediator is not just for one person.
Here the Apostle briefly compares the two mediators: Moses and Christ. "A mediator," says Paul, "is not a mediator of one." He is necessarily a mediator of two: The offender and the offended. Moses was such a mediator between the Law and the people who were offended at the Law. They were offended at the Law because they did not understand its purpose. That was the veil which Moses put over his face. The people were also offended at the Law because they could not look at the bare face of Moses. It shone with the glory of God. When Moses addressed the people he had to cover his face with that veil of his. They could not listen to their mediator Moses without another mediator, the veil. The Law had to change its face and voice. In other words, the Law had to be made tolerable to the people.
Here, the Apostle briefly compares the two mediators: Moses and Christ. "A mediator," says Paul, "is not a mediator of one." He must be a mediator for two: the offender and the offended. Moses was such a mediator between the Law and the people who were upset with the Law. They were upset with the Law because they didn’t understand its purpose. That was the veil Moses put over his face. The people were also troubled by the Law because they couldn’t look directly at Moses’s face. It shone with the glory of God. When Moses spoke to the people, he had to cover his face with that veil. They could not listen to their mediator Moses without another mediator, the veil. The Law had to present itself differently. In other words, the Law had to be made more acceptable to the people.
Thus covered, the Law no longer spoke to the people in its undisguised majesty. It became more tolerable to the conscience. This explains why men fail to understand the Law properly, with the result that they become secure and presumptuous hypocrites. One of two things has to be done: Either the Law must be covered with a veil and then it loses its full effectiveness, or it must be unveiled and then the full blast of its force kills. Man cannot stand the Law without a veil over it. Hence, we are forced either to look beyond the Law to Christ, or we go through life as shameless hypocrites and secure sinners.
Once covered, the Law no longer addressed people with its full authority. It became easier for their consciences to handle. This is why people struggle to truly understand the Law, leading them to become complacent and arrogant hypocrites. We have two options: either the Law is hidden behind a veil and loses its total impact, or it is revealed and its overwhelming power can destroy us. People can't face the Law without something to shield them from it. Therefore, we must either look past the Law to Christ, or we live our lives as unashamed hypocrites and self-assured sinners.
Paul says: "A mediator is not a mediator of one." Moses could not be a mediator of God only, for God needs no mediator. Again, Moses could not be a mediator of the people only. He was a mediator between God and the people. It is the office of a mediator to conciliate the party that is offended and to placate the party that is the offender. However, Moses' mediation consisted only in changing the tone of the Law to make it more tolerable to the people. Moses was merely a mediator of the veil. He could not supply the ability to perform the Law.
Paul says: "A mediator is not just a mediator for one party." Moses couldn’t be a mediator for God alone, because God doesn’t need a mediator. Similarly, Moses couldn’t just mediate for the people. He served as a mediator between God and the people. The role of a mediator is to reconcile the offended party and to appease the offending party. However, Moses' mediation only involved changing the tone of the Law to make it easier for the people to accept. Moses was simply a mediator of the veil. He couldn’t provide the ability to follow the Law.
What do you suppose would have happened if the Law had been given without a mediator and the people had been denied the services of a go-between? The people would have perished, or in case they had escaped they would have required the services of another mediator to preserve them alive and to keep the Law in force. Moses came along and he was made the mediator. He covered his face with a veil. But that is as much as he could do. He could not deliver men's consciences from the terror of the Law. The sinner needs a better mediator.
What do you think would have happened if the Law had been given without a mediator and the people had been denied a go-between? The people would have perished, or if they had survived, they would have needed another mediator to keep them alive and uphold the Law. Moses stepped in as the mediator. He covered his face with a veil. But that was all he could do. He couldn't free people's consciences from the fear of the Law. The sinner needs a better mediator.
That better mediator is Jesus Christ. He does not change the voice of the Law, nor does He hide the Law with a veil. He takes the full blast of the wrath of the Law and fulfills its demands most meticulously.
That better mediator is Jesus Christ. He doesn’t alter the voice of the Law, nor does He conceal the Law behind a veil. He faces the full force of the Law’s wrath and fulfills its demands with great precision.
Of this better Mediator Paul says: "A mediator is not a mediator of one." We are the offending party; God is the party offended. The offense is of such a nature that God cannot pardon it. Neither can we render adequate satisfaction for our offenses. There is discord between God and us. Could not God revoke His Law? No. How about running away from God? It cannot be done. It took Christ to come between us and God and to reconcile God to us. How did Christ do it? "Blotting out the handwriting of ordinances that was against us, which was contrary to us, and took it out of the way, nailing it to his cross." (Col. 2:14.)
Of this better Mediator, Paul says: "A mediator is not a mediator of one." We are the ones who have wronged; God is the one who has been wronged. The offense is serious enough that God can’t just overlook it. We also can’t make up for our wrongs adequately. There is a rift between God and us. Could God change His Law? No. What about trying to escape from God? That’s impossible. It took Christ to bridge the gap between us and God and to reconcile God to us. How did Christ do it? "Blotting out the handwriting of ordinances that was against us, which was contrary to us, and took it out of the way, nailing it to his cross." (Col. 2:14.)
This one word, "mediator," is proof enough that the Law cannot justify. Otherwise we should not need a mediator.
This one word, "mediator," clearly shows that the Law isn't enough to justify us. Otherwise, we wouldn't need a mediator.
In Christian theology the Law does not justify. In fact it has the contrary effect. The Law alarms us, it magnifies our sins until we begin to hate the Law and its divine Author. Would you call this being justified by the Law?
In Christian theology, the Law doesn't bring justification. In fact, it does the opposite. The Law frightens us, amplifying our sins to the point where we start to resent the Law and its divine Creator. Would you really call this being justified by the Law?
Can you imagine a more arrant outrage than to hate God and to abhor His Law? What an excellent Law it is. Listen: "I am the Lord thy God, which have brought thee out of the land of Egypt, out of the house of bondage. Thou shalt have no other gods...showing mercy unto thousands... honor thy father and thy mother; that thy days may be long upon the land..." (Ex. 20:2, 3, 6, 12.) Are these not excellent laws, perfect wisdom? "Let not God speak with us, lest we die," cried the children of Israel. Is it not amazing that a person should refuse to hear things that are good for him? Any person would be glad to hear, I should think, that he has a gracious God who shows mercy unto thousands. Is it not amazing that people hate the Law that promotes their safety and welfare, e.g., "Thou shalt not kill; thou shalt not commit adultery; thou shalt not steal"?
Can you imagine a bigger outrage than hating God and rejecting His Law? What an incredible Law it is. Listen: "I am the Lord your God, who brought you out of the land of Egypt, out of the house of bondage. You shall have no other gods... showing mercy to thousands... honor your father and mother; so that your days may be long in the land..." (Ex. 20:2, 3, 6, 12.) Aren't these amazing laws, perfect wisdom? "Let not God speak with us, lest we die," cried the people of Israel. Isn't it surprising that someone would refuse to hear things that are good for them? I would think anyone would be happy to hear that they have a gracious God who shows mercy to thousands. Isn't it shocking that people hate the Law that protects their safety and well-being, like "You shall not kill; you shall not commit adultery; you shall not steal"?
The Law can do nothing for us except to arouse the conscience. Before the Law comes to me I feel no sin. But when the Law comes, sin, death, and hell are revealed to me. You would not call this being made righteous. You would call it being condemned to death and hell-fire.
The Law can't help us except to awaken our conscience. Before the Law reaches me, I don't feel any guilt. But when the Law arrives, it exposes sin, death, and hell to me. You wouldn't describe this as being made righteous; you'd call it being condemned to death and eternal damnation.
VERSE 20. But God is one.
VERSE 20. But God is one.
God does not offend anybody, therefore He needs no mediator. But we offend God, therefore we need a mediator. And we need a better mediator than Moses. We need Christ.
God doesn't offend anyone, so He doesn't need a mediator. But we offend God, which is why we need a mediator. And we need a better mediator than Moses. We need Christ.
VERSE 21. Is the law then against the promises of God?
VERSE 21. Is the law in opposition to God’s promises?
Before he digressed Paul stated that the Law does not justify. Shall we then discard the Law? No, no. It supplies a certain need. It supplies men with a needed realization of their sinfulness. Now arises another question: If the Law does no more than to reveal sin, does it not oppose the promises of God? The Jews believed that by the restraint and discipline of the Law the promises of God would be hastened, in fact earned by them.
Before he went off-topic, Paul said that the Law doesn't justify. So, should we just ignore the Law? No, definitely not. It fulfills an important purpose. It gives people a necessary awareness of their sinfulness. This brings up another question: If the Law only reveals sin, does it contradict God's promises? The Jews believed that by following the restrictions and guidance of the Law, they would speed up and even earn God's promises.
Paul answers: "Not so. On the contrary, if we pay too much attention to the Law the promises of God will be slowed up. How can God fulfill His promises to a people that hates the Law?"
Paul answers: "Not at all. In fact, if we focus too much on the Law, it will actually delay God's promises. How can God keep His promises to a people who despise the Law?"
VERSE 21. God forbid.
No way.
God never said to Abraham: "In thee shall all the nations of the earth be blessed because thou hast kept the Law." When Abraham was still uncircumcised and without the Law or any law, indeed, when he was still an idol worshiper, God said to him: "Get thee out of thy country, etc.; I am thy shield, etc.; In thy seed shall all the nations of the earth be blessed." These are unconditional promises which God freely made to Abraham without respect to works.
God never told Abraham, "Because you’ve followed the Law, all the nations of the earth will be blessed through you." When Abraham was still uncircumcised and had no Law or any rules at all, in fact, when he was still worshiping idols, God said to him, "Leave your country, etc.; I will protect you, etc.; Through your descendants, all the nations of the earth will be blessed." These are unconditional promises that God generously made to Abraham, regardless of his actions.
This is aimed especially at the Jews who think that the promises of God are impeded by their sins. Paul says: "The Lord is not slack concerning His promises because of our sins, or hastens His promises because of any merit on our part." God's promises are not influenced by our attitudes. They rest in His goodness and mercy.
This is aimed especially at the Jews who believe that their sins hold back God's promises. Paul says: "The Lord is not slow to fulfill His promises because of our sins, nor does He rush to fulfill them because of any good we do." God's promises aren't affected by our actions. They depend on His goodness and mercy.
Just because the Law increases sin, it does not therefore obstruct the promises of God. The Law confirms the promises, in that it prepares a person to look for the fulfillment of the promises of God in Christ.
Just because the Law makes sin more obvious, it doesn’t mean it blocks the promises of God. The Law actually supports the promises by helping a person seek the fulfillment of God’s promises in Christ.
The proverb has it that Hunger is the best cook. The Law makes afflicted consciences hungry for Christ. Christ tastes good to them. Hungry hearts appreciate Christ. Thirsty souls are what Christ wants. He invites them: "Come unto me, all ye that labour and are heavy laden, and I will give you rest." Christ's benefits are so precious that He will dispense them only to those who need them and really desire them.
The saying goes that hunger is the best cook. The Law makes troubled hearts crave Christ. Christ is fulfilling to them. Those who are longing truly value Christ. He desires thirsty souls. He invites them: "Come to me, all you who are weary and burdened, and I will give you rest." Christ's gifts are so valuable that He gives them only to those who truly need and seek them.
VERSE 21. For if there had been a law given which could have given life, verily righteousness should have been by the law.
VERSE 21. For if there had been a law that could give life, then righteousness would have come from the law.
The Law cannot give life. It kills. The Law does not justify a person before God; it increases sin. The Law does not secure righteousness; it hinders righteousness. The Apostle declares emphatically that the Law of itself cannot save.
The Law can't give life. It kills. The Law doesn't justify someone before God; it increases sin. The Law doesn't secure righteousness; it blocks righteousness. The Apostle strongly states that the Law itself cannot save.
Despite the intelligibility of Paul's statement, our enemies fail to grasp it. Otherwise they would not emphasize free will, natural strength, the works of supererogation, etc. To escape the charge of forgery they always have their convenient annotation handy, that Paul is referring only to the ceremonial and not to the moral law. But Paul includes all laws. He expressly says: "If there had been a law given."
Despite how clear Paul's statement is, our opponents don’t seem to understand it. If they did, they wouldn’t focus on free will, natural strength, and good deeds, among other things. To avoid being accused of twisting the truth, they conveniently add that Paul is only talking about ceremonial laws, not moral ones. But Paul includes all kinds of laws. He clearly states: "If there had been a law given."
There is no law by which righteousness may be obtained, not a single one. Why not?
There isn't any law that can achieve righteousness, not even one. Why is that?
VERSE 22. But the Scripture hath concluded all under sin.
VERSE 22. But the Scripture has concluded everyone under sin.
Where? First in the promises concerning Christ in Genesis 3:15 and in Genesis 22:18, which speak of the seed of the woman and the seed of Abraham. The fact that these promises were made unto the fathers concerning Christ implies that the fathers were subject to the curse of sin and eternal death. Otherwise why the need of promises?
Where? First in the promises about Christ in Genesis 3:15 and in Genesis 22:18, which mention the offspring of the woman and the offspring of Abraham. The fact that these promises were made to the forefathers regarding Christ suggests that the forefathers were under the curse of sin and eternal death. Otherwise, why would there be a need for promises?
Next, Holy Writ "concludes" all under sin in this passage from Paul: "For as many as are of the works of the law are under the curse." Again, in the passage which the Apostle quotes from Deuteronomy 27:26, "Cursed is every one that continueth not in all things which are written in the book of the law to do them." This passage clearly submits all men to the curse, not only those who sin openly against the Law, but also those who sincerely endeavor to perform the Law, inclusive of monks, friars, hermits, etc.
Next, the Holy Scriptures "conclude" that everyone is under sin in this passage from Paul: "For all who rely on the works of the law are under a curse." Again, in the passage that the Apostle quotes from Deuteronomy 27:26, "Cursed is everyone who does not continue to do everything written in the book of the law." This passage clearly subjects all people to the curse, not just those who openly violate the Law, but also those who genuinely try to follow the Law, including monks, friars, hermits, and so on.
The conclusion is inevitable: Faith alone justified without works. If the Law itself cannot justify, much less can imperfect performance of the Law or the works of the Law, justify.
The conclusion is clear: Faith alone justifies without works. If the Law itself cannot justify, then the imperfect execution of the Law or the works of the Law definitely can't justify either.
VERSE 22. That the promise by faith of Jesus Christ might be given to them that believe.
VERSE 22. So that the promise through faith in Jesus Christ could be given to those who believe.
The Apostle stated before that "the Scripture hath concluded all under sin." Forever? No, only until the promise should be fulfilled. The promise, you will recall, is the inheritance itself or the blessing promised to Abraham, deliverance from the Law, sin, death, and the devil, and the free gift of grace, righteousness, salvation, and eternal life. This promise, says Paul, is not obtained by any merit, by any law, or by any work. This promise is given. To whom? To those who believe. In whom? In Jesus Christ.
The Apostle said before that "the Scriptures have condemned everyone under sin." Forever? No, only until the promise is fulfilled. The promise, as you recall, is the inheritance itself or the blessing promised to Abraham—freedom from the Law, sin, death, and the devil, and the free gift of grace, righteousness, salvation, and eternal life. This promise, Paul says, isn't earned by anything we do, any laws, or any works. This promise is given. To whom? To those who believe. In whom? In Jesus Christ.
VERSE 23. But before faith came.
VERSE 23. But before faith arrived.
The Apostle proceeds to explain the service which the Law is to render. Previously Paul had said that the Law was given to reveal the wrath and death of God upon all sinners. Although the Law kills, God brings good out of evil. He uses the Law to bring life. God saw that the universal illusion of self-righteousness could not be put down in any other way but by the Law. The Law dispels all self-illusions. It puts the fear of God in a man. Without this fear there can be no thirst for God's mercy. God accordingly uses the Law for a hammer to break up the illusion of self-righteousness, that we should despair of our own strength and efforts at self-justification.
The Apostle goes on to explain the role that the Law plays. Earlier, Paul mentioned that the Law was given to show God's anger and the consequences of sin. While the Law can be harsh, God brings goodness out of it. He uses the Law to give life. God recognized that the widespread belief in self-righteousness couldn't be dismantled in any other way but through the Law. The Law shatters all self-deceptions. It instills a sense of reverence for God in a person. Without this reverence, there can't be a genuine desire for God's mercy. Therefore, God uses the Law like a hammer to break the false sense of self-righteousness, making us realize we cannot rely on our own strength and efforts for justification.
VERSE 23. But before faith came, we were kept under the law, shut up unto the faith which should afterwards be revealed.
VERSE 23. But before faith arrived, we were held under the law, confined until the faith that would later be revealed.
The Law is a prison to those who have not as yet obtained grace. No prisoner enjoys the confinement. He hates it. If he could he would smash the prison and find his freedom at all cost. As long as he stays in prison he refrains from evil deeds. Not because he wants to, but because he has to. The bars and the chains restrain him. He does not regret the crime that put him in jail. On the contrary, he is mighty sore that he cannot rob and kill as before. If he could escape he would go right back to robbing and killing.
The Law is a prison for those who haven't found grace yet. No prisoner enjoys being locked up; they hate it. If they could, they would break down the walls and seek their freedom at any cost. As long as they're in prison, they avoid committing evil acts—not because they want to, but because they have no choice. The bars and chains hold them back. They don't regret the crime that got them locked up. In fact, they're really frustrated that they can't rob and kill like they used to. If they could escape, they'd go straight back to robbing and killing.
The Law enforces good behavior, at least outwardly. We obey the Law because if we don't we will be punished. Our obedience is inspired by fear. We obey under duress and we do it resentfully. Now what kind of righteousness is this when we refrain from evil out of fear of punishment? Hence, the righteousness of the Law is at bottom nothing but love of sin and hatred of righteousness.
The law enforces good behavior, at least on the surface. We follow the law because if we don’t, we’ll face consequences. Our compliance comes from fear. We obey under pressure and we do it with resentment. So what kind of righteousness is it when we avoid wrongdoing just because we’re afraid of punishment? Therefore, the righteousness of the law is really just a love of sin and a hatred of what’s right.
All the same, the Law accomplishes this much, that it will outwardly at least and to a certain extent repress vice and crime.
Still, the Law does achieve at least one thing: it can, on the surface and to some degree, control vice and crime.
But the Law is also a spiritual prison, a veritable hell. When the Law begins to threaten a person with death and the eternal wrath of God, a man just cannot find any comfort at all. He cannot shake off at will the nightmare of terror which the Law stirs up in his conscience. Of this terror of the Law the Psalms furnish many glimpses.
But the Law is also a spiritual prison, a true hell. When the Law starts to threaten someone with death and the everlasting anger of God, a person just can't find any comfort. They can't easily shake off the nightmare of fear that the Law brings up in their conscience. The Psalms offer many insights into this fear of the Law.
The Law is a civil and a spiritual prison. And such it should be. For that the Law is intended. Only the confinement in the prison of the Law must not be unduly prolonged. It must come to an end. The freedom of faith must succeed the imprisonment of the Law.
The Law is both a civil and spiritual prison. And that’s how it should be. That’s what the Law is meant for. However, the time spent in the prison of the Law should not be unnecessarily long. It must end. The freedom of faith should follow the confinement of the Law.
Happy the person who knows how to utilize the Law so that it serves the purposes of grace and of faith. Unbelievers are ignorant of this happy knowledge. When Cain was first shut up in the prison of the Law he felt no pang at the fratricide he had committed. He thought he could pass it off as an incident with a shrug of the shoulder. "Am I my brother's keeper?" he answered God flippantly. But when he heard the ominous words, "What hast thou done? the voice of thy brother's blood crieth unto me from the ground," Cain began to feel his imprisonment. Did he know how to get out of prison? No. He failed to call the Gospel to his aid. He said: "My punishment is greater than I can bear." He could only think of the prison. He forgot that he was brought face to face with his crime so that he should hurry to God for mercy and for pardon. Cain remained in the prison of the Law and despaired.
Lucky is the person who knows how to use the Law so that it supports grace and faith. Unbelievers are unaware of this fortunate understanding. When Cain was first trapped in the confines of the Law, he felt no guilt for the murder he had committed. He believed he could shrug it off as a minor event. "Am I my brother's keeper?" he answered God casually. But when he heard the chilling words, "What have you done? The voice of your brother's blood cries out to me from the ground," Cain started to sense his confinement. Did he know how to escape? No. He failed to seek the Gospel for help. He lamented, "My punishment is more than I can bear." He could only focus on the prison. He forgot that he was confronted with his crime so that he would rush to God for mercy and forgiveness. Cain remained trapped in the Law and fell into despair.
As a stone prison proves a physical handicap, so the spiritual prison of the Law proves a chamber of torture. But this it should only be until faith be revealed. The silly conscience must be educated to this. Talk to your conscience. Say: "Sister, you are now in jail all right. But you don't have to stay there forever. It is written that we are 'shut up unto faith which should afterwards be revealed.' Christ will lead you to freedom. Do not despair like Cain, Saul, or Judas. They might have gone free if they had called Christ to their aid. Just take it easy, Sister Conscience. It's good for you to be locked up for a while. It will teach you to appreciate Christ."
As a stone prison is a physical limitation, the spiritual prison of the Law is a form of torture. But this should only last until faith is revealed. The weak conscience needs to be educated about this. Talk to your conscience. Say: "Sister, you are indeed in jail right now. But you don’t have to stay there forever. It is written that we are 'shut up unto faith which should afterwards be revealed.' Christ will guide you to freedom. Don’t lose hope like Cain, Saul, or Judas. They could have been free if they had called on Christ for help. Just relax, Sister Conscience. Being locked up for a while is good for you. It will help you learn to appreciate Christ."
How anybody can say that he by nature loves the Law is beyond me. The Law is a prison to be feared and hated. Any unconverted person who says he loves the Law is a liar. He does not know what he is talking about. We love the Law about as well as a murderer loves his gloomy cell, his straight-jacket, and the iron bars in front of him. How then can the Law justify us?
How anyone can claim to naturally love the Law is beyond me. The Law is a prison that people fear and hate. Any unconverted person who says they love the Law is lying. They have no idea what they’re talking about. We love the Law about as much as a murderer loves their dark cell, their restraints, and the iron bars blocking their way. So how can the Law justify us?
VERSE 23. Shut up unto the faith which should afterwards be revealed.
VERSE 23. Closed off from the faith that would later be revealed.
We know that Paul has reference to the time of Christ's coming. It was then that faith and the object of faith were fully revealed. But we may apply the historical fact to our inner life. When Christ came He abolished the Law and brought liberty and life to light. This He continues to do in the hearts of the believers. The Christian has a body in whose members, as Paul says, sin dwells and wars. I take sin to mean not only the deed but root, tree, fruit, and all. A Christian may perhaps not fall into the gross sins of murder, adultery, theft, but he is not free from impatience, complaints, hatreds, and blasphemy of God. As carnal lust is strong in a young man, in a man of full age the desire for glory, and in an old man covetousness, so impatience, doubt, and hatred of God often prevail in the hearts of sincere Christians. Examples of these sins may be garnered from the Psalms, Job, Jeremiah, and all the Sacred Scriptures.
We know that Paul is referring to the time when Christ came. It was then that faith and its true purpose were fully revealed. But we can also relate this historical fact to our inner lives. When Christ arrived, He put an end to the Law and brought forth freedom and life. He continues to do this in the hearts of believers. A Christian has a body where, as Paul says, sin resides and battles. I interpret sin as encompassing not only actions but also its roots, growth, and consequences. A Christian might not commit major sins like murder, adultery, or theft, but they're still susceptible to impatience, complaints, hatred, and blasphemy against God. Just as carnal desires are strong in a young man, the desire for glory may characterize an adult, and in older individuals, it can turn into greed. Similarly, impatience, doubt, and hatred for God often dominate the hearts of sincere Christians. We can find examples of these sins in the Psalms, Job, Jeremiah, and throughout all of Scripture.
Accordingly each Christian continues to experience in his heart times of the Law and times of the Gospel. The times of the Law are discernible by heaviness of heart, by a lively sense of sin, and a feeling of despair brought on by the Law. These periods of the Law will come again and again as long as we live. To mention my own case. There are many times when I find fault with God and am impatient with Him. The wrath and the judgment of God displease me, my wrath and impatience displease Him. Then is the season of the Law, when "the flesh lusteth against the Spirit, and the Spirit against the flesh."
Each Christian will continue to feel in their heart both moments of the Law and moments of the Gospel. The moments of the Law are marked by heaviness in the heart, an intense awareness of sin, and a sense of despair caused by the Law. These periods of the Law will repeatedly occur as long as we live. For example, there are many times when I find myself criticizing God and feeling impatient with Him. God's wrath and judgment bother me, and my anger and impatience upset Him. This is the time of the Law, when "the flesh lusts against the Spirit, and the Spirit against the flesh."
The time of grace returns when the heart is enlivened by the promise of God's mercy. It soliloquizes: "Why art thou cast down, O my soul? and why art thou disquieted within me? Can you see nothing but law, sin, death, and hell? Is there no grace, no forgiveness, no joy, peace, life, heaven, no Christ and God? Trouble me no more, my soul. Hope in God who has not spared His own dear Son but has given Him into death for thy sins." When the Law carries things too far, say: "Mister Law, you are not the whole show. There are other and better things than you. They tell me to trust in the Lord."
The time of grace comes back when the heart is revived by the promise of God's mercy. It reflects: "Why are you feeling down, my soul? Why are you restless inside me? Can you only see law, sin, death, and hell? Is there no grace, no forgiveness, no joy, peace, life, heaven, no Christ and God? Stop bothering me, my soul. Hope in God who didn’t hold back His own dear Son but gave Him up to death for your sins." When the Law goes too far, say: "Hey Law, you’re not everything. There are other, better things than you. They tell me to trust in the Lord."
There is a time for the Law and a time for grace. Let us study to be good timekeepers. It is not easy. Law and grace may be miles apart in essence, but in the heart, they are pretty close together. In the heart fear and trust, sin and grace, Law and Gospel cross paths continually.
There’s a time for the Law and a time for grace. Let’s strive to be good at recognizing when each applies. It’s not easy. Law and grace might seem worlds apart in nature, but in the heart, they’re actually pretty close. Fear and trust, sin and grace, Law and Gospel are constantly intersecting in our hearts.
Whether reason hears that justification before God is obtained by grace alone, it draws the inference that the Law is without value. The doctrine of the Law must therefore be studied carefully lest we either reject the Law altogether, or are tempted to attribute to the Law a capacity to save.
Whether reason understands that justification before God is achieved through grace alone, it concludes that the Law has no value. Therefore, we must study the doctrine of the Law carefully so that we do not either completely reject the Law or mistakenly believe that the Law can save us.
There are three ways in which the Law may be abused. First, by the self-righteous hypocrites who fancy that they can be justified by the Law. Secondly, by those who claim that Christian liberty exempts a Christian from the observance of the Law. "These," says Peter, "use their liberty for a cloak of maliciousness," and bring the name and the Gospel of Christ into ill repute. Thirdly, the Law is abused by those who do not understand that the Law is meant to drive us to Christ. When the Law is properly used its value cannot be too highly appraised. It will take me to Christ every time.
There are three ways the Law can be misused. First, by the self-righteous hypocrites who think they can be justified by the Law. Secondly, by those who argue that Christian freedom allows a Christian to ignore the Law. "These," Peter says, "use their freedom as a cover for wrongdoing," tarnishing the name and the Gospel of Christ. Thirdly, the Law is misused by those who don’t realize that the Law is meant to lead us to Christ. When used correctly, the Law's value is immeasurable. It always brings me back to Christ.
VERSE 24. Wherefore the law was our schoolmaster to bring us unto Christ.
VERSE 24. Therefore, the law was our teacher to lead us to Christ.
This simile of the schoolmaster is striking. Schoolmasters are indispensable. But show me a pupil who loves his schoolmaster. How little love is lost upon them the Jews showed by their attitude toward Moses. They would have been glad to stone Moses to death. (Ex. 17:4.) You cannot expect anything else. How can a pupil love a teacher who frustrates his desires? And if the pupil disobeys, the schoolmaster whips him, and the pupil has to like it and even kiss the rod with which he was beaten. Do you think the schoolboy feels good about it? As soon as the teacher turns his back, the pupil breaks the rod and throws it into the fire. And if he were stronger than the teacher he would not take the beatings, but beat up the teacher. All the same, teachers are indispensable, otherwise the children would grow up without discipline, instruction, and training.
This comparison of the schoolmaster is striking. Schoolmasters are essential. But show me a student who loves their schoolmaster. The lack of affection is evident in the Jews' attitude toward Moses. They would have been happy to stone Moses to death. (Ex. 17:4.) You can't expect anything else. How can a student love a teacher who frustrates their desires? And if the student disobeys, the schoolmaster punishes them, and the student has to accept it and even kiss the rod that was used to discipline them. Do you think the schoolboy feels good about that? As soon as the teacher turns their back, the student breaks the rod and throws it into the fire. And if they were stronger than the teacher, they wouldn’t take the beatings, but would instead fight back. Still, teachers are essential; otherwise, children would grow up without discipline, education, and training.
But how long are the scolding and the whippings of the schoolmaster to continue? Only for a time, until the boy has been trained to be a worthy heir of his father. No father wants his son to be whipped all the time. The discipline is to last until the boy has been trained to be his father's worthy successor.
But how long are the scoldings and beatings from the schoolmaster going to last? Just for a while, until the boy has been taught to be a worthy heir to his father. No father wants his son to be punished all the time. The discipline will continue until the boy is trained to be his father's worthy successor.
The Law is such a schoolmaster. Not for always, but until we have been brought to Christ. The Law is not just another schoolmaster. The Law is a specialist to bring us to Christ. What would you think of a schoolmaster who could only torment and beat a child? Yet of such schoolmasters there were plenty in former times, regular bruisers. The Law is not that kind of a schoolmaster. It is not to torment us always. With its lashings it is only too anxious to drive us to Christ. The Law is like the good schoolmaster who trains his children to find pleasure in doing things they formerly detested.
The Law acts as a teacher. Not forever, but until we come to Christ. The Law isn't just any teacher; it specifically guides us towards Christ. What would you think of a teacher who could only punish and hurt a student? There were definitely many of those in the past, real bullies. The Law isn’t that type of teacher. It's not meant to torment us continuously. Its teachings aim to lead us to Christ. The Law is like a good teacher who helps students find joy in activities they once disliked.
VERSE 24. That we might be justified by faith.
VERSE 24. That we might be made right with God through faith.
The Law is not to teach us another Law. When a person feels the full force of the Law he is likely to think: I have transgressed all the commandments of God; I am guilty of eternal death. If God will spare me I will change and live right from now on. This natural but entirely wrong reaction to the Law has bred the many ceremonies and works devised to earn grace and remission of sins.
The Law isn't meant to teach us another Law. When someone feels the full weight of the Law, they might think: I have broken all of God's commandments; I deserve eternal punishment. If God forgives me, I will change and do the right thing from this point on. This understandable but completely misguided response to the Law has led to the creation of many rituals and efforts aimed at earning grace and forgiveness for sins.
The Law means to enlarge my sins, to make me small, so that I may be justified by faith in Christ. Faith is neither law nor word; but confidence in Christ "who is the end of the law." How so is Christ the end of the Law? Not in this way that He replaced the old Law with new laws. Nor is Christ the end of the Law in a way that makes Him a hard judge who has to be bribed by works as the papists teach. Christ is the end or finish of the Law to all who believe in Him. The Law can no longer accuse or condemn them.
The Law is meant to highlight my sins, to make me feel small, so that I can be justified by faith in Christ. Faith isn’t about law or words; it’s about trusting in Christ, "who is the end of the law." In what way is Christ the end of the Law? Not by replacing the old Law with new ones. And Christ isn’t the end of the Law in a way that makes Him a harsh judge who needs to be appeased with good deeds, as some believe. Christ is the end or fulfillment of the Law for everyone who believes in Him. The Law can no longer accuse or condemn them.
But what does the Law accomplish for those who have been justified by Christ? Paul answers this question next.
But what does the Law do for those who have been justified by Christ? Paul answers this question next.
VERSE 25. But after that faith is come, we are no longer under a schoolmaster.
VERSE 25. But now that faith has come, we are no longer under a tutor.
The Apostle declares that we are free from the Law. Christ fulfilled the Law for us. We may live in joy and safety under Christ. The trouble is, our flesh will not let us believe in Christ with all our heart. The fault lies not with Christ, but with us. Sin clings to us as long as we live and spoils our happiness in Christ. Hence, we are only partly free from the Law. "With the mind I myself serve the law of God; but with the flesh the law of sin." (Romans 7:25.)
The Apostle says that we are free from the Law. Christ completed the Law for us. We can live joyfully and safely under Christ. The problem is, our flesh makes it hard for us to fully believe in Christ. The issue isn't with Christ; it's with us. Sin sticks to us for as long as we live and ruins our happiness in Christ. So, we are only partially free from the Law. "With my mind, I serve the law of God; but with my flesh, I serve the law of sin." (Romans 7:25.)
As far as the conscience is concerned it may cheerfully ignore the Law. But because sin continues to dwell in the flesh, the Law waits around to molest our conscience. More and more, however, Christ increases our faith and in the measure in which our faith is increased, sin, Law, and flesh subside.
As far as our conscience goes, it can happily disregard the Law. But since sin still resides in our flesh, the Law lingers to disturb our conscience. However, Christ boosts our faith, and as our faith grows, sin, the Law, and the flesh start to fade away.
If anybody objects to the Gospel and the sacraments on the ground that Christ has taken away our sins once and for always, you will know what to answer. You will answer: Indeed, Christ has taken away my sins. But my flesh, the world, and the devil interfere with my faith. The little light of faith in my heart does not shine all over me at once. It is a gradual diffusion. In the meanwhile I console myself with the thought that eventually my flesh will be made perfect in the resurrection.
If anyone objects to the Gospel and the sacraments by saying that Christ has removed our sins once and for all, you will know how to respond. You'll say: Yes, Christ has removed my sins. But my body, the world, and the devil challenge my faith. The small spark of faith in my heart doesn’t illuminate everything at once; it spreads gradually. In the meantime, I comfort myself with the thought that eventually my body will be made perfect in the resurrection.
VERSE 26. For we are all the children of God by faith in Christ Jesus.
VERSE 26. For we are all children of God through faith in Christ Jesus.
Paul as a true apostle of faith always has the word "faith" on the tip of his tongue. By faith, says he, we are the children of God. The Law cannot beget children of God. It cannot regenerate us. It can only remind us of the old birth by which we were born into the kingdom of the devil. The best the Law can do for us is to prepare us for a new birth through faith in Christ Jesus. Faith in Christ regenerates us into the children of God. St. John bears witness to this in his Gospel: "As many as received him, to them gave he power to become the sons of God, even to them that believe on his name." (John 1:12.) What tongue of man or angel can adequately extol the mercy of God toward us miserable sinners in that He adopted us for His own children and fellow-heirs with His Son by the simple means of faith in Christ Jesus!
Paul, as a true apostle of faith, always keeps the word "faith" at the forefront of his mind. He says that by faith, we are the children of God. The Law cannot create children of God. It cannot give us new life. It can only remind us of our old nature from when we were born into the devil's kingdom. The best the Law can do for us is prepare us for a new birth through faith in Christ Jesus. Faith in Christ gives us new life as children of God. St. John confirms this in his Gospel: "As many as received him, to them he gave the power to become the sons of God, even to those who believe in his name." (John 1:12.) What words from man or angel can truly express the mercy of God toward us poor sinners, in that He adopted us as His own children and fellow-heirs with His Son, simply through faith in Christ Jesus!
VERSE 27. For as many of you as have been baptized into Christ have put on Christ.
VERSE 27. For all of you who have been baptized into Christ have taken on Christ.
To "put on Christ" may be understood in two ways, according to the Law and according to the Gospel. According to the Law as in Romans 13:14, "Put ye on the Lord Jesus Christ," which means to follow the example of Christ.
To "put on Christ" can be understood in two ways: according to the Law and according to the Gospel. According to the Law, as stated in Romans 13:14, "Put on the Lord Jesus Christ," which means to follow Christ's example.
To put on Christ according to the Gospel means to clothe oneself with the righteousness, wisdom, power, life, and Spirit of Christ. By nature we are clad in the garb of Adam. This garb Paul likes to call "the old man." Before we can become the children of God this old man must be put off, as Paul says, Ephesians 4:29. The garment of Adam must come off like soiled clothes. Of course, it is not as simple as changing one's clothes. But God makes it simple. He clothes us with the righteousness of Christ by means of Baptism, as the Apostle says in this verse: "As many of you as have been baptized into Christ have put on Christ." With this change of garments a new birth, a new life stirs in us. New affections toward God spring up in the heart. New determinations affect our will. All this is to put on Christ according to the Gospel. Needless to say, when we have put on the robe of the righteousness of Christ we must not forget to put on also the mantle of the imitation of Christ.
To put on Christ according to the Gospel means to put on the righteousness, wisdom, power, life, and Spirit of Christ. By nature, we are dressed in the clothes of Adam. Paul refers to this outfit as "the old man." Before we can become children of God, this old man must be taken off, as Paul says in Ephesians 4:29. The garment of Adam must be removed like dirty clothes. Of course, it’s not as simple as just changing clothes. But God makes it easy. He clothes us with the righteousness of Christ through Baptism, as the Apostle says in this verse: "As many of you as have been baptized into Christ have put on Christ." With this change of garments, a new birth and a new life awaken within us. New feelings toward God arise in our hearts. New intentions shape our will. All this is about putting on Christ according to the Gospel. Of course, when we have put on the robe of the righteousness of Christ, we must also remember to put on the mantle of imitating Christ.
VERSE 28. There is neither Jew nor Greek, there is neither bond nor free, there is neither male nor female; for ye are all one in Christ Jesus.
VERSE 28. There is no Jew or Greek, no slave or free, no male or female; for you are all one in Christ Jesus.
The list might be extended indefinitely: There is neither preacher nor hearer, neither teacher nor scholar, neither master nor servant, etc. In the matter of salvation, rank, learning, righteousness, influence count for nothing.
The list could go on forever: There’s no preacher or listener, no teacher or student, no master or servant, etc. When it comes to salvation, status, education, morality, and influence mean nothing.
With this statement Paul deals a death blow to the Law. When a person has put on Christ nothing else matters. Whether a person is a Jew, a punctilious and circumcised observer of the Law of Moses, or whether a person is a noble and wise Greek does not matter. Circumstances, personal worth, character, achievements have no bearing upon justification. Before God they count for nothing. What counts is that we put on Christ.
With this statement, Paul takes a strong stand against the Law. Once someone has embraced Christ, nothing else matters. It doesn’t matter if a person is a Jew, who strictly follows the Law of Moses, or a noble and wise Greek. Personal circumstances, worth, character, and achievements have no influence on justification. In God’s eyes, they mean nothing. What truly matters is that we embrace Christ.
Whether a servant performs his duties well; whether those who are in authority govern wisely; whether a man marries, provides for his family, and is an honest citizen; whether a woman is chaste, obedient to her husband, and a good mother: all these advantages do not qualify a person for salvation. These virtues are commendable, of course; but they do not count points for justification. All the best laws, ceremonies, religions, and deeds of the world cannot take away sin guilt, cannot dispatch death, cannot purchase life.
Whether a servant does his job well; whether those in charge govern wisely; whether a man gets married, supports his family, and is a good citizen; whether a woman is virtuous, obedient to her husband, and a good mother: none of these things earn a person salvation. These qualities are admirable, of course; but they don't contribute to justification. All the best laws, ceremonies, religions, and good deeds in the world can't remove guilt from sin, can't conquer death, and can't buy life.
There is much disparity among men in the world, but there is no such disparity before God. "For all have sinned, and come short of the glory of God." (Romans 3:23.) Let the Jews, let the Greeks, let the whole world keep silent in the presence of God. Those who are justified are justified by Christ. Without faith in Christ the Jew with his laws, the monk with his holy orders, the Greek with his wisdom, the servant with his obedience, shall perish forever.
There is a lot of inequality among people in the world, but there is no inequality before God. "For all have sinned and fall short of the glory of God." (Romans 3:23.) Let the Jews, let the Greeks, let the entire world be silent in the presence of God. Those who are justified are justified through Christ. Without faith in Christ, the Jew with his laws, the monk with his holy orders, the Greek with his wisdom, and the servant with his obedience will be lost forever.
VERSE 28. For ye are all one in Christ Jesus.
VERSE 28. For you are all one in Christ Jesus.
There is much imparity among men in the world. And it is a good thing. If the woman would change places with the man, if the son would change places with the father, the servant with the master, nothing but confusion would result. In Christ, however, all are equal. We all have one and the same Gospel, "one faith, one baptism, one God and Father of all," one Christ and Savior of all. The Christ of Peter, Paul, and all the saints is our Christ. Paul can always be depended on to add the conditional clause, "In Christ Jesus." If we lose sight of Christ, we lose out.
There is a lot of inequality among people in the world. And that's a good thing. If women swapped roles with men, if sons swapped roles with fathers, and servants swapped roles with masters, it would lead to nothing but chaos. In Christ, though, everyone is equal. We all share the same Gospel: "one faith, one baptism, one God and Father of all," one Christ and Savior for everyone. The Christ of Peter, Paul, and all the saints is our Christ. Paul always reminds us to add the phrase, "In Christ Jesus." If we lose sight of Christ, we miss out.
VERSE 29. And if ye be Christ's, then are ye Abraham's seed, and heirs according to the promise.
VERSE 29. And if you belong to Christ, then you are Abraham's descendants and heirs according to the promise.
"If ye be Christ's" means, if you believe in Christ. If you believe in Christ, then are you the children of Abraham indeed. Through our faith in Christ Abraham gains paternity over us and over the nations of the earth according to the promise: "In thy seed shall all the nations of the earth be blessed." Through faith we belong to Christ and Christ to us.
"If you are Christ's" means if you believe in Christ. If you believe in Christ, then you are indeed the children of Abraham. Through our faith in Christ, Abraham becomes our father and the father of all nations according to the promise: "In your seed shall all the nations of the earth be blessed." Through faith, we belong to Christ and Christ belongs to us.
CHAPTER 4
VERSE 1. Now I say, That the heir, as long as he is a child, differeth nothing from a servant, though he be Lord of all; VERSE 2. But is under tutors and governors until the time appointed of the father.
VERSE 1. I want to point out that an heir, while he’s still a child, is no different from a servant, even though he owns everything; VERSE 2. But he is under the care of guardians and managers until the time set by his father.
THE Apostle had apparently finished his discourse on justification when this illustration of the youthful heir occurred to him. He throws it in for good measure. He knows that plain people are sooner impressed by an apt illustration than by learned discussion.
THE Apostle had apparently finished his talk on justification when this example of the young heir came to mind. He adds it for emphasis. He knows that ordinary people are more likely to be moved by a fitting illustration than by a complicated argument.
"I want to give you another illustration from everyday life," he writes to the Galatians. "As long as an heir is under age he is treated very much like a servant. He is not permitted to order his own affairs. He is kept under constant surveillance. Such discipline is good for him, otherwise he would waste his inheritance in no time. This discipline, however, is not to last forever. It is to last only until 'the time appointed of the father.'"
"I want to give you another example from everyday life," he writes to the Galatians. "As long as an heir is underage, he is treated very much like a servant. He can't manage his own affairs. He is constantly monitored. This discipline is beneficial for him; otherwise, he would squander his inheritance in no time. However, this discipline isn’t meant to last forever. It will continue only until 'the time set by the father.'"
VERSE 3. Even so we, when we were children, were in bondage under the elements of the world.
VERSE 3. Even so, when we were kids, we were trapped under the rules of the world.
As children of the Law we were treated like servants and prisoners. We were oppressed and condemned by the Law. But the tyranny of the Law is not to last forever. It is to last only until "the time appointed of the father," until Christ came and redeemed us.
As kids of the Law, we were treated like servants and prisoners. We were oppressed and judged by the Law. But the burden of the Law isn't going to last forever. It's only meant to last until "the time appointed of the father," until Christ came and set us free.
VERSE 3. Under the elements of the world.
VERSE 3. Under the forces of the world.
By the elements of the world the Apostle does not understand the physical elements, as some have thought. In calling the Law "the elements of the world" Paul means to say that the Law is something material, mundane, earthly. It may restrain evil, but it does not deliver from sin. The Law does not justify; it does not bring a person to heaven. I do not obtain eternal life because I do not kill, commit adultery, steal, etc. Such mere outward decency does not constitute Christianity. The heathen observe the same restraints to avoid punishment or to secure the advantages of a good reputation. In the last analysis such restraint is simple hypocrisy. When the Law exercises its higher function it accuses and condemns the conscience. All these effects of the Law cannot be called divine or heavenly. These effects are elements of the world.
By the elements of the world, the Apostle doesn't mean physical elements, as some have thought. When Paul refers to the Law as "the elements of the world," he means that the Law is something material, mundane, and earthly. It may limit evil, but it doesn't free us from sin. The Law doesn't justify; it doesn't lead a person to heaven. I don't gain eternal life just because I don't kill, commit adultery, steal, etc. Such basic outward decency doesn't make someone a Christian. Non-believers follow the same rules to avoid punishment or to maintain a good reputation. Ultimately, that kind of restraint is just hypocrisy. When the Law fulfills its true role, it accuses and condemns the conscience. All these effects of the Law can't be called divine or heavenly. They're elements of the world.
In calling the Law the elements of the world Paul refers to the whole Law, principally to the ceremonial law which dealt with external matters, as meat, drink, dress, places, times, feasts, cleansings, sacrifices, etc. These are mundane matters which cannot save the sinner. Ceremonial laws are like the statutes of governments dealing with purely civil matters, as commerce, inheritance, etc. As for the pope's church laws forbidding marriage and meats, Paul calls them elsewhere the doctrines of devils. You would not call such laws elements of heaven.
In referring to the Law as the elements of the world, Paul is talking about the entire Law, particularly the ceremonial law that focused on external matters like food, drink, clothing, places, times, festivals, cleansing rituals, sacrifices, and so on. These are everyday issues that can't save a sinner. Ceremonial laws are similar to government regulations that deal with purely civil matters, such as trade and inheritance. Regarding the pope's church laws that prohibit marriage and certain foods, Paul refers to them elsewhere as teachings from demons. You wouldn’t consider these kinds of laws to be elements of heaven.
The Law of Moses deals with mundane matters. It holds the mirror to the evil which is in the world. By revealing the evil that is in us it creates a longing in the heart for the better things of God. The Law forces us into the arms of Christ, "who is the end of the law for righteousness to every one that believeth." (Romans 1:4.) Christ relieves the conscience of the Law. In so far as the Law impels us to Christ it renders excellent service.
The Law of Moses addresses everyday issues. It reflects the evil present in the world. By exposing the evil within us, it creates a desire in our hearts for the greater things of God. The Law drives us to Christ, "who is the end of the law for righteousness to everyone who believes." (Romans 1:4.) Christ frees our consciences from the burden of the Law. In that sense, the Law serves us well by leading us to Christ.
I do not mean to give the impression that the Law should be despised. Neither does Paul intend to leave that impression. The Law ought to be honored. But when it is a matter of justification before God, Paul had to speak disparagingly of the Law, because the Law has nothing to do with justification. If it thrusts its nose into the business of justification we must talk harshly to the Law to keep it in its place. The conscience ought not to be on speaking terms with the Law. The conscience ought to know only Christ. To say this is easy, but in times of trial, when the conscience writhes in the presence of God, it is not so easy to do. As such times we are to believe in Christ as if there were no Law or sin anywhere, but only Christ. We ought to say to the Law: "Mister Law, I do not get you. You stutter so much. I don't think that you have anything to say to me."
I don't mean to suggest that the Law should be disrespected. Paul doesn't want to give that impression either. The Law should be respected. But when it comes to being justified before God, Paul had to speak critically about the Law because it has no role in justification. If it tries to interfere in the matter of justification, we must address the Law sternly to keep it in its place. The conscience shouldn't be on friendly terms with the Law. The conscience should recognize only Christ. Saying this is easy, but during tough times, when the conscience struggles before God, it’s not so simple. In those moments, we need to have faith in Christ as if the Law or sin didn’t exist—just Christ. We ought to tell the Law: "Hey Law, I don’t understand you. You’re so confusing. I don't think you have anything important to say to me."
When it is not a question of salvation or justification with us, we are to think highly of the Law and call it "holy, just, and good." (Romans 7:12) The Law is of no comfort to a stricken conscience. Therefore it should not be allowed to rule in our conscience, particularly in view of the fact that Christ paid so great a price to deliver the conscience from the tyranny of the Law. Let us understand that the Law and Christ are impossible bedfellows. The Law must leave the bed of the conscience, which is so narrow that it cannot hold two, as Isaiah says, chapter 28, verse 20.
When it's not about salvation or justification for us, we should think highly of the Law and call it "holy, just, and good." (Romans 7:12) The Law doesn’t bring comfort to a troubled conscience. So, it shouldn't be allowed to control our conscience, especially since Christ paid such a high price to free it from the harshness of the Law. We need to realize that the Law and Christ cannot coexist. The Law must leave the conscience’s narrow space, which can’t accommodate both, as Isaiah says, chapter 28, verse 20.
Only Paul among the apostles calls the Law "the elements of the world, weak and beggarly elements, the strength of sin, the letter that killeth," etc. The other apostles do not speak so slightingly of the Law. Those who want to be first-class scholars in the school of Christ want to pick up the language of Paul. Christ called him a chosen vessel and equipped with a facility of expression far above that of the other apostles, that he as the chosen vessel should establish the doctrine of justification in clear-cut words.
Only Paul among the apostles refers to the Law as "the elements of the world, weak and worthless elements, the strength of sin, the letter that kills," etc. The other apostles do not talk about the Law in such a dismissive way. Those who aspire to be top scholars in the school of Christ want to adopt Paul's language. Christ called him a chosen vessel and gave him an ability to express himself that was much greater than that of the other apostles, so that he, as the chosen vessel, could clearly establish the doctrine of justification.
VERSES 4, 5. But when the fullness of the time was come, God sent forth his Son, made of a woman, made under the law, to redeem them that were under the law.
VERSES 4, 5. But when the right time came, God sent his Son, born of a woman, born under the law, to free those who were under the law.
"The fullness of the time" means when the time of the Law was fulfilled and Christ was revealed. Note how Paul explains Christ. "Christ," says he, "is the Son of God and the son of a woman. He submitted Himself under the Law to redeem us who were under the Law." In these words the Apostle explains the person and office of Christ. His person is divine and human. "God sent forth His Son, made of a woman." Christ therefore is true God and true man. Christ's office the Apostle describes in the words: "Made under the law, to redeem them that were under the law."
"The fullness of time" refers to when the Law was fulfilled and Christ was revealed. Notice how Paul describes Christ. "Christ," he says, "is the Son of God and the son of a woman. He placed Himself under the Law to redeem us who were under the Law." In these words, the Apostle clarifies the person and role of Christ. His person is both divine and human. "God sent His Son, born of a woman." Therefore, Christ is truly God and truly man. The Apostle describes Christ's role with the words: "Born under the law, to redeem those who were under the law."
Paul calls the Virgin Mary a woman. This has been frequently deplored even by some of the ancient fathers who felt that Paul should have written "virgin" instead of woman. But Paul is now treating of faith and Christian righteousness, of the person and office of Christ, not of the virginity of Mary. The inestimable mercy of God is sufficiently set forth by the fact that His Son was born of a woman. The more general term "woman" indicates that Christ was born a true man. Paul does not say that Christ was born of man and woman, but only of woman. That he has a virgin in mind is obvious.
Paul refers to the Virgin Mary as a woman. This has often been criticized, even by some early church fathers, who believed Paul should have written "virgin" instead of woman. However, Paul is discussing faith and Christian righteousness, as well as the person and role of Christ, rather than focusing on Mary’s virginity. The incredible mercy of God is clearly demonstrated by the fact that His Son was born of a woman. The broader term "woman" emphasizes that Christ was born as a true man. Paul doesn't say that Christ was born of a man and a woman, but only of a woman. It's clear that he has a virgin in mind.
This passage furthermore declares that Christ's purpose in coming was the abolition of the Law, not with the intention of laying down new laws, but "to redeem them that were under the law." Christ himself declared: "I judge no man." (John 8:15.) Again, "I came not to judge the world, but to save the world." (John 12:47.) In other words: "I came not to bring more laws, or to judge men according to the existing Law. I have a higher and better office. I came to judge and to condemn the Law, so that it may no more judge and condemn the world."
This passage also states that Christ's purpose in coming was to end the Law, not to create new laws, but "to redeem those who were under the law." Christ himself said: "I do not judge anyone." (John 8:15.) Again, "I did not come to judge the world, but to save the world." (John 12:47.) In other words: "I did not come to impose more laws or to judge people based on the existing Law. I have a greater and more important role. I came to critique and condemn the Law, so that it no longer judges and condemns the world."
How did Christ manage to redeem us? "He was made under the law." When Christ came He found us all in prison. What did He do about it? Although He was the Lord of the Law, He voluntarily placed Himself under the Law and permitted it to exercise dominion over Him, indeed to accuse and to condemn Him. When the Law takes us into judgment it has a perfect right to do so. "For we are by nature the children of wrath, even as others." (Eph. 2:3.) Christ, however, "did no sin, neither was guile found in his mouth." (I Pet. 2:22.) Hence the Law had no jurisdiction over Him. Yet the Law treated this innocent, just, and blessed Lamb of God as cruelly as it treated us. It accused Him of blasphemy and treason. It made Him guilty of the sins of the whole world. It overwhelmed him with such anguish of soul that His sweat was as blood. The Law condemned Him to the shameful death on the Cross.
How did Christ manage to redeem us? "He was made under the law." When Christ arrived, He found us all trapped. What did He do about it? Even though He was the Lord of the Law, He willingly put Himself under the Law and allowed it to have power over Him, even to accuse and condemn Him. When the Law judges us, it has every right to do so. "For we are by nature the children of wrath, even as others." (Eph. 2:3.) Christ, however, "did no sin, neither was guile found in his mouth." (I Pet. 2:22.) Therefore, the Law had no authority over Him. Yet the Law treated this innocent, just, and blessed Lamb of God as harshly as it treated us. It accused Him of blasphemy and treason. It made Him responsible for the sins of the entire world. It burdened Him with such deep anguish that His sweat was like blood. The Law condemned Him to the disgraceful death on the Cross.
It is truly amazing that the Law had the effrontery to turn upon its divine Author, and that without a show of right. For its insolence the Law in turn was arraigned before the judgment seat of God and condemned. Christ might have overcome the Law by an exercise of His omnipotent authority over the Law. Instead, He humbled Himself under the Law for and together with them that were under the Law. He gave the Law license to accuse and condemn Him. His present mastery over the Law was obtained by virtue of His Sonship and His substitutionary victory.
It's truly astounding that the Law had the audacity to turn against its divine Creator, and without any justification. Because of its arrogance, the Law was summoned before God's judgment and found guilty. Christ could have easily triumphed over the Law using His all-powerful authority. Instead, He chose to humble Himself under the Law for those who were bound by it. He allowed the Law to accuse and condemn Him. His current authority over the Law comes from His status as the Son and His victory through substitution.
Thus Christ banished the Law from the conscience. It dare no longer banish us from God. For that matter,—the Law continues to reveal sin. It still raises its voice in condemnation. But the conscience finds quick relief in the words of the Apostle: "Christ has redeemed us from the law." The conscience can now hold its head high and say to the Law: "You are not so holy yourself. You crucified the Son of God. That was an awful thing for you to do. You have lost your influence forever."
Thus, Christ removed the Law from our conscience. It can no longer separate us from God. In fact, the Law still shows us what sin is. It still speaks out in condemnation. But the conscience quickly finds relief in the Apostle's words: "Christ has redeemed us from the law." The conscience can now stand tall and say to the Law: "You're not so holy yourself. You crucified the Son of God. That was a terrible thing for you to do. You've lost your power forever."
The words, "Christ was made under the law," are worth all the attention we can bestow on them. They declare that the Son of God did not only fulfill one or two easy requirements of the Law, but that He endured all the tortures of the Law. The Law brought all its fright to bear upon Christ until He experienced anguish and terror such as nobody else ever experienced. His bloody sweat. His need of angelic comfort, His tremulous prayer in the garden, His lamentation on the Cross, "My God, my God, why hast thou forsaken me?" bear eloquent witness to the sting of the Law. He suffered "to redeem them that were under the law."
The phrase, "Christ was made under the law," deserves all the attention we can give it. It shows that the Son of God didn’t just meet a few easy demands of the Law; He faced all its hardships. The Law unleashed all its terror on Christ until He felt pain and fear like no one else ever has. His bloody sweat, His need for angelic support, His trembling prayer in the garden, and His cry on the Cross, "My God, my God, why have you forsaken me?" all powerfully highlight the burden of the Law. He suffered "to redeem them that were under the law."
The Roman conception of Christ as a mere lawgiver more stringent than Moses, is quite contrary to Paul's teaching. Christ, according to Paul, was not an agent of the Law but a patient of the Law. He was not a law-giver, but a law-taker.
The Roman view of Christ as just a lawgiver who was stricter than Moses is completely different from what Paul taught. According to Paul, Christ wasn’t an enforcer of the Law but a subject to it. He wasn’t a law-giver, but someone who followed the law.
True enough, Christ also taught and expounded the Law. But it was incidental. It was a sideline with Him. He did not come into the world for the purpose of teaching the Law, as little as it was the purpose of His coming to perform miracles. Teaching the Law and performing miracles did not constitute His unique mission to the world. The prophets also taught the Law and performed miracles. In fact, according to the promise of Christ, the apostles performed greater miracles than Christ Himself. (John 14:12.) The true purpose of Christ's coming was the abolition of the Law, of sin, and of death.
True, Christ taught and explained the Law. But it was secondary for Him. He didn’t come into the world just to teach the Law, any more than He came to perform miracles. Teaching the Law and performing miracles weren't His main mission in the world. The prophets taught the Law and performed miracles too. In fact, according to Christ's promise, the apostles worked even greater miracles than He did. (John 14:12.) The true purpose of Christ's coming was to end the Law, sin, and death.
If we think of Christ as Paul here depicts Him, we shall never go wrong. We shall never be in danger of misconstruing the meaning of the Law. We shall understand that the Law does not justify. We shall understand why a Christian observes laws: For the peace of the world, out of gratitude to God, and for a good example that others may be attracted to the Gospel.
If we view Christ the way Paul describes Him here, we won't make mistakes. We won't risk misinterpreting the meaning of the Law. We'll realize that the Law doesn't justify. We'll understand why a Christian follows laws: for the peace of the world, out of gratitude to God, and to set a good example that others may be drawn to the Gospel.
VERSE 5. That we might receive the adoption of sons.
VERSE 5. So that we could be adopted as children.
Paul still has for his text Genesis 22:18, "In thy seed shall all the nations of the earth be blessed." In the course of his Epistle he calls this promise of the blessing righteousness, life, deliverance from the Law, the testament, etc. Now he also calls the promise of blessing "the adoption of sons," the inheritance of everlasting life.
Paul still refers to Genesis 22:18, "In your offspring shall all the nations of the earth be blessed." Throughout his Epistle, he describes this promise of blessing as righteousness, life, freedom from the Law, the testament, and so on. He also describes the promise of blessing as "the adoption of sons," which is the inheritance of eternal life.
What ever induced God to adopt us for His children and heirs? What claim can men who are subservient to sin, subject to the curse of the Law, and worthy of everlasting death, have on God and eternal life? That God adopted us is due to the merit of Jesus Christ, the Son of God, who humbled Himself under the Law and redeemed us law-ridden sinners.
What made God decide to adopt us as His children and heirs? What right do people who are enslaved by sin, under the curse of the Law, and deserving of eternal death have to claim anything from God or eternal life? The reason God adopted us is because of the merit of Jesus Christ, the Son of God, who humbled Himself under the Law and redeemed us, sinners burdened by sin.
VERSE 6. And because ye are sons, God hath sent forth the Spirit of his Son into your hearts.
VERSE 6. And because you are children of God, He has sent the Spirit of His Son into your hearts.
In the early Church the Holy Spirit was sent forth in visible form. He descended upon Christ in the form of a dove (Matt. 3:16), and in the likeness of fire upon the apostles and other believers. (Acts 2:3.) This visible outpouring of the Holy Spirit was necessary to the establishment of the early Church, as were also the miracles that accompanied the gift of the Holy Ghost. Paul explained the purpose of these miraculous gifts of the Spirit in I Corinthians 14:22, "Tongues are for a sign, not to them that believe, but to them that believe not." Once the Church had been established and properly advertised by these miracles, the visible appearance of the Holy Ghost ceased.
In the early Church, the Holy Spirit was sent in visible form. He came down on Christ as a dove (Matt. 3:16) and appeared as fire upon the apostles and other believers (Acts 2:3). This visible outpouring of the Holy Spirit was essential for the establishment of the early Church, just like the miracles that came with the gift of the Holy Spirit. Paul explained the purpose of these miraculous gifts in I Corinthians 14:22, "Tongues are for a sign, not to those who believe, but to those who do not believe." Once the Church was established and effectively promoted through these miracles, the visible appearance of the Holy Spirit came to an end.
Next, the Holy Ghost is sent forth into the hearts of the believers, as here stated, "God sent the Spirit of his Son into your hearts." This sending is accomplished by the preaching of the Gospel through which the Holy Spirit inspires us with fervor and light, with new judgment, new desires, and new motives. This happy innovation is not a derivative of reason or personal development, but solely the gift and operation of the Holy Ghost.
Next, the Holy Spirit is sent into the hearts of believers, as stated here, "God sent the Spirit of his Son into your hearts." This sending happens through the preaching of the Gospel, which inspires us with passion and understanding, along with new perspectives, desires, and motivations. This wonderful change doesn’t come from human reasoning or personal growth, but is entirely the gift and action of the Holy Spirit.
This renewal by the Holy Spirit may not be conspicuous to the world, but it is patent to us by our better judgment, our improved speech, and our unashamed confession of Christ. Formerly we did not confess Christ to be our only merit, as we do now in the light of the Gospel. Why, then, should we feel bad if the world looks upon us as ravagers of religion and insurgents against constituted authority? We confess Christ and our conscience approves of it. Then, too, we live in the fear of God. If we sin, we sin not on purpose, but unwittingly, and we are sorry for it. Sin sticks in our flesh, and the flesh gets us into sin even after we have been imbued by the Holy Ghost. Outwardly there is no great difference between a Christian and any honest man. The activities of a Christian are not sensational. He performs his duty according to his vocation. He takes good care of his family, and is kind and helpful to others. Such homely, everyday performances are not much admired. But the setting-up exercises of the monks draw great applause. Holy works, you know. Only the acts of a Christian are truly good and acceptable to God, because they are done in faith, with a cheerful heart, out of gratitude to Christ.
This renewal by the Holy Spirit may not be obvious to the world, but it's clear to us through our better judgment, improved speech, and our open confession of Christ. In the past, we didn't acknowledge Christ as our only merit like we do now with the clarity of the Gospel. So, why should we be troubled if the world sees us as destroyers of religion and rebels against authority? We confess Christ, and our conscience supports that. Plus, we live in the fear of God. If we sin, it's not on purpose, but unknowingly, and we regret it. Sin is part of our human nature, and our human urges lead us into sin even after being filled with the Holy Spirit. Outwardly, there's not much difference between a Christian and any decent person. The actions of a Christian aren't flashy. They carry out their responsibilities according to their job. They take care of their family and are kind and helpful to others. Such simple, everyday actions often go unappreciated. But the elaborate rituals of monks receive lots of praise. These are considered holy works, you know. Only the actions of a Christian are truly good and pleasing to God because they are done in faith, with a joyful heart, out of gratitude to Christ.
We ought to have no misgivings about whether the Holy Ghost dwells in us. We are "the temple of the Holy Ghost." (I Cor. 3:16.) When we have a love for the Word of God, and gladly hear, talk, write, and think of Christ, we are to know that this inclination toward Christ is the gift and work of the Holy Ghost. Where you come across contempt for the Word of God, there is the devil. We meet with such contempt for the Word of God mostly among the common people. They act as though the Word of God does not concern them. Wherever you find a love for the Word, thank God for the Holy Spirit who infuses this love into the hearts of men. We never come by this love naturally, neither can it be enforced by laws. It is the gift of the Holy Spirit.
We should have no doubts about whether the Holy Ghost is within us. We are "the temple of the Holy Ghost." (I Cor. 3:16.) When we love the Word of God and eagerly listen to, discuss, write about, and think of Christ, we should recognize that this desire for Christ is the gift and work of the Holy Ghost. Where you find disdain for the Word of God, the devil is present. We often encounter this disdain for the Word of God among ordinary people. They act as if the Word of God doesn't matter to them. Whenever you notice a love for the Word, thank God for the Holy Spirit, who instills this love in people's hearts. We don't develop this love naturally, and it can't be forced by laws. It is a gift from the Holy Spirit.
The Roman theologians teach that no man can know for a certainty whether he stands in the favor of God or not. This teaching forms one of the chief articles of their faith. With this teaching they tormented men's consciences, excommunicated Christ from the Church, and limited the operations of the Holy Ghost.
The Roman theologians believe that no one can be sure if they are in God's favor or not. This belief is one of the main tenets of their faith. With this belief, they troubled people's consciences, pushed Christ out of the Church, and restricted the work of the Holy Spirit.
St. Augustine observed that "every man is certain of his faith, if he has faith." This the Romanists deny. "God forbid," they exclaim piously, "that I should ever be so arrogant as to think that I stand in grace, that I am holy, or that I have the Holy Ghost." We ought to feel sure that we stand in the grace of God, not in view of our own worthiness, but through the good services of Christ. As certain as we are that Christ pleases God, so sure ought we to be that we also please God, because Christ is in us. And although we daily offend God by our sins, yet as often as we sin, God's mercy bends over us. Therefore sin cannot get us to doubt the grace of God. Our certainty is of Christ, that mighty Hero who overcame the Law, sin, death, and all evils. So long as He sits at the right hand of God to intercede for us, we have nothing to fear from the anger of God.
St. Augustine noted that "every person is sure of their faith if they have faith." The Roman Catholics reject this. "God forbid," they say devoutly, "that I should ever be so arrogant as to believe that I am in grace, that I am holy, or that I have the Holy Spirit." We should be confident that we are in God's grace, not because of our own worthiness, but through the good works of Christ. Just as we are certain that Christ pleases God, we should also be sure that we please God because Christ is in us. And even though we offend God with our sins every day, each time we sin, God's mercy is there for us. Therefore, our sins cannot make us doubt God's grace. Our certainty comes from Christ, that mighty Hero who conquered the Law, sin, death, and all evil. As long as He is seated at the right hand of God to intercede for us, we have nothing to fear from God's anger.
This inner assurance of the grace of God is accompanied by outward indications such as gladly to hear, preach, praise, and to confess Christ, to do one's duty in the station in which God has placed us, to aid the needy, and to comfort the sorrowing. These are the affidavits of the Holy Spirit testifying to our favorable standing with God.
This inner confidence in God's grace comes with visible signs like happily listening to, sharing, praising, and confessing Christ, fulfilling our responsibilities in the position God has given us, helping those in need, and comforting the grieving. These are the testimonies of the Holy Spirit confirming our good standing with God.
If we could be fully persuaded that we are in the good grace of God, that our sins are forgiven, that we have the Spirit of Christ, that we are the beloved children of God, we would be ever so happy and grateful to God. But because we often feel fear and doubt we cannot come to that happy certainty.
If we could truly believe that we are in God's good favor, that our sins are forgiven, that we have the Spirit of Christ, and that we are God's beloved children, we would be incredibly happy and thankful to God. However, because we often feel fear and doubt, we can't reach that joyful certainty.
Train your conscience to believe that God approves of you. Fight it out with doubt. Gain assurance through the Word of God. Say: "I am all right with God. I have the Holy Ghost. Christ, in whom I do believe, makes me worthy. I gladly hear, read, sing, and write of Him. I would like nothing better than that Christ's Gospel be known throughout the world and that many, many be brought to faith in Him."
Train your conscience to trust that God accepts you. Struggle with your doubts. Find confidence through the Word of God. Say: "I'm good with God. I have the Holy Spirit. Christ, whom I believe in, makes me worthy. I enjoy hearing, reading, singing, and writing about Him. I can't think of anything better than for Christ's Gospel to be known around the world and for many people to come to faith in Him."
VERSE 6. Crying, Abba, Father.
VERSE 6. Crying, Dad, Father.
Paul might have written, "God sent forth the Spirit of his Son into your hearts, calling Abba, Father." Instead, he wrote, "Crying, Abba, Father." In the eighth chapter of the Epistle to the Romans the Apostle describes this crying of the Spirit as "groanings which cannot be uttered." He writes in the 26th verse: "Likewise the Spirit also helpeth our infirmities: for we know not what we should pray for as we ought: but the Spirit itself maketh intercession for us with groanings which cannot be uttered."
Paul might have written, "God sent the Spirit of his Son into your hearts, calling Abba, Father." Instead, he wrote, "Crying, Abba, Father." In the eighth chapter of the Epistle to the Romans, the Apostle describes this crying of the Spirit as "groanings that can't be expressed." He writes in the 26th verse: "In the same way, the Spirit helps us in our weaknesses; we don't know what we should pray for, but the Spirit himself intercedes for us with groanings that can't be expressed."
The fact that the Spirit of Christ in our hearts cries unto God and makes intercession for us with groanings should reassure us greatly. However, there are many factors that prevent such full reassurance on our part. We are born in sin. To doubt the good will of God is an inborn suspicion of God with all of us. Besides, the devil, our adversary, goeth about seeking to devour us by roaring: "God is angry at you and is going to destroy you forever." In all these difficulties we have only one support, the Gospel of Christ. To hold on to it, that is the trick. Christ cannot be perceived with the senses. We cannot see Him. The heart does not feel His helpful presence. Especially in times of trials a Christian feels the power of sin, the infirmity of his flesh, the goading darts of the devil, the agues of death, the scowl and judgment of God. All these things cry out against us. The Law scolds us, sin screams at us, death thunders at us, the devil roars at us. In the midst of the clamor the Spirit of Christ cries in our hearts: "Abba, Father." And this little cry of the Spirit transcends the hullabaloo of the Law, sin, death, and the devil, and finds a hearing with God.
The fact that the Spirit of Christ in our hearts cries out to God and intercedes for us with deep groans should bring us great comfort. However, there are many things that prevent us from feeling fully reassured. We are born into sin. Doubting God's goodwill is a common suspicion shared by all of us. Plus, the devil, our enemy, prowls around trying to devour us, roaring, "God is angry with you and is going to destroy you forever." In the face of all these challenges, we have just one source of support—the Gospel of Christ. Holding onto it is the key. Christ cannot be sensed. We can't see Him. Our hearts don’t feel His helpful presence. Especially in difficult times, a Christian feels the weight of sin, the weakness of their body, the sting of the devil, the pangs of death, and the frown and judgment of God. All of these things seem to come against us. The Law criticizes us, sin screams at us, death roars at us, and the devil bellows at us. In the midst of this noise, the Spirit of Christ cries out in our hearts: "Abba, Father." And this small cry of the Spirit rises above the chaos of the Law, sin, death, and the devil, and reaches God's ears.
The Spirit cries in us because of our weakness. Because of our infirmity the Holy Ghost is sent forth into our hearts to pray for us according to the will of God and to assure us of the grace of God.
The Spirit cries out within us due to our weaknesses. Because of our frailty, the Holy Spirit is sent into our hearts to pray for us according to God's will and to reassure us of God's grace.
Let the Law, sin, and the devil cry out against us until their outcry fills heaven and earth. The Spirit of God outcries them all. Our feeble groans, "Abba, Father," will be heard of God sooner than the combined racket of hell, sin, and the Law.
Let the Law, sin, and the devil shout against us until their noise fills heaven and earth. The Spirit of God overpowers them all. Our weak cries of "Abba, Father" will reach God quicker than the combined uproar of hell, sin, and the Law.
We do not think of our groanings as a crying. It is so faint we do not know we are groaning. "But he," says Paul, "that searcheth the hearts knoweth what is the mind of the Spirit." (Romans 8:27.) To this Searcher of hearts our feeble groaning, as it seems to us, is a loud shout for help in comparison with which the howls of hell, the din of the devil, the yells of the Law, the shouts of sin are like so many whispers.
We don’t see our groans as cries. They are so subtle that we don’t even realize we’re groaning. "But he," says Paul, "who searches the hearts knows what is the mind of the Spirit." (Romans 8:27.) To this Searcher of hearts, our weak groaning, as it feels to us, is a loud call for help, overshadowing the howls of hell, the noise of the devil, the screams of the Law, and the shouts of sin, which all sound like mere whispers.
In the fourteenth chapter of Exodus the Lord addresses Moses at the Red Sea: "Wherefore criest thou unto me?" Moses had not cried unto the Lord. He trembled so he could hardly talk. His faith was at low ebb. He saw the people of Israel wedged between the Sea and the approaching armies of Pharaoh. How were they to escape? Moses did not know what to say. How then could God say that Moses was crying to Him? God heard the groaning heart of Moses and the groans to Him sounded like loud shouts for help. God is quick to catch the sigh of the heart.
In the fourteenth chapter of Exodus, the Lord speaks to Moses at the Red Sea: "Why are you crying out to me?" Moses hadn't actually cried out to the Lord. He was trembling so much that he could hardly speak. His faith was weak. He saw the people of Israel trapped between the Sea and the advancing armies of Pharaoh. How could they escape? Moses didn't know what to say. So how could God say that Moses was crying out to Him? God heard the silent despair of Moses, and to Him, those silent cries sounded like loud shouts for help. God is quick to notice the sighs of the heart.
Some have claimed that the saints are without infirmities. But Paul says: "The Spirit helpeth our infirmities, and maketh intercession for us with groanings which cannot be uttered." We need the help of the Holy Spirit because we are weak and infirm. And the Holy Spirit never disappoints us. Confronted by the armies of Pharaoh, retreat cut off by the waters of the Red Sea, Moses was in a bad spot. He felt himself to blame. The devil accused him: "These people will all perish, for they cannot escape. And you are to blame because you led the people out of Egypt. You started all this." And then the people started in on Moses. "Because there were no graves in Egypt, hast thou taken us away to die in the wilderness? For it had been better for us to serve the Egyptians, than that we should die in the wilderness." (Ex. 14:11, 12.) But the Holy Ghost was in Moses and made intercession for him with unutterable groanings, sighings unto the Lord: "O Lord, at Thy commandment have I led forth this people. So help me now."
Some have said that the saints are free from weaknesses. But Paul says: "The Spirit helps us in our weaknesses and intercedes for us with groans that words cannot express." We need the help of the Holy Spirit because we are weak. And the Holy Spirit never lets us down. Faced with the armies of Pharaoh and blocked by the waters of the Red Sea, Moses found himself in a tough situation. He felt guilty. The devil accused him: "These people are doomed; they can’t escape. And it’s your fault because you led them out of Egypt. You started this mess." Then the people turned on Moses: "Is it because there were no graves in Egypt that you brought us out here to die in the wilderness? It would have been better for us to serve the Egyptians than to die in the wilderness." (Ex. 14:11, 12.) But the Holy Spirit was in Moses and interceded for him with unutterable groans, sighing to the Lord: "O Lord, I led this people at Your command. Please help me now."
The Spirit intercedes for us not in many words or long prayers, but with groanings, with little sounds like "Abba." Small as this word is, it says ever so much. It says: "My Father, I am in great trouble and you seem so far away. But I know I am your child, because you are my Father for Christ's sake. I am loved by you because of the Beloved." This one little word "Abba" surpasses the eloquence of a Demosthenes and a Cicero.
The Spirit speaks up for us not with long speeches or elaborate prayers, but with deep sighs, with simple sounds like "Abba." Although this word is small, it carries a lot of meaning. It expresses: "My Father, I'm in a lot of trouble and you feel so distant. But I know I’m your child because of Christ. I am loved by you through the Beloved." This tiny word "Abba" is more powerful than anything a great orator like Demosthenes or Cicero could say.
I have spent much time on this verse in order to combat the cruel teaching of the Roman church, that a person ought to be kept in a state of uncertainty concerning his status with God. The monasteries recruit the youth on the plea that their "holy" orders will assuredly recruit them for heaven. But once inside the monastery the recruits are told to doubt the promises of God.
I have spent a lot of time on this verse to challenge the harsh teaching of the Roman church, which says that a person should remain unsure about their standing with God. The monasteries attract young people with the claim that their "holy" orders will definitely lead them to heaven. But once they’re in the monastery, the newcomers are told to question God's promises.
In support of their error the papists quote the saying of Solomon: "The righteous, and the wise, and their works, are in the hand of God: no man knoweth either love or hatred by all that is before them." (Eccles. 9:1.) They take this hatred to mean the wrath of God to come. Others take it to mean God's present anger. None of them seem to understand this passage from Solomon. On every page the Scriptures urge us to believe that God is merciful, loving, and patient; that He is faithful and true, and that He keeps His promises. All the promises of God were fulfilled in the gift of His only-begotten Son, that "whosoever believeth in him should not perish, but have everlasting life." The Gospel is reassurance for sinners. Yet this one saying from Solomon, misinterpreted at that, is made to count for more than all the many promises of all the Scriptures.
To back up their mistake, the Catholics refer to Solomon's saying: "The righteous, the wise, and their deeds are in the hand of God: no one knows whether love or hatred awaits them." (Eccles. 9:1.) They interpret this hatred as God's future wrath. Others see it as God's current anger. None of them seem to grasp what Solomon meant. Throughout the Scriptures, we are encouraged to believe that God is merciful, loving, and patient; that He is faithful and true, and that He keeps His promises. All of God's promises were fulfilled in the gift of His only Son, so that "whoever believes in Him shall not perish but have eternal life." The Gospel offers hope for sinners. Yet, this single saying from Solomon, misinterpreted as it is, is given more weight than all the countless promises found throughout the Scriptures.
If our opponents are so uncertain about their status with God, and even go so far as to say that the conscience ought to be kept in a state of doubt, why is it that they persecute us as vile heretics? When it comes to persecuting us they do not seem to be in doubt and uncertainty one minute.
If our opponents are so unsure about their standing with God, and even claim that the conscience should remain in doubt, why do they treat us like terrible heretics? When it comes to persecuting us, they don’t seem to have any doubt or uncertainty at all.
Let us not fail to thank God for delivering us from the doctrine of doubt. The Gospel commands us to look away from our own good works to the promises of God in Christ, the Mediator. The pope commands us to look away from the promises of God in Christ to our own merit. No wonder they are the eternal prey of doubt and despair. We depend upon God for salvation. No wonder that our doctrine is certified, because it does not rest in our own strength, our own conscience, our own feelings, our own person, our own works. It is built on a better foundation. It is built on the promises and truth of God.
Let's not forget to thank God for freeing us from the mindset of doubt. The Gospel tells us to focus on God’s promises in Christ, our Mediator, rather than our own good deeds. The pope, on the other hand, tells us to turn our attention from God’s promises in Christ to our own merits. It's no surprise they constantly struggle with doubt and despair. We rely on God for our salvation. It's understandable that our belief is secure because it doesn’t depend on our own strength, conscience, feelings, persona, or actions. It’s founded on something much stronger: God's promises and truth.
Besides, the passage from Solomon does not treat of the hatred and love of God towards men. It merely rebukes the ingratitude of men. The more deserving a person is, the less he is appreciated. Often those who should be his best friends, are his worst enemies. Those who least deserve the praise of the world, get most. David was a holy man and a good king. Nevertheless he was chased from his own country. The prophets, Christ, the apostles, were slain. Solomon in this passage does not speak of the love and hatred of God, but of love and hatred among men. As though Solomon wanted to say: "There are many good and wise men whom God uses for the advancement of mankind. Seldom, if ever, are their efforts crowned with gratitude. They are usually repaid with hatred and ingratitude."
Besides, the passage from Solomon doesn't address God's love and hatred towards people. It simply criticizes human ingratitude. The more deserving someone is, the less they are appreciated. Often, those who should be their closest friends turn out to be their worst enemies. Those who least deserve recognition from society receive the most praise. David was a righteous man and a good king. Still, he was driven out of his own country. The prophets, Christ, and the apostles were all killed. In this passage, Solomon doesn't discuss God's love and hatred, but rather the love and hatred among people. It's as if Solomon wants to convey: "There are many good and wise individuals that God uses for the betterment of humanity. Rarely, if ever, are their contributions met with gratitude. They are mostly met with animosity and ingratitude."
We are being treated that way. We thought we would find favor with men for bringing them the Gospel of peace, life, and eternal salvation. Instead of favor, we found fury. At first, yes, many were delighted with our doctrine and received it gladly. We counted them as our friends and brethren, and were happy to think that they would help us in sowing the seed of the Gospel. But they revealed themselves as false brethren and deadly enemies of the Gospel. If you experience the ingratitude of men, don't let it get you down. Say with Christ: "They hated me without cause." And, "For my love they are my adversaries; but I give myself unto prayer." (Ps. 109:4.)
We are being treated this way. We thought we would gain approval from people for sharing the Gospel of peace, life, and eternal salvation. Instead of approval, we faced anger. At first, yes, many were enthusiastic about our teachings and accepted them happily. We considered them our friends and allies, and we were glad to think they would join us in spreading the Gospel. But they turned out to be false friends and bitter enemies of the Gospel. If you face ingratitude from others, don't let it bring you down. Say with Christ: "They hated me without a reason." And, "For my love they are my enemies; but I am devoted to prayer." (Ps. 109:4.)
Let us never doubt the mercy of God in Christ Jesus, but make up our minds that God is pleased with us, that He looks after us, and that we have the Holy Spirit who prays for us.
Let’s always believe in God’s mercy through Christ Jesus and be confident that God is happy with us, that He cares for us, and that we have the Holy Spirit who intercedes for us.
VERSE 7. Wherefore thou art no more a servant, but a son.
VERSE 7. So you are no longer a servant, but a son.
This sentence clinches Paul's argument. He says: "With the Holy Spirit in our hearts crying, 'Abba, Father,' there can be no doubt that God has adopted us for His children and that our subjection to the Law has come to an end." We are now the free children of God. We may now say to the Law: "Mister Law, you have lost your throne to Christ. I am free now and a son of God. You cannot curse me any more." Do not permit the Law to lie in your conscience. Your conscience belongs to Christ. Let Christ be in it and not the Law.
This sentence reinforces Paul's argument. He states: "With the Holy Spirit in our hearts crying, 'Abba, Father,' there’s no doubt that God has adopted us as His children and that our obligation to the Law has ended." We are now the free children of God. We can now tell the Law: "Hey Law, you’ve lost your authority to Christ. I’m free now and a child of God. You can't condemn me anymore." Don't let the Law take hold of your conscience. Your conscience belongs to Christ. Let Christ be in it, not the Law.
As the children of God we are the heirs of His eternal heaven. What a wonderful gift heaven is, man's heart cannot conceive, much less describe. Until we enter upon our heavenly inheritance we are only to have our little faith to go by. To man's reason our faith looks rather forlorn. But because our faith rests on the promises of the infinite God, His promises are also infinite, so much so that nothing can accuse or condemn us.
As the children of God, we are the heirs of His eternal heaven. What a wonderful gift heaven is; it's beyond what the human heart can imagine, let alone describe. Until we receive our heavenly inheritance, we can only rely on our small faith. To human reasoning, our faith may seem quite hopeless. But since our faith is grounded in the promises of the infinite God, those promises are also infinite, meaning nothing can accuse or condemn us.
VERSE 7. And if a son, then an heir of God through Christ.
VERSE 7. And if we are children, then we are heirs of God through Christ.
A son is an heir, not by virtue of high accomplishments, but by virtue of his birth. He is a mere recipient. His birth makes him an heir, not his labors. In exactly the same way we obtain the eternal gifts of righteousness, resurrection, and everlasting life. We obtain them not as agents, but as beneficiaries. We are the children and heirs of God through faith in Christ. We have Christ to thank for everything.
A son is an heir, not because of impressive achievements, but because of his birth. He is simply a recipient. His birth makes him an heir, not his efforts. In the same way, we receive the eternal gifts of righteousness, resurrection, and everlasting life. We receive them not as doers, but as beneficiaries. We are the children and heirs of God through faith in Christ. We owe everything to Christ.
We are not the heirs of some rich and mighty man, but heirs of God, the almighty Creator of all things. If a person could fully appreciate what it means to be a son and heir of God, he would rate the might and wealth of nations small change in comparison with his heavenly inheritance. What is the world to him who has heaven? No wonder Paul greatly desired to depart and to be with Christ. Nothing would be more welcome to us than early death, knowing that it would spell the end of all our miseries and the beginning of all our happiness. Yes, if a person could perfectly believe this he would not long remain alive. The anticipation of his joy would kill him.
We aren't heirs of some wealthy and powerful person, but heirs of God, the all-powerful Creator of everything. If someone could truly understand what it means to be a child and heir of God, they would see the strength and riches of nations as minor compared to their heavenly inheritance. What does the world matter to someone who has heaven? It's no surprise that Paul deeply longed to leave this life and be with Christ. Nothing would be more welcomed than an early death, knowing it would mean the end of all our suffering and the start of our true happiness. Yes, if someone could fully believe this, they wouldn't stay alive for long. The excitement of their joy might just overwhelm them.
But the law of the members strives against the law of the mind, and makes perfect joy and faith impossible. We need the continued help and comfort of the Holy Spirit. We need His prayers. Paul himself cried out: "O wretched man that I am! Who shall deliver me from the body of this death?" The body of this death spoiled the joy of his spirit. He did not always entertain the sweet and glad expectation of his heavenly inheritance. He often felt miserable.
But the rules of the people clash with the law of the mind, making true joy and faith impossible. We need the ongoing support and comfort of the Holy Spirit. We need His prayers. Paul himself exclaimed: "O miserable man that I am! Who will rescue me from this body of death?" This body of death took away the joy of his spirit. He didn't always hold onto the sweet and joyful hope of his heavenly inheritance. He often felt unhappy.
This goes to show how hard it is to believe. Faith is feeble, because the flesh wars against the spirit. If we could have perfect faith, our loathing for this life in the world would be complete. We would not be so careful about this life. We would not be so attached to the world and the things of the world. We would not feel so good when we have them; we would not feel so bad when we lose them. We would be far more humble and patient and kind. But our faith is weak, because our spirit is weak. In this life we can have only the first-fruits of the Spirit, as Paul says.
This shows just how hard it is to believe. Faith is weak because our physical desires conflict with our spiritual ones. If we had perfect faith, we would completely reject this life in the world. We wouldn't worry so much about our lives. We wouldn't feel so attached to the world and its possessions. We wouldn't feel so great when we have them, or so terrible when we lose them. We would be much more humble, patient, and kind. But our faith is weak because our spirit is weak. In this life, as Paul says, we can only experience the first fruits of the Spirit.
VERSE 7. Through Christ.
Through Christ.
The Apostle always has Christ on the tip of his tongue. He foresaw that nothing would be less known in the world some day than the Gospel of Christ. Therefore he talks of Christ continually. As often as he speaks of righteousness, grace, the promise, the adoption, and the inheritance of heaven, he adds the words, "In Christ," or "Through Christ," to show that these blessings are not to be had by the Law, or the deeds of the Law, much less by our own exertions, or by the observance of human traditions, but only by and through and in Christ.
The Apostle always has Christ on his lips. He knew that one day, the Gospel of Christ would be among the least understood things in the world. That's why he talks about Christ all the time. Whenever he mentions righteousness, grace, the promise, adoption, or the inheritance of heaven, he includes phrases like "In Christ" or "Through Christ" to emphasize that these blessings cannot be obtained through the Law, our own efforts, or by following human traditions, but only through Christ.
VERSES 8 and 9. Howbeit then, when ye knew not God, ye did service unto them which by nature are no gods. But now, after that ye have known God, or rather are known of God, how turn ye again to the weak and beggarly elements, whereunto ye desire again to be in bondage?
VERSES 8 and 9. However, when you didn't know God, you served those that are not really gods. But now that you know God, or rather are known by God, why do you want to go back to the weak and worthless things that will put you in bondage again?
This concludes Paul's discourse on justification. From now to the end of the Epistle the Apostle writes mostly of Christian conduct. But before he follows up his doctrinal discourse with practical precepts he once more reproves the Galatians. He is deeply displeased with them for relinquishing their divine doctrine. He tells them: "You have taken on teachers who intend to recommit you to the Law. By my doctrine I called you out of the darkness of ignorance into the wonderful light of the knowledge of God. I led you out of bondage into the freedom of the sons of God, not by the prescription of laws, but by the gift of heavenly and eternal blessings through Christ Jesus. How could you so soon forsake the light and return to darkness? How could you so quickly stray from grace into the Law, from freedom into bondage?"
This wraps up Paul's discussion on justification. From this point until the end of the letter, the Apostle focuses mainly on how Christians should live. But before he shifts from his doctrinal teachings to practical advice, he once again confronts the Galatians. He is very upset with them for turning away from their divine teachings. He tells them, "You have chosen teachers who want to pull you back under the Law. Through my teachings, I brought you out of ignorance and into the amazing light of knowing God. I freed you from slavery to live as children of God, not by following rules, but through the gift of heavenly and eternal blessings through Christ Jesus. How could you so quickly abandon the light and go back to darkness? How could you stray from grace back to the Law, from freedom back to slavery?"
The example of the Galatians, of Anabaptists, and other sectarians in our day bears testimony to the ease with which faith may be lost. We take great pains in setting forth the doctrine of faith by preaching and by writing. We are careful to apply the Gospel and the Law in their proper turn. Yet we make little headway because the devil seduces people into misbelief by taking Christ out of their sight and focusing their eyes upon the Law.
The example of the Galatians, Anabaptists, and other sects today shows how easily faith can be lost. We put a lot of effort into teaching the doctrine of faith through preaching and writing. We try hard to apply the Gospel and the Law correctly. Still, we make little progress because the devil tricks people into doubting by keeping Christ out of their view and making them focus only on the Law.
But why does Paul accuse the Galatians of reverting to the weak and beggarly elements of the Law when they never had the Law? Why does he not say to them: "At one time you Galatians did not know God. You then served idols that were no gods. But now that you have come to know the true God, why do you go back to the worship of idols?" Paul seems to identify their defection from the Gospel to the Law with their former idolatry. Indeed he does. Whoever gives up the article of justification does not know the true God. It is one and the same thing whether a person reverts to the Law or to the worship of idols. When the article of justification is lost, nothing remains except error, hypocrisy, godlessness, and idolatry.
But why does Paul accuse the Galatians of going back to the weak and worthless elements of the Law when they never had the Law in the first place? Why doesn’t he say to them: "At one time, you Galatians didn’t know God. You worshiped idols that weren’t real gods. But now that you’ve come to know the true God, why would you return to idol worship?" Paul seems to connect their turning away from the Gospel to the Law with their previous idolatry. And he does. Anyone who gives up justification doesn’t truly know God. It’s the same whether someone turns back to the Law or to idol worship. When justification is lost, all that’s left is confusion, hypocrisy, disbelief, and idolatry.
God will and can be known in no other way than in and through Christ according to the statement of John 1:18, "The only begotten Son, which is in the bosom of the Father, he hath declared him." Christ is the only means whereby we can know God and His will. In Christ we perceive that God is not a cruel judge, but a most loving and merciful Father who to bless and to save us "spared not his own Son, but gave him up for us all." This is truly to know God.
God can only be known through Christ, as stated in John 1:18, "The only begotten Son, who is close to the Father, has revealed him." Christ is the only way we can understand God and His will. In Christ, we see that God is not a harsh judge, but a loving and merciful Father who, to bless and save us, "did not spare his own Son, but gave him up for us all." This is what it truly means to know God.
Those who do not know God in Christ arrive at this erroneous conclusion: "I will serve God in such and such a way. I will join this or that order. I will be active in this or that charitable endeavor. God will sanction my good intentions and reward me with everlasting life. For is He not a merciful and generous Father who gives good things even to the unworthy and ungrateful? How much more will He grant unto me everlasting life as a due payment in return for my many good deeds and merits." This is the religion of reason. This is the natural religion of the world. "The natural man receiveth not the things of the Spirit of God." (I Cor. 2:14.) "There is none that understandeth, there is none that seeketh after God." (Romans 3:11.) Hence, there is really no difference between a Jew, a Mohammedan, and any other old or new heretic. There may be a difference of persons, places, rites, religions, ceremonies, but as far as their fundamental beliefs are concerned they are all alike.
Those who don't know God through Christ come to this mistaken belief: "I'll serve God in this way or that. I'll join this or that group. I'll get involved in this or that charity. God will approve of my good intentions and reward me with eternal life. Isn't He a merciful and generous Father who gives good things even to those who don't deserve it? How much more will He give me eternal life as a reward for my many good deeds and merits?" This is the religion of reasoning. This is the natural religion of the world. "The natural person does not accept the things of the Spirit of God." (I Cor. 2:14.) "There is no one who understands; there is no one who seeks after God." (Romans 3:11.) Therefore, there’s really no difference between a Jew, a Muslim, and any other old or new heretic. There may be differences in people, places, rituals, religions, and ceremonies, but when it comes to their core beliefs, they are all the same.
Is it therefore not extreme folly for Rome and the Mohammedans to fight each other about religion? How about the monks? Why should one monk want to be accounted more holy than another monk because of some silly ceremony, when all the time their basic beliefs are asnmuch alike as one egg is like the other? They all imagine, if we do this or that work, God will have mercy on us; if not, God will be angry.
Isn’t it just foolish for Rome and the Muslims to fight over religion? What about the monks? Why should one monk consider himself better than another just because of some pointless ceremony, when their core beliefs are really similar? They all think that if they do certain things, God will show them mercy; if not, God will be upset.
God never promised to save anybody for his religious observance of ceremonies and ordinances. Those who rely upon such things do serve a god, but it is their own invention of a god, and not the true God. The true God has this to say: No religion pleases Me whereby the Father is not glorified through His Son Jesus. All who give their faith to this Son of Mine, to them I am God and Father. I accept, justify, and save them. All others abide under My curse because they worship creatures instead of Me.
God never promised to save anyone based on their religious ceremonies and rituals. Those who depend on these things may serve a god, but it’s just their own creation, not the true God. The true God says this: No religion pleases Me if the Father isn’t honored through His Son Jesus. To everyone who puts their faith in My Son, I am their God and Father. I accept, forgive, and save them. Everyone else remains under My curse because they worship beings instead of Me.
Without the doctrine of justification there can be only ignorance of God. Those who refuse to be justified by Christ are idolaters. They remain under the Law, sin, death, and the power of the devil. Everything they do is wrong.
Without the idea of justification, people can only be ignorant of God. Those who refuse to be justified by Christ are idol worshippers. They stay trapped under the Law, sin, death, and the influence of the devil. Everything they do is wrong.
Nowadays there are many such idolaters who want to be counted among the true confessors of the Gospel. They may even teach that men are delivered from their sins by the death of Christ. But because they attach more importance to charity than to faith in Christ they dishonor Him and pervert His Word. They do not serve the true God, but an idol of their own invention. The true God has never yet smiled upon a person for his charity or virtues, but only for the sake of Christ's merits.
Nowadays, there are many idolaters who want to be seen as true followers of the Gospel. They might even claim that people are saved from their sins through Christ's death. However, because they prioritize charity over faith in Christ, they disrespect Him and distort His Word. They don't serve the true God but a god of their own making. The true God has never favored anyone because of their charity or good deeds, but only for the sake of Christ's merits.
The objection is frequently raised that the Bible commands that we should love God with all our heart. True enough. But because God commands it, it does not follow that we do it. If we could love God with all our heart we should undoubtedly be justified by our obedience, for it is written, "Which if a man do, he shall live in them." (Lev. 18:5.) But now comes the Gospel and says: "Because you do not do these things, you cannot live in them." The words, "Thou shalt love the Lord, thy God," require perfect obedience, perfect fear, perfect trust, and perfect love. But where are the people who can render perfection? Hence, this commandment, instead of justifying men, only accuses and condemns them. "Christ is the end of the law for righteousness to every one that believeth" (Romans 10:1.)
The common objection is that the Bible tells us to love God with all our heart. That's true. However, just because God commands it doesn’t mean we actually do it. If we could love God with all our heart, we would certainly be justified by our obedience, as it says, "If a man does this, he will live by it." (Lev. 18:5.) But then the Gospel comes and says: "Because you don't do these things, you cannot live by them." The commandment, "You shall love the Lord your God," requires perfect obedience, perfect fear, perfect trust, and perfect love. But where are the people who can achieve perfection? Therefore, this commandment, instead of justifying people, only accuses and condemns them. "Christ is the end of the law for righteousness to everyone who believes" (Romans 10:1.)
How may these two contradictory statements of the Apostle, "Ye knew not God," and "Ye worshipped God," be reconciled? I answer: By nature all men know that there is a God, "because that which may be known of God is manifest in them, for God hath showed it unto them. For the invisible things of him from the creation of the world are clearly seen." (Romans 1:19, 20.) Furthermore, the different religions to be found among all nations at all times bear witness to the fact that all men have a certain intuitive knowledge of God.
How can we reconcile these two contradictory statements from the Apostle: "You did not know God" and "You worshipped God"? I respond: By nature, everyone knows that there is a God, "because what can be known about God is evident in them, for God has revealed it to them. For the invisible aspects of Him from the creation of the world are clearly seen." (Romans 1:19, 20.) Moreover, the various religions found among all nations throughout history testify that all people have a certain intuitive understanding of God.
If all men know God how can Paul say that the Galatians did not know God prior to the hearing of the Gospel? I answer: There is a twofold knowledge of God, general and particular. All men have the general and instinctive recognition that there is a God who created heaven and earth, who is just and holy, and who punishes the wicked. How God feels about us, what His intentions are, what He will do for us, or how He will save us, that men cannot know instinctively. It must be revealed to them. I may know a person by sight, and still not know him, because I do not know how he feels about me. Men know instinctively that there is a God. But what His will is toward them, they do not know. It is written: "There is none that understandeth God." (Romans 3:11.) Again, "No man hath seen God." (John 1:18.) Now, what good does it do you if you know that there is a God, if you do not know how He feels about you, or what He wants of you? People have done a good deal of guessing. The Jew imagines he is doing the will of God if he concentrates on the Law of Moses. The Mohammedan thinks his Koran is the will of God. The monk fancies he is doing the will of God if he performs his vows. But they deceive themselves and become "vain in their imaginations," as Paul says, Romans 1:21. Instead of worshipping the true God, they worship the vain imaginations of their foolish hearts.
If everyone knows God, how can Paul say that the Galatians didn’t know God before they heard the Gospel? I answer: There are two types of knowledge of God, general and specific. Everyone has a general and instinctive awareness that there is a God who created the heavens and the earth, who is just and holy, and who punishes the wicked. However, how God feels about us, what His intentions are, what He will do for us, or how He will save us is not something people can know instinctively. It must be revealed to them. I might recognize someone by sight but still not truly know them because I don’t know how they feel about me. People instinctively know there is a God, but they don’t understand what His will is toward them. It is written: "There is none that understandeth God." (Romans 3:11.) Also, "No man hath seen God." (John 1:18.) Now, what good does it do you to know that there is a God if you don’t know how He feels about you or what He wants from you? People have made a lot of guesses. A Jew believes they are fulfilling God's will by focusing on the Law of Moses. A Muslim thinks the Koran is God's will. A monk thinks he is doing God's will by adhering to his vows. But they are deceiving themselves and becoming "vain in their imaginations," as Paul says, Romans 1:21. Instead of worshipping the true God, they worship the empty ideas of their foolish hearts.
What Paul means by saying to the Galatians, "When ye knew not God," is simply this: "There was a time when you did not know the will of God in Christ, but you worshipped gods of your own invention, thinking that you had to perform this or that labor." Whether you understand the "elements of the world" to mean the Law of Moses, or the religions of the heathen nations, it makes no difference. Those who lapse from the Gospel to the Law are no better off than those who lapse from grace into idolatry. Without Christ all religion is idolatry. Without Christ men will entertain false ideas about God, call their ideas what you like, the laws of Moses, the ordinances of the Pope, the Koran of the Mohammedans, or what have you.
What Paul means when he says to the Galatians, "When you didn’t know God," is simply this: "There was a time when you didn’t understand God’s will in Christ, but you worshipped man-made gods, believing you had to do this or that work." Whether you interpret the "elements of the world" as the Law of Moses or the religions of pagan nations, it doesn’t matter. Those who turn away from the Gospel to the Law are no better off than those who turn away from grace to idolatry. Without Christ, all religion is idolatry. Without Christ, people will have false ideas about God, regardless of whether you call those ideas the laws of Moses, the ordinances of the Pope, the Koran of the Muslims, or anything else.
VERSE 9. But now, after that ye have known God.
VERSE 9. But now, after you have come to know God.
"Is it not amazing," cries Paul, "that you Galatians who knew God intimately by the hearing of the Gospel, should all of a sudden revert from the true knowledge of His will in which I thought you were confirmed, to the weak and beggarly elements of the Law which can only enslave you again?"
"Isn’t it incredible," Paul exclaims, "that you Galatians who had a close relationship with God through the Gospel, would suddenly go back to the outdated and worthless practices of the Law that can only enslave you again?"
VERSE 9. Or rather are known of God.
VERSE 9. Or rather, are recognized by God.
The Apostle turns the foregoing sentence around. He fears the Galatians have lost God altogether. "Alas," he cries, "have you come to this, that you no longer know God? What else am I to think? Nevertheless, God knows you." Our knowledge of God is rather passive than active. God knows us better than we know God. "Ye are known of God" means that God brings His Gospel to our attention, and endows us with faith and the Holy Spirit. Even in these words the Apostle denies the possibility of our knowing God by the performance of the Law. "No man knoweth who the Father is, but the Son, and he to whom the Son will reveal him." (Luke 10:22.) "By his knowledge shall my righteous servant justify many; for he shall bear their iniquities." (Isaiah 53:11.)
The Apostle flips the previous statement. He worries that the Galatians have completely lost touch with God. "Oh no," he exclaims, "have you really reached the point where you no longer know God? What else can I think? But God knows you." Our understanding of God is more about receiving than actively pursuing. God is more aware of us than we are of Him. "You are known by God" means that God brings His Gospel to our attention and grants us faith and the Holy Spirit. Even in this, the Apostle rejects the idea that we can know God through following the Law. "No one knows who the Father is except the Son, and those to whom the Son chooses to reveal Him." (Luke 10:22.) "By His knowledge, My righteous servant will justify many, for He will bear their iniquities." (Isaiah 53:11.)
The Apostle frankly expresses his surprise to the Galatians that they who had known God intimately through the Gospel, should so easily be persuaded by the false apostles to return to the weak and beggarly elements of the Law. I would not be surprised to see my church perverted by some fanatic through one or two sermons. We are no better than the apostles who had to witness the subversion of the churches which they had planted with their own hands. Nevertheless, Christ will reign to the end of the world, and that miraculously, as He did during the Dark Ages.
The Apostle openly expresses his shock to the Galatians that those who had known God closely through the Gospel could be so easily swayed by the false apostles to return to the weak and worthless elements of the Law. I wouldn’t be surprised to see my church misled by a fanatic after just one or two sermons. We are no better than the apostles who had to watch the churches they established with their own hands be turned upside down. However, Christ will reign until the end of the world, and He will do so miraculously, just as He did during the Dark Ages.
Paul seems to think rather ill of the Law. He calls it the elements of the world, the weak and beggarly elements of the world. Was it not irreverent for him to speak that way about the holy Law of God? The Law ought to prepare the way of Christ into the hearts of men. That is the true purpose and function of the Law. But if the Law presumes to usurp the place and function of the Gospel, it is no longer the holy Law of God, but a pseudo-Gospel.
Paul seems to have a negative view of the Law. He refers to it as the basic principles of the world, the weak and poor elements of the world. Wasn't it disrespectful for him to talk about God's holy Law like that? The Law should prepare people’s hearts for Christ. That’s its true purpose and role. But if the Law tries to take the place and role of the Gospel, it stops being God’s holy Law and becomes a false Gospel.
If you care to amplify this matter you may add the observation that the Law is a weak and beggarly element because it makes people weak and beggarly. The Law has no power and affluence to make men strong and rich before God. To seek to be justified by the Law amounts to the same thing as if a person who is already weak and feeble should try to find strength in weakness, or as if a person with the dropsy should seek a cure by exposing himself to the pestilence, or as if a leper should go to a leper, and a beggar to a beggar to find health and wealth.
If you want to emphasize this point, you could say that the Law is a weak and worthless thing because it makes people weak and poor. The Law has no power or wealth to make people strong and rich in the eyes of God. Trying to be justified by the Law is like someone who is already weak and fragile trying to find strength in their weakness, or like a person with dropsy trying to get better by putting themselves in danger of disease, or like a leper going to another leper, or a beggar going to another beggar, in hopes of finding health and wealth.
Those who seek to be justified by the Law grow weaker and more destitute right along. They are weak and bankrupt to begin with. They are by nature the children of wrath. Yet for salvation they grasp at the straw of the Law. The Law can only aggravate their weakness and poverty. The Law makes them ten times weaker and poorer than they were before.
Those who try to be justified by the Law only become weaker and more miserable. They are weak and lacking to start with. By nature, they are children of wrath. Yet in their search for salvation, they cling to the fragile hope of the Law. The Law only worsens their weakness and lack. The Law makes them ten times weaker and poorer than they were before.
I and many others have experienced the truth of this. I have known monks who zealously labored to please God for salvation, but the more they labored the more impatient, miserable, uncertain, and fearful they became. What else can you expect? You cannot grow strong through weakness and rich through poverty. People who prefer the Law to the Gospel are like Aesop's dog who let go of the meat to snatch at the shadow of the water. There is no satisfaction in the Law. What satisfaction can there be in collecting laws with which to torment oneself and others? One law breeds ten more until their number is legion.
I’ve seen this truth myself, and many others have too. I’ve known monks who worked tirelessly to please God for salvation, but the harder they tried, the more impatient, miserable, uncertain, and fearful they became. What else can you expect? You can’t become strong through weakness or rich through poverty. People who prefer the Law over the Gospel are like Aesop's dog who drops the meat to grab at the shadow in the water. There’s no satisfaction in the Law. What kind of satisfaction is there in piling up laws that only serve to torment oneself and others? One law leads to ten more, and soon their numbers are countless.
Who would have thought it possible that the Galatians, taught as they were by that efficient apostle and teacher, Paul, could so quickly be led astray by the false apostles? To fall away from the Gospel is an easy matter because few people appreciate what an excellent treasure the knowledge of Christ really is. People are not sufficiently exercised in their faith by afflictions. They do not wrestle against sin. They live in security without conflict. Because they have never been tried in the furnace of affliction they are not properly equipped with the armor of God and know not how to use the sword of the Spirit. As long as they are being shepherded by faithful pastors, all is well. But when their faithful shepherds are gone and wolves disguised as sheep break into the fold, back they go to the weak and beggarly elements of the Law.
Who would have thought it possible that the Galatians, taught by the effective apostle and teacher, Paul, could be misled so quickly by false apostles? Falling away from the Gospel is easy because few people recognize what an incredible treasure the knowledge of Christ truly is. People aren’t sufficiently tested in their faith through struggles. They don’t fight against sin. They live comfortably without conflict. Since they’ve never gone through tough times, they lack the armor of God and don’t know how to use the sword of the Spirit. As long as they’re guided by faithful pastors, everything is fine. But when those trustworthy shepherds are gone and wolves disguised as sheep enter the group, they return to the weak and inadequate elements of the Law.
Whoever goes back to the Law loses the knowledge of the truth, fails in the recognition of his sinfulness, does not know God, nor the devil, nor himself, and does not understand the meaning and purpose of the Law. Without the knowledge of Christ a man will always argue that the Law is necessary for salvation, that it will strengthen the weak and enrich the poor. Wherever this opinion holds sway the promises of God are denied, Christ is demoted, hypocrisy and idolatry are established.
Whoever turns back to the Law loses sight of the truth, fails to recognize their own sinfulness, doesn’t truly know God, the devil, or even themselves, and doesn’t understand the meaning or purpose of the Law. Without the knowledge of Christ, a person will always insist that the Law is essential for salvation, that it will empower the weak and benefit the poor. Wherever this belief prevails, the promises of God are rejected, Christ is diminished, and hypocrisy and idolatry take root.
VERSE 9. Whereunto ye desire again to be in bondage.
VERSE 9. Why do you want to go back to being enslaved?
The Apostle pointedly asks the Galatians whether they desire to be in bondage again to the Law. The Law is weak and poor, the sinner is weak and poor—two feeble beggars trying to help each other. They cannot do it. They only wear each other out. But through Christ a weak and poor sinner is revived and enriched unto eternal life.
The Apostle bluntly asks the Galatians if they want to go back to being trapped by the Law. The Law is weak and useless, and the sinner is weak and helpless—two struggling beggars trying to assist each other. They can’t succeed. They only exhaust one another. But through Christ, a weak and poor sinner is brought to life and made rich in eternal life.
VERSE 10. Ye observe days, and months, and times, and years.
VERSE 10. You observe days, months, seasons, and years.
The Apostle Paul knew what the false apostles were teaching the Galatians: The observance of days, and months, and times, and years. The Jews had been obliged to keep holy the Sabbath Day, the new moons, the feast of the passover, the feast of tabernacles, and other feasts. The false apostles constrained the Galatians to observe these Jewish feasts under threat of damnation. Paul hastens to tell the Galatians that they were exchanging their Christian liberty for the weak and beggarly elements of the world.
The Apostle Paul was aware of what the false apostles were teaching the Galatians: The observance of days, months, seasons, and years. The Jews had to keep the Sabbath, the new moons, the Passover, the Feast of Tabernacles, and other festivals. The false apostles pressured the Galatians to follow these Jewish celebrations, threatening them with damnation. Paul quickly informs the Galatians that they were trading their Christian freedom for the weak and worthless principles of the world.
VERSE 11. I am afraid of you, lest I have bestowed upon you labor in vain.
VERSE 11. I'm concerned about you, thinking that I may have worked hard for you without any purpose.
It grieves the Apostle to think that he might have preached the Gospel to the Galatians in vain. But this statement expresses more than grief. Behind his apparent disappointment at their failure lurks the sharp reprimand that they had forsaken Christ and that they were proving themselves to be obstinate unbelievers. But he does not openly condemn them for fear that oversharp criticism might alienate them altogether. He therefore changes the tone of his voice and speaks kindly to them.
It pains the Apostle to think that he may have preached the Gospel to the Galatians for nothing. But this feeling expresses more than just sadness. Beneath his visible disappointment at their failure lies a harsh reprimand that they have turned away from Christ and are showing themselves to be stubborn unbelievers. However, he doesn't directly condemn them, fearing that harsh criticism might push them away completely. So, he shifts his tone and speaks to them with kindness.
VERSE 12. Be as I am; for I am as ye are.
VERSE 12. Be like me, because I am like you.
Up to this point Paul has been occupied with the doctrinal aspect of the apostasy of the Galatians. He did not conceal his disappointment at their lack of stability. He had rebuked them. He had called them fools, crucifiers of Christ, etc. Now that the more important part of his Epistle has been finished, he realizes that he has handled the Galatians too roughly. Anxious lest he should do more harm than good, he is careful to let them see that his criticism proceeds from affection and a true apostolic concern for their welfare. He is eager to mitigate his sharp words with gentle sentiments in order to win them again.
Up to this point, Paul has been focused on the doctrinal issues surrounding the apostasy of the Galatians. He didn’t hide his disappointment at their lack of stability. He had reprimanded them and called them fools and crucifiers of Christ, among other things. Now that he has finished the more significant part of his letter, he realizes that he might have been too harsh on the Galatians. Concerned that he might cause more harm than good, he is careful to show them that his criticism comes from love and a genuine apostolic concern for their well-being. He is eager to soften his harsh words with caring sentiments to win them back.
Like Paul, all pastors and ministers ought to have much sympathy for their poor straying sheep, and instruct them in the spirit of meekness. They cannot be straightened out in any other way. Oversharp criticism provokes anger and despair, but no repentance. And here let us note, by the way, that true doctrine always produces concord. When men embrace errors, the tie of Christian love is broken.
Like Paul, all pastors and ministers should have a lot of compassion for their struggling members and guide them with kindness. They can’t be helped in any other way. Harsh criticism leads to anger and hopelessness, but not to repentance. And let's also point out that true doctrine always brings harmony. When people adopt false beliefs, the bond of Christian love is fractured.
At the beginning of the Reformation we were honored as the true ministers of Christ. Suddenly certain false brethren began to hate us. We had given them no offense, no occasion to hate us. They knew then as they know now that ours is the singular desire to publish the Gospel of Christ everywhere. What changed their attitude toward us? False doctrine. Seduced into error by the false apostles, the Galatians refused to acknowledge St. Paul as their pastor. The name and doctrine of Paul became obnoxious to them. I fear this Epistle recalled very few from their error.
At the start of the Reformation, we were respected as true ministers of Christ. Then, out of nowhere, some false brethren began to turn against us. We hadn’t done anything to offend them or give them a reason to dislike us. They knew then, just as they do now, that our sole aim is to spread the Gospel of Christ everywhere. What changed their feelings towards us? False teachings. Misled by false apostles, the Galatians stopped recognizing St. Paul as their pastor. The name and teachings of Paul became repulsive to them. I worry this letter will bring very few back from their mistake.
Paul knew that the false apostles would misconstrue his censure of the Galatians to their own advantage and say: "So this is your Paul whom you praise so much. What sweet names he is calling you in his letter. When he was with you he acted like a father, but now he acts like a dictator." Paul knew what to expect of the false apostles and therefore he is worried. He does not know what to say. It is hard for a man to defend his cause at a distance, especially when he has reason to think that he personally has fallen into disfavor.
Paul understood that the false apostles would twist his criticism of the Galatians to benefit themselves and say, "So this is the Paul you praise so much. Look at the kind words he's using in his letter. When he was with you, he acted like a father, but now he’s behaving like a dictator." Paul anticipated what the false apostles would do, and that's why he was concerned. He didn't know what to say. It's tough for someone to defend themselves from afar, especially when they feel they've lost favor.
VERSE 12. Be as I am; for I am as ye are.
VERSE 12. Be like me, because I am like you.
In beseeching the Galatians to be as he is, Paul expresses the hope that they might hold the same affection for him that he holds for them. "Perhaps I have been a little hard with you. Forgive it. Do not judge my heart according to my words."
In asking the Galatians to be like him, Paul shares his hope that they can feel the same love for him that he feels for them. "Maybe I've been a bit harsh with you. I'm sorry for that. Don’t judge my feelings based on what I've said."
We request the same consideration for ourselves. Our way of writing is incisive and straightforward. But there is no bitterness in our heart. We seek the honor of Christ and the welfare of men. We do not hate the Pope as to wish him ill. We do not desire the death of our false brethren. We desire that they may turn from their evil ways to Christ and be saved with us. A teacher chastises the pupil to reform him. The rod hurts, but correction is necessary. A father punishes his son because he loves his son. If he did not love the lad he would not punish him but let him have his own way in everything until he comes to harm. Paul beseeches the Galatians to look upon his correction as a sign that he really cared for them. "Now no chastening for the present seemeth to be joyous, but grievous; nevertheless, afterward it yieldeth the peaceable fruit of righteousness unto them which are exercised thereby." (Heb. 12:11.)
We ask for the same understanding for ourselves. Our writing style is sharp and clear. But there’s no resentment in our hearts. We are committed to honoring Christ and caring for others. We don’t wish harm upon the Pope. We don’t want our misguided friends to die. We hope they turn away from their wrong paths to Christ and find salvation with us. A teacher disciplines a student to help them improve. The discipline might sting, but it’s necessary for growth. A father punishes his son because he loves him. If he didn’t care, he would let the boy do whatever he wanted until he ends up in trouble. Paul urges the Galatians to see his correction as proof of his genuine concern for them. "Now no chastening for the present seemeth to be joyous, but grievous; nevertheless, afterward it yieldeth the peaceable fruit of righteousness unto them which are exercised thereby." (Heb. 12:11.)
Although Paul seeks to soften the effect of his reproachful words, he does not take them back. When a physician administers a bitter potion to a patient, he does it to cure the patient. The fact that the medicine is bitter is no fault of the physician. The malady calls for a bitter medicine. Paul wants the Galatians to judge his words according to the situation that made them necessary.
Although Paul tries to ease the impact of his critical words, he doesn’t take them back. When a doctor gives a bitter medicine to a patient, it’s meant to heal the patient. The bitterness of the medicine isn’t the doctor’s fault. The illness requires a bitter remedy. Paul wants the Galatians to understand his words in light of the circumstances that made them necessary.
VERSE 12. Brethren, I beseech you...Ye have not injured me at all.
VERSE 12. Brothers, I urge you...You haven’t hurt me at all.
Would you call it beseeching the Galatians to call them "bewitched," "disobedient," "crucifiers of Christ"? The Apostle calls it an earnest beseeching. And so it is. When a father corrects his son it means as if he were saying, "My son, I beseech you, be a good boy."
Would you call it pleading with the Galatians to label them "bewitched," "disobedient," "crucifiers of Christ"? The Apostle describes it as a sincere plea. And that’s exactly what it is. When a father corrects his son, it’s as if he’s saying, "My son, I genuinely ask you to be a good boy."
VERSE 12. Ye have not injured me at all.
VERSE 12. You haven't hurt me at all.
"I am not angry with you," says Paul. "Why should I be angry with you, since you have done me no injury at all?"
"I’m not mad at you," Paul says. "Why would I be mad at you when you haven’t hurt me at all?"
To this the Galatians reply: "Why, then, do you say that we are perverted, that we have forsaken the true doctrine, that we are foolish, bewitched, etc., if you are not angry? We must have offended you somehow."
To this, the Galatians respond: "Then why do you say we’ve strayed, that we’ve abandoned the true teachings, that we’re foolish, under a spell, etc., if you’re not upset? We must have done something to upset you."
Paul answers: "You Galatians have not injured me. You have injured yourselves. I chide you not because I wish you ill. I have no reason to wish you ill. God is my witness, you have done me no wrong. On the contrary, you have been very good to me. The reason I write to you is because I love you."
Paul answers: "You Galatians haven't hurt me. You've hurt yourselves. I'm not criticizing you because I want to harm you. I have no reason to want that. God is my witness, you haven't wronged me. On the contrary, you’ve been really good to me. The reason I'm writing to you is because I love you."
The bitter potion must be sweetened with honey and sugar to make it palatable. When parents have punished their children they give them apples, pears, and other good things to show them that they mean well.
The harsh medicine needs to be sweetened with honey and sugar to make it easier to swallow. When parents punish their kids, they give them apples, pears, and other treats to show that they care.
VERSES 13, 14. Ye know how through infirmity of the flesh I preached the gospel unto you at the first. And my temptation which was in my flesh ye despised not, nor rejected; but received me as an angel of God, even as Christ Jesus.
VERSES 13, 14. You know that when I first preached the gospel to you, it was due to a weakness in my health. And you didn’t look down on or turn away from my struggles; instead, you welcomed me like an angel of God, just as you would receive Christ Jesus.
"You Galatians were very good to me. When I began to preach the Gospel to you in the infirmity of my flesh and in great temptation you were not at all offended. On the contrary, you were so loving, so kind, so friendly towards me, you received me like an angel, like Jesus Himself."
"You Galatians were so good to me. When I started preaching the Gospel to you while struggling with my health and facing major challenges, you weren’t offended at all. Instead, you were loving, kind, and friendly towards me; you welcomed me like an angel, like Jesus Himself."
Indeed, the Galatians are to be commended for receiving the Gospel from a man as unimposing and afflicted all around as Paul was. Wherever he preached the Gospel, Jews and Gentiles raved against him. All the influential and religious people of his day denounced him. But the Galatians did not mind it. That was greatly to their honor. And Paul does not neglect to praise them for it. This praise Paul bestows on none of the other churches to which he wrote.
Indeed, the Galatians deserve recognition for accepting the Gospel from someone as modest and troubled as Paul was. Everywhere he preached, both Jews and Gentiles were hostile toward him. All the prominent and religious figures of his time condemned him. But the Galatians didn’t care. That was a significant credit to them. And Paul makes sure to commend them for it. This kind of praise is something Paul doesn’t give to any of the other churches he wrote to.
St. Jerome and others of the ancient fathers allege this infirmity of Paul's to have been some physical defect, or concupiscence. Jerome and the other diagnosticians lived at a time when the Church enjoyed peace and prosperity, when the bishops increased in wealth and standing, when pastors and bishops no longer sat over the Word of God. No wonder they failed to understand Paul.
St. Jerome and other early church leaders suggested that Paul's weakness was some kind of physical flaw or strong desire. Jerome and the other experts lived when the Church was thriving, with bishops gaining wealth and status, and when pastors and bishops weren't focused on the Word of God. It's no surprise they didn't grasp Paul's message.
When Paul speaks of the infirmity of his flesh he does not mean some physical defect or carnal lust, but the sufferings and afflictions which he endured in his body. What these infirmities were he himself explains in II Corinthians 12:9, 10: "Most gladly therefore will I rather glory in my infirmities, that the power of Christ may rest upon me. Therefore I take pleasure in infirmities, in reproaches, in necessities, in persecutions, in distresses for Christ's sake: for when I am weak, then am I strong." And in the eleventh chapter of the same Epistle the Apostle writes: "In labors more abundant, in stripes above measure, in prisons more frequent, in deaths oft. Of the Jews five times received I forty stripes save one. Thrice was I beaten with rods, once was I stoned, thrice I suffered shipwreck," etc. (II Cor. 11:23-25.) By the infirmity of his flesh Paul meant these afflictions and not some chronic disease. He reminds the Galatians how he was always in peril at the hands of the Jews, Gentiles, and false brethren, how he suffered hunger and want.
When Paul talks about the weakness of his flesh, he’s not referring to a physical flaw or sexual desire, but to the pain and hardships he faced in his body. He explains what these weaknesses were in II Corinthians 12:9-10: "So I am quite happy to boast about my weaknesses, so that the power of Christ may rest on me. That’s why I take pleasure in weaknesses, in insults, in needs, in persecutions, in difficulties for Christ’s sake: for when I am weak, then I am strong." In the eleventh chapter of the same letter, the Apostle writes: "I have worked harder, been beaten more times than I can count, been imprisoned more often, faced death many times. From the Jews, I received forty lashes minus one five times. Three times I was beaten with rods, once I was stoned, three times I was shipwrecked," etc. (II Cor. 11:23-25.) By the weakness of his flesh, Paul meant these hardships and not some chronic illness. He reminds the Galatians how he was constantly in danger from Jews, Gentiles, and false brothers, and how he suffered from hunger and need.
Now, the afflictions of the believers always offend people. Paul knew it and therefore has high praise for the Galatians because they overlooked his afflictions and received him like an angel. Christ forewarned the faithful against the offense of the Cross, saying: "Blessed is he, whosoever shall not be offended in me." (Matt. 11:6.) Surely it is no easy thing to confess Him Lord of all and Savior of the world who was a reproach of men, and despised of the people, and the laughing stock of the world. (Ps. 22:7.) I say, to value this poor Christ, so spitefully scorned, spit upon, scourged, and crucified, more than the riches of the richest, the strength of the strongest, the wisdom of the wisest, is something. It is worth being called blessed.
Now, the struggles of believers often bother people. Paul understood this and thus praised the Galatians for overlooking his hardships and welcoming him like an angel. Christ warned the faithful about the offense of the Cross, saying: "Blessed is he, whoever shall not be offended in me." (Matt. 11:6.) It's definitely not easy to acknowledge Him as Lord of all and Savior of the world, considering He was a target of scorn, despised by the people, and mocked by the world. (Ps. 22:7.) I mean, to value this humble Christ, who was cruelly ridiculed, spat on, beaten, and crucified, more than the wealth of the richest, the strength of the strongest, and the wisdom of the wisest, is truly remarkable. It's something worth being called blessed.
Paul not only had outward afflictions but also inner, spiritual afflictions. He refers to these in II Corinthians 7:6, "Without were fightings, within were fears." In his letter to the Philippians Paul makes mention of the restoration of Epaphroditus as a special act of mercy on the part of God, "lest I should have sorrow upon sorrow."
Paul faced external struggles as well as internal, spiritual challenges. He mentions these in II Corinthians 7:6, "Outside there were conflicts, inside there were fears." In his letter to the Philippians, Paul highlights the recovery of Epaphroditus as a special act of kindness from God, "so that I wouldn’t have sorrow piled on top of sorrow."
Considering the many afflictions of Paul, we are not surprised to hear him loudly praising the Galatians for not being offended at him as others were. The world thinks us mad because we go about to comfort, to help, to save others while we ourselves are in distress. People tell us: "Physician, heal thyself." (Luke 4:23.)
Considering all Paul’s struggles, it’s no surprise that he wholeheartedly praises the Galatians for not being offended by him like others were. The world sees us as crazy because we try to comfort, help, and save others even while we’re dealing with our own troubles. People say to us: "Physician, heal thyself." (Luke 4:23.)
The Apostle tells the Galatians that he will keep their kindness in perpetual remembrance. Indirectly, he also reminds them how much they had loved him before the invasion of the false apostles, and gives them a hint that they should return to their first love for him.
The Apostle tells the Galatians that he will always remember their kindness. He also subtly reminds them of how much they used to care for him before the false apostles showed up, suggesting they should go back to loving him like they did at first.
VERSE 15. Where is then the blessedness ye spake of?
VERSE 15. Where is the happiness you talked about?
"How much happier you used to be. And how you Galatians used to tell me that you were blessed. And how much did I not praise and commend you formerly." Paul reminds them of former and better times in an effort to mitigate his sharp reproaches, lest the false apostles should slander him and misconstrue his letter to his disadvantage and to their own advantage. Such snakes in the grass are equal to anything. They will pervert words spoken from a sincere heart and twist them to mean just the opposite of what they were intended to convey. They are like spiders that suck venom out of sweet and fragrant flowers. The poison is not in the flowers, but it is the nature of the spider to turn what is good and wholesome into poison.
"How much happier you used to be. And how you Galatians used to tell me that you were blessed. And how much I praised and admired you back then." Paul reminds them of better times to soften his strong criticisms, so the false apostles can't twist his words or misinterpret his letter for their own benefit. These deceptive individuals are capable of anything. They will distort words spoken from a genuine heart and twist them to mean the exact opposite of what they were meant to convey. They’re like spiders that extract poison from sweet and fragrant flowers. The poison isn't in the flowers; it's just the spider's nature to corrupt what is good and wholesome into something toxic.
VERSE 15. For I bear you record, that, if it had been possible, ye would have plucked out your own eyes, and have given them to me.
VERSE 15. I testify that if it had been possible, you would have torn out your own eyes and given them to me.
The Apostle continues his praise of the Galatians. "You did not only treat me very courteously. If it had been necessary you would have plucked out your eyes and sacrificed your lives for me." And in very fact the Galatians sacrificed their lives for Paul. By receiving and maintaining Paul they called upon their own heads the hatred and malice of all the Jews and Gentiles.
The Apostle keeps praising the Galatians. "You not only treated me with great kindness; if it had been necessary, you would have ripped out your own eyes and given your lives for me." And in reality, the Galatians did sacrifice for Paul. By accepting and supporting Paul, they brought upon themselves the hatred and hostility of all the Jews and Gentiles.
Nowadays the name of Luther carries the same stigma. Whoever praises Luther is a worse sinner than an idolater, perjurer, or thief.
Nowadays, the name Luther carries the same stigma. Anyone who praises Luther is considered a worse sinner than an idolater, a liar, or a thief.
VERSE 16. Am I therefore become your enemy, because I tell you the truth?
VERSE 16. Am I now your enemy just because I’m telling you the truth?
Paul's reason for praising the Galatians is to avoid giving them the impression as if he were their enemy because he had reprimanded them.
Paul praises the Galatians to make sure they don't see him as their enemy just because he's criticized them.
A true friend will admonish his erring brother, and if the erring brother has any sense at all he will thank his friend. In the world truth produces hatred. Whoever speaks the truth is counted an enemy. But among friends it is not so, much less among Christians. The Apostle wants his Galatians to know that just because he had told them the truth they are not to think that he dislikes them. "I told you the truth because I love you."
A true friend will point out when his friend is wrong, and if the friend has any sense, he will appreciate that. In the world, speaking the truth can lead to resentment. Those who are honest are often seen as enemies. But among friends, especially among Christians, that's not the case. The Apostle wants the Galatians to understand that just because he has told them the truth, it doesn't mean he doesn't care about them. "I told you the truth because I love you."
VERSE 17. They zealously affect you, but not well.
VERSE 17. They are very enthusiastic about you, but not for your benefit.
Paul takes the false apostles to task for their flattery. Satan's satellites softsoap the people. Paul calls it "by good words and fair speeches to deceive the hearts of the simple." (Romans 16:18.)
Paul criticizes the false apostles for their flattery. Satan's followers sweet-talk the people. Paul calls it "by good words and fair speeches to deceive the hearts of the simple." (Romans 16:18.)
They tell me that by my stubbornness in this doctrine of the Sacrament I am destroying the harmony of the church. They say it would be better if we would make some slight concession rather than cause such commotion and controversy in the Church regarding an article which is not even one of the fundamental doctrines. My reply is, cursed be any love or harmony which demands for its preservation that we place the Word of God in jeopardy!
They say that my stubbornness about this belief in the Sacrament is ruining the unity of the church. They think it would be better if we made some minor concession instead of causing so much disruption and debate in the Church over an issue that isn't even one of the core beliefs. My response is, cursed be any love or unity that requires us to compromise the Word of God!
VERSE 17. Yea, they would exclude you, that ye might affect them.
VERSE 17. Yes, they would shut you out so that you could be influenced by them.
"Do you Galatians know why the false apostles are so zealous about you? They expect you to reciprocate. And that would leave me out. If their zeal were right they would not mind your loving me. But they hate my doctrine and want to stamp it out. In order to bring this to pass they go about to alienate your hearts from me and to make me obnoxious to you." In this way Paul brings the false apostles into suspicion. He questions their motives. He maintains that their zeal is mere pretense to deceive the Galatians. Our Savior Christ also warned us, saying: "Beware of false prophets, which come to you in sheep's clothing." (Matt. 7:15.)
"Do you Galatians know why the false apostles are so eager about you? They want you to give back to them, and that would leave me out. If their enthusiasm was genuine, they wouldn’t mind you loving me. But they dislike my teaching and want to get rid of it. To make that happen, they try to turn you against me and make me seem unappealing to you." In this way, Paul raises doubts about the false apostles. He questions their intentions. He argues that their zeal is just a facade to mislead the Galatians. Our Savior Christ also warned us, saying: "Watch out for false prophets, who come to you in sheep's clothing." (Matt. 7:15.)
Paul was considerably disturbed by the commissions and changes that followed in the wake of his preaching. He was accused of being "a pestilent fellow, a mover of sedition among all the Jews throughout the world." (Acts 24:5.) In Philippi the townspeople cried that he troubled their city and taught customs which were not lawful for them to receive. (Acts 16:20, 21.)
Paul was deeply troubled by the reactions and changes that came after his preaching. He was labeled "a dangerous man, stirring up trouble among all the Jews everywhere." (Acts 24:5.) In Philippi, the locals shouted that he was causing problems for their city and promoting practices that were illegal for them to accept. (Acts 16:20, 21.)
All troubles, calamities, famines, wars were laid to the charge of the Gospel of the apostles. However, the apostles were not deterred by such calumnies from preaching the Gospel. They knew that they "ought to obey God rather than men," and that it was better for the world to be upset than to be ignorant of Christ.
All the problems, disasters, famines, and wars were blamed on the teachings of the apostles. However, the apostles didn’t let these false accusations stop them from spreading the Gospel. They believed that they "ought to obey God rather than men," and that it was better for the world to be upset than to remain unaware of Christ.
Do you think for a moment that these reactions did not worry the apostles? They were not made of iron. They foresaw the revolutionary character of the Gospel. They also foresaw the dissensions that would creep into the Church. It was bad news for Paul when he heard that the Corinthians were denying the resurrection of the dead, that the churches he had planted were experiencing all kinds of difficulties, and that the Gospel was being supplanted by false doctrines.
Do you really think these reactions didn’t concern the apostles? They weren’t made of steel. They anticipated the radical nature of the Gospel. They also predicted the conflicts that would emerge in the Church. It was troubling for Paul when he learned that the Corinthians were rejecting the resurrection of the dead, that the churches he had established were facing various challenges, and that false teachings were replacing the Gospel.
But Paul also knew that the Gospel was not to blame. He did not resign his office because he knew that the Gospel he preached was the power of God unto salvation to every one that believes.
But Paul also knew that the Gospel wasn’t at fault. He didn’t give up his position because he understood that the Gospel he preached was the power of God for salvation to everyone who believes.
The same criticism which was leveled at the apostles is leveled at us. The doctrine of the Gospel, we are told, is the cause of all the present unrest in the world. There is no wrong that is not laid to our charge. But why? We do not spread wicked lies. We preach the glad tidings of Christ. Our opponents will bear us out when we say that we never fail to urge respect for the constituted authorities, because that is the will of God.
The same criticism that was aimed at the apostles is directed at us. We're told that the teachings of the Gospel are behind all the current unrest in the world. There’s no wrong that isn’t blamed on us. But why? We don’t spread malicious falsehoods. We share the good news of Christ. Our critics can confirm that we consistently encourage respect for the established authorities, as that is what God wants.
All of these vilifications cannot discourage us. We know that there is nothing the devil hates worse than the Gospel. It is one of his little tricks to blame the Gospel for every evil in the world. Formerly, when the traditions of the fathers were taught in the Church, the devil was not excited as he is now. It goes to show that our doctrine is of God, else "behemoth would lie under shady trees, in the covert of the reed, and fens." The fact that he is again walking about as a roaring lion to stir up riots and disorders is a sure sign that he has begun to feel the effect of our preaching.
All of these criticisms won't deter us. We know that there's nothing the devil hates more than the Gospel. It's one of his tricks to blame the Gospel for every evil in the world. Back when the Church taught the traditions of the elders, the devil wasn't as stirred up as he is now. This shows that our teaching is from God; otherwise, "behemoth would lie under shady trees, in the covert of the reed, and fens." The fact that he’s roaming around like a roaring lion trying to incite riots and chaos is a clear sign that he’s starting to feel the impact of our preaching.
VERSE 18. But it is good to be zealously affected always in a good thing, and not only when I am present with you.
VERSE 18. But it’s good to be passionate about doing good all the time, not just when I’m with you.
"When I was present with you, you loved me, although I preached the Gospel to you in the infirmity of my flesh. The fact that I am now absent from you ought not to change your attitude towards me. Although I am absent in the flesh, I am with you in spirit and in my doctrine which you ought to retain by all means because through it you received the Holy Spirit."
"When I was with you, you cared for me, even though I shared the Gospel while dealing with my own weaknesses. My absence shouldn't affect how you feel about me. Even though I'm not physically present, I'm with you in spirit and through the teachings you should hold onto because it's through them that you received the Holy Spirit."
VERSE 19. My little children, of whom I travail in birth again until Christ be formed in you.
VERSE 19. My dear children, for whom I am in labor again until Christ is formed in you.
With every single word the Apostle seeks to regain the confidence of the Galatians. He now calls them lovingly his little children. He adds the simile: "Of whom I travail in birth again." As parents reproduce their physical characteristics in their children, so the apostles reproduced their faith in the hearts of the hearers, until Christ was formed in them. A person has the form of Christ when he believes in Christ to the exclusion of everything else. This faith in Christ is engendered by the Gospel as the Apostle declares in I Corinthians 4:15: "In Christ Jesus I have begotten you through the Gospel"; and in II Corinthians 3:3, "Ye are the epistle of Christ ministered by us, written not with ink, but with the Spirit of the living God." The Word of God falling from the lips of the apostle or minister enters into the heart of the hearer. The Holy Ghost impregnates the Word so that it brings forth the fruit of faith. In this manner every Christian pastor is a spiritual father who forms Christ in the hearts of his hearers.
With every word, the Apostle tries to win back the trust of the Galatians. He affectionately calls them his little children. He adds the comparison: "Of whom I travail in birth again." Just as parents pass on their physical traits to their kids, the apostles instilled their faith in the hearts of those who listened until Christ was formed in them. A person embodies the form of Christ when they believe in Him above all else. This faith in Christ is nurtured by the Gospel, as the Apostle says in I Corinthians 4:15: "In Christ Jesus I have begotten you through the Gospel"; and in II Corinthians 3:3, "You are the epistle of Christ ministered by us, written not with ink, but with the Spirit of the living God." The Word of God spoken by the apostle or minister sinks into the heart of the listener. The Holy Spirit infuses the Word so that it produces the fruit of faith. In this way, every Christian pastor serves as a spiritual father who cultivates Christ in the hearts of his listeners.
At the same time Paul indicts the false apostles. He says: "I have begotten you Galatians through the Gospel, giving you the form of Christ. But these false apostles are giving you a new form, the form of Moses." Note the Apostle does not say, "Of whom I travail in birth again until I be formed in you," but "until Christ be formed in you." The false apostles had torn the form of Christ out of the hearts of the Galatians and substituted their own form. Paul endeavors to reform them, or rather reform Christ in them.
At the same time, Paul points out the false apostles. He says: "I have brought you Galatians to life through the Gospel, giving you the essence of Christ. But these false apostles are giving you a new essence, the essence of Moses." Notice that the Apostle does not say, "Of whom I am in labor again until I am formed in you," but "until Christ is formed in you." The false apostles had taken the essence of Christ out of the hearts of the Galatians and replaced it with their own essence. Paul aims to restore them, or rather, to restore Christ in them.
VERSE 20. I desire to be present with you now, and to change my voice.
VERSE 20. I wish I could be with you right now and change how I'm speaking.
A common saying has it that a letter is a dead messenger. Something is lacking in all writing. You can never be sure how the written page will affect the reader, because his mood, his circumstances, his affections are so changeable. It is different with the spoken word. If it is harsh and ill-timed it can always be remodeled. No wonder the Apostle expresses the wish that he could speak to the Galatians in person. He could change his voice according to their attitude. If he saw that they were repentant he could soften the tone of his voice. If he saw that they were stubborn he could speak to them more earnestly. This way he did not know how to deal with them by letter. If his Epistle is too severe it will do more damage than good. If it is too gentle, it will not correct conditions. But if he could be with them in person he could change his voice as the occasion demanded.
A common saying goes that a letter is a dead messenger. There's always something missing in writing. You can never really know how the words on a page will impact the reader, since their mood, circumstances, and feelings can change so easily. The spoken word is different. If it's harsh or poorly timed, it can always be adjusted. That’s why the Apostle wishes he could talk to the Galatians in person. He could adjust his tone based on their vibe. If he noticed they were feeling remorseful, he could soften his voice. If they seemed stubborn, he could be more intense. He just can’t figure out how to address them through a letter. If his letter comes off too harsh, it might do more harm than good. If it’s too gentle, it won’t fix the issues. But if he were there in person, he could adapt his tone to fit the situation.
VERSE 20. For I stand in doubt of you.
VERSE 20. I'm uncertain about you.
"I do not know how to take you. I do not know how to approach you by letter." In order to make sure that he leaves no stone unturned in his effort to recall them to the Gospel of Christ, he chides, entreats, praises, and blames the Galatians, trying every way to hit the right note and tone of voice.
"I’m not sure how to reach you. I don’t know how to communicate with you through this letter." To ensure he explores every avenue in his attempt to bring them back to the message of Christ, he scolds, pleads, compliments, and criticizes the Galatians, trying every possible way to find the right note and tone.
VERSE 21. Tell me, ye that desire to be under the law, do ye not hear the law?
VERSE 21. Tell me, those of you who want to be under the law, do you not listen to the law?
Here Paul would have closed his Epistle because he did not know what else to say. He wishes he could see the Galatians in person and straighten out their difficulties. But he is not sure whether the Galatians have fully understood the difference between the Gospel and the Law. To make sure, he introduces another illustration. He knows people like illustrations and stories. He knows that Christ Himself made ample use of parables.
Here, Paul would have wrapped up his letter because he didn't know what else to say. He wishes he could meet the Galatians face-to-face to help resolve their issues. But he isn't sure if the Galatians truly grasp the difference between the Gospel and the Law. To clarify, he brings in another example. He knows people appreciate illustrations and stories. He knows that Christ Himself frequently used parables.
Paul is an expert at allegories. They are dangerous things. Unless a person has a thorough knowledge of Christian doctrine he had better leave allegories alone.
Paul is really good at allegories. They can be tricky. If someone doesn't have a deep understanding of Christian beliefs, it's better to steer clear of allegories.
The allegory which Paul is about to bring is taken from the Book of Genesis which he calls the Law. True, that book contains no mention of the Law. Paul simply follows the custom of the Jews who included the first book of Moses in the collective term, "Law." Jesus even included the Psalms.
The allegory that Paul is about to present comes from the Book of Genesis, which he refers to as the Law. It's true that that book doesn't actually mention the Law. Paul is just following the tradition of the Jews, who referred to the first book of Moses with the broader term "Law." Jesus even included the Psalms.
VERSES 22, 23. For it is written, that Abraham had two sons, the one by a bondmaid, the other by a freewoman. But he who was of the bondwoman was born after the flesh; but he of the freewoman was by promise.
VERSES 22, 23. For it is written that Abraham had two sons, one by a slave woman and the other by a free woman. The son of the slave woman was born in a natural way, but the son of the free woman was born through a promise.
This is Paul's allegory. Abraham had two sons: Ishmael by Hagar, and Isaac by Sarah. They were both the true sons of Abraham, with this difference, that Ishmael was born after the flesh, i.e., without the commandment and promise of God, while Isaac was born according to the promise.
This is Paul's allegory. Abraham had two sons: Ishmael by Hagar, and Isaac by Sarah. They were both true sons of Abraham, but with this difference: Ishmael was born the natural way, without God's command or promise, while Isaac was born according to the promise.
With the permission of Sarah, Abraham took Hagar, Sarah's bondwoman, to wife. Sarah knew that God had promised to make her husband Abraham the father of a nation, and she hoped that she would be the mother of this promised nation. But with the passage of the years her hope died out. In order that the promise of God should not be annulled by her barrenness this holy woman resigned her right and honor to her maid. This was no easy thing for her to do. She abased herself. She thought: "God is no liar. What He has promised He will perform. But perhaps God does not want me to be the mother of Abraham's posterity. Perhaps He prefers Hagar for the honor."
With Sarah's permission, Abraham married Hagar, Sarah's servant. Sarah knew that God had promised to make Abraham the father of a great nation, and she hoped to be the mother of that promised nation. But as the years went by, her hope faded away. To ensure that God's promise wouldn't be invalidated by her inability to have children, this devoted woman gave up her rights and honor to her maid. It wasn't an easy decision for her. She humbled herself, thinking: "God doesn't lie. What He has promised, He will deliver. But maybe God doesn’t want me to be the mother of Abraham's descendants. Maybe He prefers Hagar for that role."
Ishmael was thus born without a special word or promise of God, at the mere request of Sarah. God did not command Abraham to take Hagar, nor did God promise to bless the coalition. It is evident that Ishmael was the son of Abraham after the flesh, and not after the promise.
Ishmael was born without any special word or promise from God, just at Sarah's request. God didn't tell Abraham to take Hagar, nor did He promise to bless the arrangement. It's clear that Ishmael was Abraham's son in a physical sense, not according to the promise.
In the ninth chapter of the Epistle to the Romans St. Paul advances the same argument which he amplifies into an allegory in writing to the Galatians. There he argues that all the children of Abraham are not the children of God. For Abraham had two kinds of children, children born of the promise, like Isaac, and other children born without the promise, as Ishmael. With this argument Paul squelched the proud Jews who gloried that they were the children of God because they were the seed and the children of Abraham. Paul makes it clear enough that it takes more than an Abrahamic pedigree to be a child of God. To be a child of God requires faith in Christ.
In the ninth chapter of the Epistle to the Romans, St. Paul makes the same point that he expands into an allegory in his letter to the Galatians. There, he argues that not all of Abraham's children are considered children of God. Abraham had two types of children: those born of the promise, like Isaac, and those born without the promise, like Ishmael. With this argument, Paul silenced the proud Jews who boasted that they were children of God simply because they were descendants of Abraham. Paul makes it clear that having an Abrahamic lineage isn’t enough to be a child of God; it requires faith in Christ.
VERSE 24. Which things are an allegory.
VERSE 24. These things are an allegory.
Allegories are not very convincing, but like pictures they visualize a matter. If Paul had not brought in advance indisputable arguments for the righteousness of faith over against the righteousness of works this allegory would do little good. Having first fortified his case with invincible arguments, he can afford to inject this allegory to add impressiveness and beauty to his presentation.
Allegories aren't always very convincing, but like images, they help illustrate a point. If Paul hadn't provided clear arguments proving that faith is more valid than works beforehand, this allegory wouldn't be very effective. After strengthening his case with solid arguments, he can use this allegory to enhance the impact and appeal of his message.
VERSES 24, 25. For these are the two covenants; the one from the mount Sinai, which gendereth to bondage, which is Agar. For this Agar is mount Sinai in Arabia.
VERSES 24, 25. These two represent the two covenants; one is from Mount Sinai, which leads to bondage, and that is Hagar. For Hagar represents Mount Sinai in Arabia.
In this allegory Abraham represents God. Abraham had two sons, born respectively of Hagar and Sarah. The two women represent the two Testaments. The Old Testament is Mount Sinai, the bondwoman, Hagar. The Arabians call Mount Sinai Agar. It may be that the similarity of these two names gave Paul his idea for this allegory. As Hagar bore Abraham a son who was not an heir but a servant, so Sinai, the Law, the allegorical Hagar, bore God a carnal and servile people of the Law without promise. The Law has a promise but it is a conditional promise, depending upon whether people fulfill the Law.
In this allegory, Abraham represents God. Abraham had two sons, born to Hagar and Sarah, respectively. The two women symbolize the two Testaments. The Old Testament is Mount Sinai, represented by the bondwoman Hagar. The Arabians refer to Mount Sinai as Agar. This similarity in names might have inspired Paul’s idea for this allegory. Just as Hagar gave birth to a son for Abraham who was not an heir but a servant, so Sinai, the Law—symbolic of Hagar—produced for God a people bound by the Law, lacking in promise. The Law does have a promise, but it’s conditional, relying on whether people adhere to the Law.
The Jews regarded the conditional promises of the Law as if they were unconditional. When the prophets foretold the destruction of Jerusalem, the Jews stoned them as blasphemers of God. They never gave it any thought that there was a condition attached to the Law which reads: "If you keep the commandments it shall be well with thee."
The Jews treated the conditional promises of the Law as if they were unconditional. When the prophets predicted the destruction of Jerusalem, the Jews stoned them, calling them blasphemers of God. They never considered that the Law included a condition that states: "If you keep the commandments, it will go well for you."
VERSE 25. And answereth to Jerusalem which now is, and is in bondage with her children.
VERSE 25. And responds to the Jerusalem that is now, and is in bondage with her children.
A little while ago Paul called Mount Sinai, Hagar. He would now gladly make Jerusalem the Sarah of the New Testament, but he cannot. The earthly Jerusalem is not Sarah, but a part of Hagar. Hagar lives there in the home of the Law, the Temple, the priesthood, the ceremonies, and whatever else was ordained in the Law at Mount Sinai.
A little while ago, Paul referred to Mount Sinai as Hagar. He would now happily make Jerusalem the Sarah of the New Testament, but he can’t. The earthly Jerusalem is not Sarah; it’s part of Hagar. Hagar resides there in the setting of the Law, the Temple, the priesthood, the rituals, and everything else established in the Law at Mount Sinai.
I would have been tempted to call Jerusalem, Sarah, or the New Testament. I would have been pleased with this turn of the allegory. It goes to show that not everybody has the gift of allegory. Would you not think it perfectly proper to call Sinai Hagar and Jerusalem Sarah? True, Paul does call Sarah Jerusalem. But he has the spiritual and heavenly Jerusalem in mind, not the earthly Jerusalem. Sarah represents that spiritual Jerusalem where there is no Law but only the promise, and where the inhabitants are free.
I would have been tempted to label Jerusalem as Sarah, or the New Testament. I would have found this twist in the allegory satisfying. It shows that not everyone has a knack for allegory. Wouldn’t you think it’s completely reasonable to call Sinai Hagar and Jerusalem Sarah? True, Paul does refer to Sarah as Jerusalem. But he’s thinking of the spiritual and heavenly Jerusalem, not the earthly one. Sarah represents that spiritual Jerusalem where there’s no Law, only the promise, and where the people are free.
To show that the Law has been quite abolished, the earthly Jerusalem was completely destroyed with all her ornaments, temples, and ceremonies.
To demonstrate that the Law has been entirely abolished, the earthly Jerusalem was utterly destroyed along with all its decorations, temples, and rituals.
VERSE 26. But Jerusalem which is above is free, which is the mother of us all.
VERSE 26. But the Jerusalem that is above is free, and she is the mother of us all.
The earthly Jerusalem with its ordinances and laws represents Hagar and her offspring. They are slaves to the Law, sin and death. But the heavenly Jerusalem is Sarah, the free woman. This heavenly Jerusalem is the Church, that is to say the number of all believers throughout the world, having one and the same Gospel, one and the same faith in Christ, one and the same Holy Ghost, and the same sacraments.
The earthly Jerusalem, with its rules and laws, represents Hagar and her descendants. They are in bondage to the Law, sin, and death. In contrast, the heavenly Jerusalem symbolizes Sarah, the free woman. This heavenly Jerusalem is the Church, meaning the collective of all believers around the world who share the same Gospel, the same faith in Christ, the same Holy Spirit, and the same sacraments.
Do not mistake this one word "above" to refer to the triumphant Church in heaven, but to the militant Church on earth. In Philippians 3:20, the Apostle uses the phrase: "Our conversation is in heaven," not locally in heaven, but in spirit. When a believer accepts the heavenly gifts of the Gospel he is in heaven. So also in Ephesians 1:3, "Who hath blessed us with all spiritual blessings in heavenly places in Christ." Jerusalem here means the universal Christian Church on earth.
Do not confuse the word "above" with the triumphant Church in heaven; it actually refers to the active Church on earth. In Philippians 3:20, the Apostle says, "Our conversation is in heaven," which doesn't mean literally being in heaven, but spiritually. When a believer embraces the heavenly gifts of the Gospel, they are considered to be in heaven. Likewise, in Ephesians 1:3, it states, "Who has blessed us with all spiritual blessings in heavenly places in Christ." Here, Jerusalem represents the universal Christian Church on earth.
Sarah, the Church, as the bride of Christ bears free children who are not subject to the Law.
Sarah, the Church, as the bride of Christ, has free children who are not bound by the Law.
VERSE 27. For it is written, Rejoice, thou barren that bearest not; break forth and cry, thou that travailest not: for the desolate hath many more children than she which hath an husband.
VERSE 27. For it is written, Rejoice, you who are barren and do not bear children; break forth and cry, you who have not gone into labor: for the desolate woman has many more children than the one who has a husband.
Paul quotes the allegorical prophecy of Isaiah to the effect that the mother of many children must die desolately, while the barren woman shall have an abundance of children. (Isaiah 54:1.) He applies this prophecy to Hagar and Sarah, to the Law and the Gospel. The Law as the husband of the fruitful woman procreates many children. For men of all ages have had the idea that they are right when they follow after the Law and outwardly perform its requirements.
Paul quotes the symbolic prophecy from Isaiah, stating that the woman with many children will end up devastated, while the childless woman will have plenty of children. (Isaiah 54:1.) He uses this prophecy to refer to Hagar and Sarah, representing the Law and the Gospel. The Law, as the partner of the fruitful woman, produces many children. Throughout history, people have believed they are correct when they adhere to the Law and fulfill its outward demands.
Although the Law has many children, they are not free. They are slaves. As servants they cannot have a share in the inheritance, but are driven from the house as Ishmael was cast out of the house of Abraham. In fact the servants of the Law are even now barred from the kingdom of light and liberty, for "he that believeth not, is condemned already." (John 3:18.) As the servants of the Law they remain under the curse of the Law, under sin and death, under the power of the devil, and under the wrath and judgment of God.
Although the Law has many followers, they are not truly free. They are bound. As servants, they cannot inherit but are kicked out just like Ishmael was cast out of Abraham's home. In fact, the followers of the Law are still kept out of the kingdom of light and freedom, for "whoever does not believe is already condemned." (John 3:18.) As the followers of the Law, they remain under the curse of the Law, trapped in sin and death, under the influence of the devil, and facing the wrath and judgment of God.
On the other hand, Sarah, the free Church, seems barren. The Gospel of the Cross which the Church proclaims does not have the appeal that the Law has for men, and therefore it does not find many adherents. The Church does not look prosperous. Unbelievers have always predicted the death of the Church. The Jews were quite certain that the Church would not long endure. They said to Paul: "As concerning this sect, we know that everywhere it is spoken against." (Acts 28:22.) No matter how barren and forsaken, how weak and desolate the Church may seem, she alone is really fruitful before God. By the Gospel she procreates an infinite number of children that are free heirs of everlasting life.
On the other hand, Sarah, the free Church, appears unfruitful. The Gospel of the Cross that the Church shares doesn't have the same appeal for people as the Law does, so it struggles to attract many followers. The Church doesn’t seem to be thriving. Unbelievers have always predicted the Church’s demise. The Jews were quite certain that the Church wouldn’t last long. They said to Paul: "As concerning this sect, we know that everywhere it is spoken against." (Acts 28:22.) No matter how barren and abandoned, how weak and desolate the Church may look, she is actually the only one that is truly fruitful before God. Through the Gospel, she brings forth countless children who are free heirs of eternal life.
The Law, "the old husband," is really dead. But not all people know it, or want to know it. They labor and bear the burden and the heat of the day, and bring forth many children, children that are bastards like themselves, children born to be put out of the house like Ishmael to perish forever. Accursed be that doctrine, life, and religion which endeavors to obtain righteousness before God by the Law and its creeds.
The Law, "the old husband," is truly dead. But not everyone realizes it, or wants to face that fact. They work hard, enduring the struggle and the heat of the day, and end up producing many children, kids that are just as lost as they are, children destined to be cast out like Ishmael to suffer indefinitely. Cursed be that belief, life, and religion that tries to achieve righteousness before God through the Law and its doctrines.
The scholastics think that the judicial and ceremonial laws of Moses were abolished by the coming of Christ, but not the moral law. They are blind. When Paul declares that we are delivered from the curse of the Law he means the whole Law, particularly the moral law which more than the other laws accuses, curses, and condemns the conscience. The Ten Commandments have no right to condemn that conscience in which Jesus dwells, for Jesus has taken from the Ten Commandments the right and power to curse us.
The scholars believe that the judicial and ceremonial laws of Moses were done away with by Christ's arrival, but they maintain that the moral law still stands. They are mistaken. When Paul says that we are freed from the curse of the Law, he is referring to the entire Law, especially the moral law, which more than the other laws judges, curses, and condemns our conscience. The Ten Commandments cannot condemn a conscience that belongs to Jesus, because Jesus has removed the authority and ability of the Ten Commandments to curse us.
Not as if the conscience is now insensitive to the terrors of the Law, but the Law cannot drive the conscience to despair. "There is now no condemnation to them which are in Christ Jesus." (Romans 8:1.) "If the Son shall make you free, ye shall be free indeed." (John 8:36.)
Not that the conscience is no longer affected by the fears of the Law, but the Law cannot push the conscience to hopelessness. "There is now no condemnation for those who are in Christ Jesus." (Romans 8:1.) "If the Son sets you free, you will be truly free." (John 8:36.)
You will complain: "But I am not doing anything." That is right. You cannot do a thing to be delivered from the tyranny of the Law. But listen to the glad tidings which the Holy Ghost brings to you in the words of the prophet: "Rejoice, thou barren." As Christ is greater than the Law, so much more excellent is the righteousness of Christ than the righteousness of the Law.
You might say, "But I’m not doing anything." That's true. You can't do anything to escape the control of the Law. But listen to the good news that the Holy Spirit shares with you through the prophet's words: "Rejoice, you who are barren." Just as Christ is greater than the Law, the righteousness of Christ is so much better than the righteousness of the Law.
In one more respect the Law has been abolished. The civil laws of Moses do not concern us, and should not be put back in force. That does not mean that we are exempt from obedience to the civil laws under which we live. On the contrary, the Gospel commands Christians to obey government "not only for wrath, but also for conscience sake." (Romans 13:5.)
In another way, the law has been set aside. The civil laws of Moses no longer apply to us and should not be reinstated. However, this doesn’t mean we’re free from following the civil laws of our society. In fact, the Gospel instructs Christians to obey the government "not only because of fear of punishment, but also for the sake of conscience." (Romans 13:5.)
Neither do the ordinances of Moses or those of the Pope concern us. But because life cannot go on without some ordinances, the Gospel permits regulations to be made in the Church in regard to special days, times, places, etc., in order that the people may know upon what day, at what hour, and in what place to assemble for the Word of God. Such directions are desirable that "all things be done decently and in order." (I Cor. 14:40.) These directions may be changed or omitted altogether, as long as no offense is given to the weak.
The laws of Moses or those of the Pope don't apply to us. However, since life can't function without some rules, the Gospel allows for guidelines to be set in the Church regarding specific days, times, places, etc., so that people know when and where to gather for the Word of God. These guidelines are useful to ensure that "everything is done properly and in order." (I Cor. 14:40.) These guidelines can be adjusted or even removed completely, as long as it doesn't offend those who are less strong in their faith.
Paul, however, refers particularly to the abolition of the moral law. If faith alone in Christ justifies, then the whole Law is abolished without exception. And this the Apostle proves by the testimony of Isaiah, who bids the barren to rejoice because she will have many children, whereas she that has a husband and many children will be forsaken.
Paul, however, specifically mentions the end of the moral law. If faith in Christ is what justifies us, then the entire Law is nullified without exception. The Apostle supports this by referencing Isaiah, who tells the barren woman to rejoice because she will have many children, while the one who is married and has many children will be left behind.
Isaiah calls the Church barren because her children are born without effort by the Word of faith through the Spirit of God. It is a matter of birth, not of exertion. The believer too works, but not in an effort to become a son and an heir of God. He is that before he goes to work. He is born a son and an heir. He works for the glory of God and the welfare of his fellowmen.
Isaiah refers to the Church as barren because her children come into being effortlessly through the Word of faith by the Spirit of God. It’s about being born, not about striving. The believer also puts in effort, but not to earn the status of a son and heir of God. He already has that status before he begins working. He is born a son and an heir. He works for the glory of God and the well-being of others.
VERSE 28. Now we, brethren, as Isaac was, are the children of promise.
VERSE 28. Now we, brothers, just like Isaac, are the children of promise.
The Jews claimed to be the children of God because they were the children of Abraham. Jesus answered them, John 8:39, 40, "If ye were Abraham's children, ye would do the works of Abraham. But now ye seek to kill me, a man that hath told you the truth." And in verse 42: "If God were your Father, ye would love me." In other words: "You are not the children of God. If you were, you would know and love me. Brothers born and living together in the same house recognize each other. You do not recognize me. You are of your father, the devil."
The Jews said they were children of God because they were descendants of Abraham. Jesus responded to them, John 8:39, 40, "If you were Abraham's children, you would do the works of Abraham. But now, you’re trying to kill me, a man who's told you the truth." And in verse 42: "If God were your Father, you would love me." In other words: "You are not children of God. If you were, you would know and love me. Brothers born and living in the same house recognize each other. You do not recognize me. You belong to your father, the devil."
We are not like these Jews, the children of the bondwoman, the Law, who were cast out of the house by Jesus. We are children of the promise like Isaac, born of grace and faith unto an everlasting inheritance.
We aren’t like those Jews, the children of the slave woman, the Law, who were kicked out of the house by Jesus. We are children of the promise, just like Isaac, born of grace and faith, destined for an eternal inheritance.
VERSE 29. But as that he that was born after the flesh persecuted him that was born after the Spirit, even so it is now.
VERSE 29. But just as the one born of the flesh persecuted the one born of the Spirit, so it is now.
This is a cheering thought. We who are born of the Gospel, and live in Christ, and rejoice in our inheritance, have Ishmael for our enemy. The children of the Law will always persecute the children of the Gospel. This is our daily experience. Our opponents tell us that everything was at peace before the Gospel was revived by us. Since then the whole world has been upset. People blame us and the Gospel for everything, for the disobedience of subjects to their rulers, for wars, plagues, and famines, for revolutions, and every other evil that can be imagined. No wonder our opponents think they are doing God a favor by hating and persecuting us. Ishmael will persecute Isaac.
This is an uplifting thought. We who are born of the Gospel, live in Christ, and take joy in our inheritance, have Ishmael as our enemy. The children of the Law will always target the children of the Gospel. This is our daily reality. Our critics claim that everything was peaceful before we revived the Gospel. Since then, the whole world has been thrown into chaos. People blame us and the Gospel for everything—disobedience of subjects to their rulers, wars, plagues, famines, revolutions, and all kinds of other evils. It’s no surprise that our critics believe they are doing God a service by hating and persecuting us. Ishmael will persecute Isaac.
We invite our opponents to tell us what good things attended the preaching of the Gospel by the apostles. Did not the destruction of Jerusalem follow on the heels of the Gospel? And how about the overthrow of the Roman Empire? Did not the whole world seethe with unrest as the Gospel was preached in the whole world? We do not say that the Gospel instigated these upheavals. The iniquity of man did it.
We challenge our opponents to share the positive outcomes of the apostles' preaching of the Gospel. Didn't the destruction of Jerusalem come right after the Gospel was spread? What about the fall of the Roman Empire? Wasn't the entire world in turmoil as the Gospel was proclaimed everywhere? We're not claiming that the Gospel caused these events. It was the wickedness of humanity that did.
Our opponents blame our doctrine for the present turmoil. But ours is a doctrine of grace and peace. It does not stir up trouble. Trouble starts when the people, the nations and their rulers of the earth rage and take counsel together against the Lord, and against His anointed. (Psalm 2.) But all their counsels shall be brought to naught. "He that sitteth in the heavens shall laugh: the Lord shall have them in derision." (Psalm 2:4.) Let them cry out against us as much as they like. We know that they are the cause of all their own troubles.
Our critics blame our beliefs for the current chaos. But we believe in grace and peace. Our teachings don’t incite conflict. Conflict arises when people, nations, and their leaders rage and plot against the Lord and His chosen one. (Psalm 2.) But their plans will ultimately fail. "He who sits in heaven will laugh; the Lord will mock them." (Psalm 2:4.) Let them shout against us as much as they want. We know they are the source of their own problems.
As long as we preach Christ and confess Him to be our Savior, we must be content to be called vicious trouble makers. "These that have turned the world upside down are come hither also; and these all do contrary to the decrees of Caesar," so said the Jews of Paul and Silas. (Acts 17:6, 7.) Of Paul they said: "We have found this man a pestilent fellow, and a mover of sedition among all the Jews throughout the world, and a ringleader of the sect of the Nazarenes." The Gentiles uttered similar complaints: "These men do exceedingly trouble our city."
As long as we spread the message of Christ and acknowledge Him as our Savior, we have to accept being labeled as troublesome troublemakers. "These people have turned the world upside down and have come here too; and they are all acting against the laws of Caesar," said the Jews about Paul and Silas. (Acts 17:6, 7.) They accused Paul: "We’ve found this man to be a harmful individual, stirring up trouble among all the Jews around the world, and he’s a leader of the group of Nazarenes." The Gentiles had similar complaints: "These men are causing major disruption in our city."
This man Luther is also accused of being a pestilent fellow who troubles the papacy and the Roman empire. If I would keep silent, all would be well, and the Pope would no more persecute me. The moment I open my mouth the Pope begins to fume and to rage. It seems we must choose between Christ and the Pope. Let the Pope perish.
This man Luther is also accused of being a troublesome guy who causes problems for the papacy and the Roman Empire. If I stayed quiet, everything would be fine, and the Pope wouldn’t bother me anymore. The moment I speak up, the Pope starts to get angry and aggressive. It seems we have to choose between Christ and the Pope. Let the Pope be done for.
Christ foresaw the reaction of the world to the Gospel. He said: "I am come to send fire on the earth, and what will I, if it be already kindled?" (Luke 12:49.)
Christ predicted how the world would respond to the Gospel. He said: "I have come to bring fire to the earth, and how I wish it were already set ablaze!" (Luke 12:49.)
Do not take the statement of our opponents seriously, that no good can come of the preaching of the Gospel. What do they know? They would not recognize the fruits of the Gospel if they saw them.
Do not take our opponents' claims seriously that no good can come from preaching the Gospel. What do they know? They wouldn't recognize the benefits of the Gospel even if they saw them.
At any rate, our opponents cannot accuse us of adultery, murder, theft, and such crimes. The worst they can say about us is that we have the Gospel. What is wrong with the Gospel? We teach that Christ, the Son of God, has redeemed us from sin and everlasting death. This is not our doctrine. It belongs to Christ. If there is anything wrong with it, it is not our fault. If they want to condemn Christ for being our Savior and Redeemer, that is their lookout. We are mere onlookers, watching to see who will win the victory, Christ or His opponents.
At the end of the day, our critics can't accuse us of adultery, murder, theft, or any of those serious crimes. The worst they can say about us is that we have the Gospel. What's wrong with the Gospel? We teach that Christ, the Son of God, has saved us from sin and eternal death. This isn't our teaching; it belongs to Christ. If there's anything wrong with it, that's not on us. If they want to blame Christ for being our Savior and Redeemer, that's their issue. We're just bystanders, waiting to see who comes out on top, Christ or His foes.
On one occasion Jesus remarked: "If ye were of the world, the world would love his own, but because ye are not of the world, but I have chosen you out of the world, therefore the world hateth you." (John 15:19.) In other words: "I am the cause of all your troubles. I am the one for whose sake you are killed. If you did not confess my name, the world would not hate you. The servant is not greater than his lord. If they have persecuted me, they will also persecute you."
On one occasion, Jesus said, "If you belonged to the world, the world would love you as its own. But since you do not belong to the world and I have chosen you out of the world, that's why the world hates you." (John 15:19.) In other words: "I'm the reason for all your struggles. I'm the one for whom you are being killed. If you didn't acknowledge my name, the world wouldn’t treat you this way. A servant is not greater than their master. If they persecuted me, they will also persecute you."
Christ takes all the blame. He says: "You have not incurred the hatred and persecutions of the world. I have. But be of good cheer; I have overcome the world."
Christ takes all the blame. He says: "You haven't faced the hatred and persecution of the world. I have. But be cheerful; I have conquered the world."
VERSE 30. Nevertheless what saith the Scripture? Cast out the bondwoman and her son: for the son of the bondwoman shall not be heir with the son of the free woman.
VERSE 30. Nevertheless, what does the Scripture say? Throw out the bondwoman and her son; for the son of the bondwoman will not share in the inheritance with the son of the free woman.
Sarah's demand that the bondwoman and her son be cast out of the house was undoubtedly a blow to Abraham. He felt sorry for his son Ishmael. The Scripture explicitly states Abraham's grief in the words: "And the thing was very grievous in Abraham's sight, because of his son." (Gen. 21:11.) But God approved Sarah's action and said to Abraham: "Let it not be grievous in thy sight because of the lad, and because of thy bondwoman; in all that Sarah hath said unto thee, hearken unto her voice; for in Isaac shall thy seed be called." (Gen. 21:12.)
Sarah's demand to throw out the bondwoman and her son was definitely a shock to Abraham. He felt bad for his son Ishmael. The Scripture clearly shows Abraham's sadness with the words: "And the thing was very grievous in Abraham's sight, because of his son." (Gen. 21:11.) But God supported Sarah's decision and told Abraham: "Let it not be grievous in thy sight because of the lad, and because of thy bondwoman; in all that Sarah hath said unto thee, hearken unto her voice; for in Isaac shall thy seed be called." (Gen. 21:12.)
The Holy Ghost contemptuously calls the admirers of the Law the children of the bondwoman. "If you do not know your mother, I will tell you what kind of a woman she is. She is a slave. And you are slaves. You are slaves of the Law and therefore slaves of sin, death, and everlasting damnation. You are not fit to be heirs. You are put out of the house."
The Holy Spirit scornfully refers to the followers of the Law as the children of the slave woman. "If you don’t know who your mother is, let me enlighten you. She is a slave. And you are slaves. You are slaves to the Law and, as a result, slaves to sin, death, and eternal damnation. You’re not worthy to be heirs. You’ve been cast out of the house."
This is the sentence which God pronounces upon the Ishmaelites, the papists, and all others who trust in their own merits, and persecute the Church of Christ. Because they are slaves and persecutors of the children of the free woman, they shall be cast out of the house of God forever. They shall have no inheritance with the children of the promise. This sentence stands forever.
This is the statement that God makes about the Ishmaelites, the Catholics, and everyone else who relies on their own merits and persecutes the Church of Christ. Because they are slaves and oppressors of the children of the free woman, they will be expelled from the house of God forever. They will have no share with the children of the promise. This statement lasts forever.
This sentence affects not only those popes, cardinals bishops, and monks who were notoriously wicked and made their bellies their Gods. It strikes, also, those who lived in all sincerity to please God and to merit the forgiveness of their sins through a life of self-denial. Even these will be cast out, because they are children of the bondwoman.
This statement impacts not just the popes, cardinals, bishops, and monks who were clearly corrupt and let their appetites take precedence over everything. It also affects those who genuinely tried to honor God and earn forgiveness for their sins through a life of self-discipline. Even they will be rejected, because they are children of the bondwoman.
Our opponents do not defend their own moral delinquency. The better ones deplore and abhor it. But they defend and uphold their doctrine of works which is of the devil. Our quarrel is not with those who live in manifest sins. Our quarrel is with those among them who think they live like angels, claiming that they do not only perform the Ten Commandments of God, but also the sayings of Christ, and many good works that God does not expect of them. We quarrel with them because they refuse to have Jesus' merit count alone for righteousness.
Our opponents don’t justify their own moral failures. The better ones criticize and hate it. But they defend and uphold their belief in good works, which is wrong. Our issue isn’t with those who clearly live in sin. Our issue is with those among them who believe they live perfectly, claiming that they not only follow the Ten Commandments of God but also the teachings of Christ and many good deeds that God doesn’t expect from them. We take issue with them because they refuse to accept that Jesus’ merit is the only source of righteousness.
St. Bernard was one of the best of the medieval saints. He lived a chaste and holy life. But when it came to dying he did not trust in his chaste life for salvation. He prayed: "I have lived a wicked life. But Thou, Lord Jesus, hast a heaven to give unto me. First, because Thou art the Son of God. Secondly, because Thou hast purchased heaven for me by Thy suffering and death. Thou givest heaven to me, not because I earned it, but because Thou hast earned it for me." If any of the Romanists are saved it is because they forget their good deeds and merits and feel like Paul: "Not having mine own righteousness which is of the law, but that which is through the faith of Christ." (Phil. 3:9.)
St. Bernard was one of the greatest medieval saints. He lived a pure and holy life. But when it came time to die, he didn’t rely on his virtuous life for salvation. He prayed: "I have lived a sinful life. But You, Lord Jesus, have heaven to offer me. First, because You are the Son of God. Second, because You have earned heaven for me through Your suffering and death. You offer heaven to me, not because I deserve it, but because You have earned it for me." If any of the Roman Catholics are saved, it's because they let go of their good deeds and merits and feel like Paul: "Not having my own righteousness, which is from the law, but that which is through the faith of Christ." (Phil. 3:9.)
VERSE 31. So then, brethren, we are not children of the bondwoman, but of the free.
VERSE 31. So, brothers, we are not children of the slave woman, but of the free woman.
With this sentence the Apostle Paul concludes his allegory of the barren Church. This sentence forms a clear rejection of the righteousness of the Law and a confirmation of the doctrine of justification. In the next chapter Paul lays special stress upon the freedom which the children of the free woman enjoy. He treats of Christian liberty, the knowledge of which is very necessary. The liberty which Christ purchased for us is a bulwark to us in our battle against spiritual tyranny. Therefore we must carefully study this doctrine of Christian liberty, not only for the confirmation of the doctrine of justification, but also for the comfort and encouragement of those who are weak in faith.
With this sentence, the Apostle Paul wraps up his allegory about the barren Church. This sentence clearly rejects the righteousness of the Law and affirms the doctrine of justification. In the next chapter, Paul emphasizes the freedom that the children of the free woman enjoy. He discusses Christian liberty, which is very important to understand. The freedom that Christ bought for us acts as a stronghold in our fight against spiritual oppression. Therefore, we need to study the doctrine of Christian liberty carefully, not just to affirm the doctrine of justification, but also to provide comfort and encouragement to those who are weak in faith.
CHAPTER 5
IN this chapter the Apostle Paul presents the doctrine of Christian liberty in a final effort to persuade the Galatians to give up the nefarious doctrine of the false apostles. To accomplish his purpose he adduces threats and promises, trying in every way possible to keep them in the liberty which Christ purchased for them.
IN this chapter, the Apostle Paul discusses the concept of Christian freedom in a last attempt to convince the Galatians to abandon the harmful teachings of the false apostles. To achieve his goal, he uses both threats and promises, doing everything he can to help them maintain the freedom that Christ secured for them.
VERSE 1. Stand fast therefore in the liberty wherewith Christ hath made us free.
VERSE 1. Stand firm, then, in the freedom that Christ has given us.
"Be steadfast, not careless. Lie not down and sleep, but stand up. Be watchful. Hold fast the liberty wherewith Christ hath made you free." Those who loll cannot keep this liberty. Satan hates the light of the Gospel. When it begins to shine a little he fights against it with might and main.
"Stay strong, not reckless. Don’t lie down and sleep; stand up. Be alert. Hold on to the freedom that Christ has given you." Those who lounge around can’t maintain this freedom. Satan hates the light of the Gospel. When it starts to shine even a little, he fights against it with all his strength.
What liberty does Paul mean? Not civil liberty (for which we have the government to thank), but the liberty which Christ has procured for us.
What freedom is Paul talking about? Not civil freedom (for which we owe thanks to the government), but the freedom that Christ has secured for us.
At one time the emperor was compelled to grant to the bishop of Rome certain immunities and privileges. This is civil liberty. That liberty exempts the clergy from certain public charges. Then there is also another kind of "liberty," when people obey neither the laws of God nor the laws of men, but do as they please. This carnal liberty the people want in our day. We are not now speaking of this liberty. Neither are we speaking of civil liberty.
At one point, the emperor had to give the bishop of Rome certain immunities and privileges. This is civil liberty. That liberty frees the clergy from specific public responsibilities. Then there's another type of "liberty," where people ignore both the laws of God and human laws and do whatever they want. This kind of carnal liberty is what people desire today. We're not talking about that type of liberty now. We’re not talking about civil liberty either.
Paul is speaking of a far better liberty, the liberty "wherewith Christ hath made us free," not from material bonds, not from the Babylonian captivity, not from the tyranny of the Turks, but from the eternal wrath of God.
Paul is talking about a much greater freedom, the freedom "with which Christ has set us free," not just from physical chains, not from Babylonian captivity, not from Turkish oppression, but from the everlasting anger of God.
Where is this liberty?
Where is this freedom?
In the conscience.
In the mind.
Our conscience is free and quiet because it no longer has to fear the wrath of God. This is real liberty, compared with which every other kind of liberty is not worth mentioning. Who can adequately express the boon that comes to a person when he has the heart-assurance that God will nevermore be angry with him, but will forever be merciful to him for Christ's sake? This is indeed a marvelous liberty, to have the sovereign God for our Friend and Father who will defend, maintain, and save us in this life and in the life to come.
Our conscience is free and at peace because it doesn’t have to fear God’s anger anymore. This is true freedom, which makes every other kind of freedom seem insignificant. Who can truly express the blessing a person feels when they have the assurance that God will never be angry with them again, but will always be merciful because of Christ? This is truly amazing freedom, to have the sovereign God as our Friend and Father, who will protect, support, and save us in this life and the next.
As an outgrowth of this liberty, we are at the same time free from the Law, sin, death, the power of the devil, hell, etc. Since the wrath of God has been assuaged by Christ no Law, sin, or death may now accuse and condemn us. These foes of ours will continue to frighten us, but not too much. The worth of our Christian liberty cannot be exaggerated.
As a result of this freedom, we are simultaneously free from the Law, sin, death, the power of the devil, hell, and so on. Since Christ has eased God's wrath, no Law, sin, or death can now accuse or condemn us. These adversaries may still intimidate us, but not excessively. The value of our Christian freedom cannot be overstated.
Our conscience must be trained to fall back on the freedom purchased for us by Christ. Though the fears of the Law, the terrors of sin, the horror of death assail us occasionally, we know that these feelings shall not endure, because the prophet quotes God as saying: "In a little wrath I hid my face from thee for a moment: but with everlasting kindness will I have mercy on thee." (Isa. 54:8.)
Our conscience needs to be conditioned to rely on the freedom that Christ has bought for us. Even though we sometimes feel the fears of the Law, the weight of sin, and the dread of death, we understand that these feelings won't last. The prophet reminds us that God said: "For a brief moment I turned away from you in anger, but with lasting love I will have compassion on you." (Isa. 54:8.)
We shall appreciate this liberty all the more when we bear in mind that it was Jesus Christ, the Son of God, who purchased it with His own blood. Hence, Christ's liberty is given us not by the Law, or for our own righteousness, but freely for Christ's sake. In the eighth chapter of the Gospel of St. John, Jesus declares: "If the Son shall make you free, ye shall be free indeed." He only stands between us and the evils which trouble and afflict us and which He has overcome for us.
We will value this freedom even more when we remember that it was Jesus Christ, the Son of God, who bought it with His own blood. So, Christ's freedom is given to us not through the Law or through our own righteousness, but freely for Christ's sake. In the eighth chapter of the Gospel of St. John, Jesus says, "If the Son sets you free, you will be truly free." He is the one who stands between us and the troubles and afflictions that disturb us, which He has already overcome for us.
Reason cannot properly evaluate this gift. Who can fully appreciate the blessing of the forgiveness of sins and of everlasting life? Our opponents claim that they also possess this liberty. But they do not. When they are put to the test all their self-confidence slips from them. What else can they expect when they trust in works and not in the Word of God?
Reason can't truly assess this gift. Who can completely grasp the blessing of forgiveness for sins and eternal life? Our opponents say they have this freedom too. But they don't. When they're put to the test, all their self-assurance crumbles. What else can they anticipate when they rely on actions instead of the Word of God?
Our liberty is founded on Christ Himself, who sits at the right hand of God and intercedes for us. Therefore our liberty is sure and valid as long as we believe in Christ. As long as we cling to Him with a steadfast faith we possess His priceless gifts. But if we are careless and indifferent we shall lose them. It is not without good reason that Paul urges us to watch and to stand fast. He knew that the devil delights in taking this liberty away from us.
Our freedom is based on Christ Himself, who is at God's right hand and speaks on our behalf. So, our freedom is secure and genuine as long as we believe in Christ. As long as we hold onto Him with unwavering faith, we have His invaluable gifts. But if we become careless and indifferent, we will lose them. Paul encourages us to stay alert and remain steadfast for good reason. He understood that the devil takes pleasure in stripping us of this freedom.
VERSE 1. And be not entangled again with the yoke of bondage.
VERSE 1. Don't get caught up again in the burden of slavery.
Because reason prefers the righteousness of the Law to the righteousness of faith, Paul calls the Law a yoke, a yoke of bondage. Peter also calls it a yoke. "Why tempt ye God, to put a yoke upon the neck of the disciples which neither our fathers nor we were able to bear?" (Acts 15:10.)
Because reason favors the righteousness of the Law over the righteousness of faith, Paul refers to the Law as a yoke, a burden of slavery. Peter also refers to it as a yoke. "Why are you testing God by putting a burden on the disciples that neither our ancestors nor we could handle?" (Acts 15:10.)
In this passage Paul again disparages the pernicious notion that the Law is able to make men righteous before God, a notion deeply rooted in man's reason. All mankind is so wrapped up in this idea that it is hard to drag it out of people. Paul compares those who seek to be justified by the Law to oxen that are hitched to the yoke. Like oxen that toil in the yoke all day, and in the evening are turned out to graze along the dusty road, and at last are marked for slaughter when they no longer can draw the burden, so those who seek to be justified by the Law are "entangled with the yoke of bondage," and when they have grown old and broken-down in the service of the Law they have earned for their perpetual reward God's wrath and everlasting torment.
In this passage, Paul again criticizes the harmful idea that the Law can make people righteous before God, an idea deeply ingrained in human reason. Everyone is so caught up in this belief that it’s tough to get people to let go of it. Paul compares those who try to be justified by the Law to oxen hitched to a yoke. Just like oxen that work in the yoke all day, are let out to graze along the dusty road in the evening, and are ultimately marked for slaughter when they can no longer pull their load, those who seek to be justified by the Law become "entangled with the yoke of bondage." After years of serving the Law, they end up earning God’s wrath and eternal torment.
We are not now treating of an unimportant matter. It is a matter that involves everlasting liberty or everlasting slavery. For as a liberation from God's wrath through the kind office of Christ is not a passing boon, but a permanent blessing, so also the yoke of the Law is not a temporary but an everlasting affliction.
We aren't talking about something trivial here. This is about eternal freedom or eternal bondage. Just as being freed from God's wrath through Christ's kind intervention is not a fleeting gift but a lasting blessing, the burden of the Law is not a temporary but a permanent hardship.
Rightly are the doers of the Law called devil's martyrs. They take more pains to earn hell than the martyrs of Christ to obtain heaven. Theirs is a double misfortune. First they torture themselves on earth with self-inflicted penances and finally when they die they gain the reward of eternal damnation.
The people who strictly follow the Law are rightly called devil's martyrs. They work harder to earn their place in hell than Christ's martyrs do to achieve heaven. They face a double tragedy. First, they torment themselves here on earth with self-imposed punishments, and then, when they die, they receive the punishment of eternal damnation.
VERSE 2. Behold, I Paul say unto you, that if ye be circumcised, Christ shall profit you nothing.
VERSE 2. Look, I, Paul, say to you that if you are circumcised, Christ will be of no benefit to you.
Paul is incensed at the thought of the tyranny of the Law. His antagonism to the Law is a personal matter with him. "Behold, I, Paul," he says, "I who have received the Gospel not from men, but by the revelation of Jesus Christ: I who have been commissioned from above to preach the Gospel to you: I Paul say to you, If you submit to circumcision Christ will profit you nothing." Paul emphatically declares that for the Galatians to be circumcised would mean for them to lose the benefits of Christ's suffering and death. This passage may well serve as a criterion for all the religions. To teach that besides faith in Christ other devices like works, or the observance of rules, traditions, or ceremonies are necessary for the attainment of righteousness and everlasting life, is to make Christ and His salvation of no benefit to anybody.
Paul is furious about the oppression of the Law. His opposition to the Law is deeply personal. "Look, I, Paul," he says, "I who have received the Gospel not from people, but through the revelation of Jesus Christ: I who have been sent from above to share the Gospel with you: I, Paul, say to you, if you get circumcised, Christ will be of no value to you." Paul strongly insists that if the Galatians choose to be circumcised, they will forfeit the benefits of Christ's suffering and death. This passage could serve as a guideline for all religions. To suggest that, besides faith in Christ, other things like good deeds, or following rules, traditions, or ceremonies are necessary to achieve righteousness and eternal life, is to render Christ and His salvation useless to anyone.
This passage is an indictment of the whole papacy. All priests, monks, and nuns—and I am now speaking of the best of them—who repose their hope for salvation in their own works, and not in Christ, whom they imagine to be an angry judge, hear this sentence pronounced against them that Christ shall profit them nothing. If one can earn the forgiveness of sins and everlasting life through one's own efforts to what purpose was Christ born? What was the purpose of His suffering and death, His resurrection, His victory over sin, death, and the devil, if men may overcome these evils by their own endeavor? Tongue cannot express, nor heart conceive what a terrible thing it is to make Christ worthless.
This passage criticizes the entire papacy. All priests, monks, and nuns—and I’m specifically talking about the best among them—who place their hope for salvation in their own actions rather than in Christ, whom they see as an angry judge, should hear this judgment against them: Christ will be of no benefit to them. If someone can achieve forgiveness for sins and eternal life through their own efforts, then why was Christ even born? What was the point of His suffering and death, His resurrection, or His victory over sin, death, and the devil if people can conquer these issues on their own? Words can’t capture, nor can the heart understand, how terrible it is to make Christ meaningless.
The person who is not moved by these considerations to leave the Law and the confidence in his own righteousness for the liberty in Christ, has a heart that is harder than stone and iron.
The person who isn’t touched by these reasons to abandon the Law and trust in their own righteousness for the freedom in Christ has a heart that is harder than stone and iron.
Paul does not condemn circumcision in itself. Circumcision is not injurious to the person who does not ascribe any particular importance to it. Neither are works injurious provided a person does not attach any saving value to them. The Apostle does not say that works are objectionable, but to build one's hopes for righteousness on works is disastrous, for that makes Christ good for nothing.
Paul doesn't criticize circumcision itself. It doesn't harm someone who doesn't give it any special significance. The same goes for works; they aren't harmful as long as a person doesn't believe they hold any saving power. The Apostle doesn’t claim that works are wrong, but relying on them for righteousness is a mistake, as it renders Christ meaningless.
Let us bear this in mind when the devil accuses our conscience. When that dragon accuses us of having done no good at all, but only evil, say to him: "You trouble me with the remembrance of my past sins; you remind me that I have done no good. But this does not bother me, because if I were to trust in my own good deeds, or despair because I have done no good deeds, Christ would profit me neither way. I am not going to make him unprofitable to me. This I would do, if I should presume to purchase for myself the favor of God and everlasting life by my good deeds, or if I should despair of my salvation because of my sins."
Let’s keep this in mind when the devil accuses our conscience. When that beast accuses us of having done nothing good and only evil, say to him: "You’re bothering me by reminding me of my past sins and pointing out my lack of good deeds. But this doesn’t worry me, because whether I trust in my good actions or despair because of my shortcomings, Christ won't help me either way. I won't make Him useless to me. I would do that if I tried to earn God's favor and eternal life through my good deeds or if I gave up on my salvation because of my sins."
VERSE 3. For I testify again to every man that is circumcised, that he is a debtor to do the whole law.
VERSE 3. For I tell every man who is circumcised that he is obligated to keep the entire law.
The first fault with circumcision is that it makes Christ unprofitable. The second fault is that it obligates those who are circumcised to observe the whole Law. Paul is so very much in earnest about this matter that he confirms it with an oath. "I testify," he says, "I swear by the living God." Paul's statement may be explained negatively to mean: "I testify to every man who is being circumcised that he cannot perform the Law in any point. In the very act of circumcision he is not being circumcised, and in the very act of fulfilling the Law he fulfills it not." This seems to be the simple meaning of Paul's statement. Later on in the sixth chapter he explicitly states, "They themselves which are circumcised keep not the law. The fact that you are circumcised does not mean you are righteous and free from the Law. The truth is that by circumcision you have become debtors and servants of the Law. The more you endeavor to perform the Law, the more you will become tangled up in the yoke of the Law."
The first problem with circumcision is that it makes Christ useless. The second issue is that it forces those who are circumcised to follow the entire Law. Paul is extremely serious about this and backs it up with an oath. "I testify," he says, "I swear by the living God." Paul's statement can be understood negatively to mean: "I testify to everyone who is getting circumcised that they cannot fulfill the Law at any point. In the very act of circumcision, they are not really being circumcised, and in trying to follow the Law, they aren't fulfilling it." This seems to be the straightforward meaning of Paul's statement. Later in the sixth chapter, he clearly says, "Those who are circumcised do not keep the law. Just because you are circumcised doesn't mean you are righteous and free from the Law. The truth is that by getting circumcised, you have become obligated slaves to the Law. The more you try to follow the Law, the more you will get entangled in its burden."
The truth of this I have experienced in myself and in others. I have seen many work themselves down to the bones in their hungry effort to obtain peace of conscience. But the harder they tried the more they worried. Especially in the presence of death they were so uneasy that I have seen murderers die with better grace and courage.
The truth of this I've seen in myself and in others. I've watched many wear themselves out in their desperate pursuit of peace of mind. But the harder they tried, the more anxious they became. Especially when faced with death, they were so restless that I've seen murderers pass away with more dignity and courage.
This holds true also in regard to the church regulations. When I was a monk I tried ever so hard to live up to the strict rules of my order. I used to make a list of my sins, and I was always on the way to confession, and whatever penances were enjoined upon me I performed religiously. In spite of it all, my conscience was always in a fever of doubt. The more I sought to help my poor stricken conscience the worse it got. The more I paid attention to the regulations the more I transgressed them.
This is also true when it comes to church rules. When I was a monk, I worked really hard to follow the strict guidelines of my order. I would make a list of my sins, always heading to confession, and I completed whatever penances were assigned to me with devotion. Despite everything, my conscience was always in turmoil. The more I tried to soothe my troubled conscience, the worse it became. The more I focused on the rules, the more I broke them.
Hence those that seek to be justified by the Law are much further away from the righteousness of life than the publicans, sinners, and harlots. They know better than to trust in their own works. They know that they cannot ever hope to obtain forgiveness by their sins.
Therefore, those who try to be justified by the Law are much further from living righteously than tax collectors, sinners, and prostitutes. They understand better than to rely on their own actions. They know they can never expect to be forgiven for their sins.
Paul's statement in this verse may be taken to mean that those who submit to circumcision are thereby submitting to the whole Law. To obey Moses in one point requires obedience to him in all points. It does no good to say that only circumcision is necessary, and not the rest of Moses' laws. The same reasons that obligate a person to accept circumcision also obligate a person to accept the whole Law. Thus to acknowledge the Law is tantamount to declaring that Christ is not yet come. And if Christ is not yet come, then all the Jewish ceremonies and laws concerning meats, places, and times are still in force, and Christ must be awaited as one who is still to come. The whole Scripture, however, testifies that Christ has come, that by His death He has abolished the Law, and that He has fulfilled all things which the prophets have foretold about Him.
Paul's statement in this verse can be interpreted to mean that those who agree to circumcision are also agreeing to follow the entire Law. Following Moses in one aspect means you must follow him in every aspect. It doesn’t make sense to say that only circumcision is necessary and not the other laws of Moses. The same reasons that require someone to accept circumcision also require them to accept the entire Law. Therefore, recognizing the Law is like declaring that Christ has not yet come. If Christ has not yet come, then all the Jewish rituals and laws regarding food, locations, and timings are still valid, and we must wait for Christ as someone who is still to arrive. However, all of Scripture confirms that Christ has come, that through His death He has abolished the Law, and that He has fulfilled everything the prophets predicted about Him.
Some would like to subjugate us to certain parts of the Mosaic Law. But this is not to be permitted under any circumstances. If we permit Moses to rule over us in one thing, we must obey him in all things.
Some want to impose certain aspects of the Mosaic Law on us. But we can't allow that under any circumstances. If we let Moses have authority over one thing, we have to follow him in everything.
VERSE 4. Christ is become of no effect unto you, whosoever of you are justified by the law; ye are fallen from grace.
VERSE 4. Christ has no value to you, if you are trying to be justified by the law; you have fallen away from grace.
Paul in this verse discloses that he is not speaking so much of circumcision as the trust which men repose in the outward act. We can hear him say: "I do not condemn the Law in itself; what I condemn is that men seek to be justified by the Law, as if Christ were still to come, or as if He alone were unable to justify sinners. It is this that I condemn, because it makes Christ of no effect. It makes you void of Christ so that Christ is not in you, nor can you be partakers of the knowledge, the spirit, the fellowship, the liberty, the life, or the achievements of Christ. You are completely separated from Him, so much so that He has nothing to do with you any more, or for that matter you with Him." Can anything worse be said against the Law? If you think Christ and the Law can dwell together in your heart, you may be sure that Christ dwells not in your heart. For if Christ is in your heart He neither condemns you, nor does He ever bid you to trust in your own good works. If you know Christ at all, you know that good works do not serve unto righteousness, nor evil works unto condemnation. I do not want to withhold from good works their due praise, nor do I wish to encourage evil works. But when it comes to justification, I say, we must concentrate upon Christ alone, or else we make Him non-effective. You must choose between Christ and the righteousness of the Law. If you choose Christ you are righteous before God. If you stick to the Law, Christ is of no use to you.
Paul in this verse explains that he’s not focusing on circumcision itself, but rather on the trust people place in that outward act. He's basically saying, "I don’t oppose the Law itself; what I oppose is that people try to be justified by the Law, as if Christ hasn’t come yet, or as if He alone can’t justify sinners. That’s what I criticize because it renders Christ ineffective. It cuts you off from Christ so that He isn't in you, and you can't share in the knowledge, spirit, fellowship, freedom, life, or accomplishments of Christ. You are entirely separated from Him, to the point where He has nothing to do with you anymore, and you with Him.” Can anything worse be said about the Law? If you think Christ and the Law can coexist in your heart, you can be sure that Christ isn’t in your heart. Because if Christ is in your heart, He neither condemns you nor tells you to trust in your own good works. If you know Christ at all, you know that good works don't lead to righteousness, nor do bad works lead to condemnation. I don’t want to deny good works their proper praise, nor do I want to promote bad works. But when it comes to justification, I say we must focus solely on Christ, or else we make Him ineffective. You have to choose between Christ and the righteousness of the Law. If you choose Christ, you are justified before God. If you hold on to the Law, Christ is of no benefit to you.
VERSE 4. Ye are fallen from grace.
VERSE 4. You have fallen from grace.
That means you are no longer in the kingdom or condition of grace. When a person on board ship falls into the sea and is drowned it makes no difference from which end or side of the ship he falls into the water. Those who fall from grace perish no matter how they go about it. Those who seek to be justified by the Law are fallen from grace and are in grave danger of eternal death. If this holds true in the case of those who seek to be justified by the moral Law, what will become of those, I should like to know, who endeavor to be justified by their own regulations and vows? They will fall to the very bottom of hell. "Oh, no," they say, "we will fly straight into heaven. If you live according to the rules of Saint Francis, Saint Dominick, Saint Benedict, you will obtain the peace and mercy of God. If you perform the vows of chastity, obedience, etc., you will be rewarded with everlasting life." Let these playthings of the devil go to the place where they came from and listen to what Paul has to say in this verse in accordance with Christ's own teaching: "He that believeth in the Son of God, hath everlasting life; but he that believeth not in the Son shall not see life, but the wrath of God abideth in him."
That means you are no longer in the state of grace. When someone on a ship falls into the sea and drowns, it doesn’t matter which side or end of the ship they fall from. Those who fall from grace perish no matter how it happens. Those who seek to be justified by the Law have fallen from grace and are in serious danger of eternal death. If this is true for those who try to be justified by the moral Law, what will happen to those who try to justify themselves by their own rules and vows? They will plummet to the very bottom of hell. "Oh, no," they say, "we will go straight to heaven. If you live by the rules of Saint Francis, Saint Dominic, or Saint Benedict, you will gain the peace and mercy of God. If you keep the vows of chastity, obedience, and so on, you will be rewarded with eternal life." Let these distractions of the devil go back to where they came from and pay attention to what Paul says in this verse according to Christ's own teachings: "Whoever believes in the Son of God has eternal life; but whoever does not believe in the Son will not see life, but the wrath of God remains on them."
The words, "Ye are fallen from grace," must not be taken lightly. They are important. To fall from grace means to lose the atonement, the forgiveness of sins, the righteousness, liberty, and life which Jesus has merited for us by His death and resurrection. To lose the grace of God means to gain the wrath and judgment of God, death, the bondage of the devil, and everlasting condemnation.
The phrase, "You have fallen from grace," shouldn't be dismissed. It's significant. To fall from grace means to lose the atonement, the forgiveness of sins, the righteousness, freedom, and life that Jesus earned for us through His death and resurrection. Losing God's grace results in gaining God's wrath and judgment, death, the control of the devil, and eternal condemnation.
VERSE 5. For we through the Spirit wait for the hope of righteousness by faith.
VERSE 5. For we, through the Spirit, wait for the hope of righteousness by faith.
Paul concludes the whole matter with the above statement. "You want to be justified by the Law, by circumcision, and by works. We cannot see it. To be justified by such means would make Christ of no value to us. We would be obliged to perform the whole law. We rather through the Spirit wait for the hope of righteousness." The Apostle is not satisfied to say "justified by faith." He adds hope to faith.
Paul wraps up everything with the statement above. "You want to be justified by the Law, by circumcision, and by works. We can’t accept that. If we were justified this way, it would make Christ pointless for us. We would have to follow the whole law. Instead, we through the Spirit are waiting for the hope of righteousness." The Apostle doesn't just say "justified by faith." He includes hope alongside faith.
Holy Writ speaks of hope in two ways: as the object of the emotion, and hope as the emotion itself. In the first chapter of the Epistle to the Colossians we have an instance of its first use: "For the hope which is laid up for you in heaven," i.e., the thing hoped for. In the sense of emotion we quote the passage from the eighth chapter of the Epistle to the Romans: "For we are saved by hope." As Paul uses the term "hope" here in writing to the Galatians, we may take it in either of its two meanings. We may understand Paul to say, "We wait in spirit, through faith, for the righteousness that we hope for, which in due time will be revealed to us." Or we may understand Paul to say: "We wait in Spirit, by faith for righteousness with great hope and desire." True, we are righteous, but our righteousness is not yet revealed; as long as we live here sin stays with us, not to forget the law in our members striving against the law of our mind. When sin rages in our body and we through the Spirit wrestle against it, then we have cause for hope. We are not yet perfectly righteous. Perfect righteousness is still to be attained. Hence we hope for it.
The Scriptures talk about hope in two ways: as the thing we hope for, and hope as the feeling itself. In the first chapter of the Epistle to the Colossians, we see the first use: "For the hope which is laid up for you in heaven," meaning the thing being hoped for. In terms of the feeling, we can quote the passage from the eighth chapter of the Epistle to the Romans: "For we are saved by hope." When Paul uses the term "hope" here while writing to the Galatians, we can interpret it in either of these two ways. We might understand Paul to say, "We wait in spirit, through faith, for the righteousness we hope for, which will be revealed to us in due time." Alternatively, we could see Paul as saying: "We wait in Spirit, by faith for righteousness with great hope and desire." It’s true that we are righteous, but our righteousness isn’t fully revealed yet; as long as we live here, sin remains with us, not to mention the law within us conflicts with the law of our mind. When sin struggles within us and we fight against it through the Spirit, that gives us a reason for hope. We are not yet perfectly righteous. Perfect righteousness is still something we aim for. Therefore, we hope for it.
This is sweet comfort for us. And we are to make use of it in comforting the afflicted. We are to say to them: "Brother, you would like to feel God's favor as you feel your sin. But you are asking too much. Your righteousness rests on something much better than feelings. Wait and hope until it will be revealed to you in the Lord's own time. Don't go by your feelings, but go by the doctrine of faith, which pledges Christ to you."
This is a comforting thought for us. And we should use it to comfort those who are suffering. We need to tell them: "Friend, you want to experience God's love as strongly as you feel your sin. But you’re asking too much. Your righteousness is based on something much more solid than feelings. Be patient and hopeful until it’s revealed to you in the Lord's time. Don’t rely on your feelings; instead, trust in the doctrine of faith, which promises Christ to you."
The question occurs to us, What difference is there between faith and hope? We find it difficult to see any difference. Faith and hope are so closely linked that they cannot be separated. Still there is a difference between them.
The question comes to mind: What’s the difference between faith and hope? We find it hard to see any distinction. Faith and hope are so closely connected that they can’t be separated. Still, there is a difference between them.
First, hope and faith differ in regard to their sources. Faith originates in the understanding, while hope rises in the will. Secondly, they differ in regard to their functions. Faith says what is to be done. Faith teaches, describes, directs. Hope exhorts the mind to be strong and courageous. Thirdly, they differ in regard to their objectives. Faith concentrates on the truth. Hope looks to the goodness of God. Fourthly, they differ in sequence. Faith is the beginning of life before tribulation. (Hebrews 11.) Hope comes later and is born of tribulation. (Romans 5.) Fifthly, they differ in regard to their effects. Faith is a judge. It judges errors. Hope is a soldier. It fights against tribulations, the Cross, despondency, despair, and waits for better things to come in the midst of evil. Without hope faith cannot endure. On the other hand, hope without faith is blind rashness and arrogance because it lacks knowledge. Before anything else a Christian must have the insight of faith, so that the intellect may know its directions in the day of trouble and the heart may hope for better things. By faith we begin, by hope we continue.
First, hope and faith are different in where they come from. Faith comes from understanding, while hope comes from the will. Secondly, they differ in their roles. Faith tells us what needs to be done. It teaches, describes, and guides. Hope encourages the mind to be strong and brave. Thirdly, they differ in their goals. Faith focuses on the truth. Hope looks to the goodness of God. Fourthly, they differ in sequence. Faith is the starting point before challenges. (Hebrews 11.) Hope comes later, born out of those challenges. (Romans 5.) Fifthly, they differ in their outcomes. Faith acts as a judge, identifying errors. Hope acts as a soldier, fighting against hardships, the Cross, discouragement, despair, and waiting for better times amid evil. Without hope, faith cannot last. On the flip side, hope without faith is reckless and arrogant because it lacks knowledge. Above all, a Christian must have the understanding of faith so that the mind knows what to do in tough times and the heart can hope for better things. We begin with faith, and we carry on with hope.
This passage contains excellent doctrine and much comfort. It declares that we are justified not by works, sacrifices, or ceremonies, but by Christ alone. The world may judge certain things to be ever so good; without Christ they are all wrong. Circumcision and the law and good works are carnal. "We," says Paul, "are above such things. We possess Christ by faith and in the midst of our afflictions we hopefully wait for the consummation of our righteousness."
This passage has great teachings and brings a lot of comfort. It states that we are justified not by our actions, sacrifices, or rituals, but by Christ alone. The world might see certain things as very good; without Christ, they are all misguided. Circumcision, the law, and good deeds are all tied to the flesh. "We," says Paul, "are beyond those things. We have Christ through faith and, despite our struggles, we patiently wait for the fulfillment of our righteousness."
You may say, "The trouble is I don't feel as if I am righteous." You must not feel, but believe. Unless you believe that you are righteous, you do Christ a great wrong, for He has cleansed you by the washing of regeneration, He died for you so that through Him you may obtain righteousness and everlasting life.
You might say, "The problem is I don’t feel like I'm righteous." You shouldn't rely on your feelings, but rather on your beliefs. If you don’t believe that you are righteous, you’re doing a great disservice to Christ, because He has cleansed you through the act of rebirth; He died for you so that through Him, you can have righteousness and eternal life.
VERSE 6. For in Jesus Christ neither circumcision availeth any thing, nor uncircumcision, but faith which worketh by love.
VERSE 6. Because in Jesus Christ, neither circumcision nor uncircumcision matters, but faith that expresses itself through love.
Faith must of course be sincere. It must be a faith that performs good works through love. If faith lacks love it is not true faith. Thus the Apostle bars the way of hypocrites to the kingdom of Christ on all sides. He declares on the one hand, "In Christ Jesus circumcision availeth nothing," i.e., works avail nothing, but faith alone, and that without any merit whatever, avails before God. On the other hand, the Apostle declares that without fruits faith serves no purpose. To think, "If faith justifies without works, let us work nothing," is to despise the grace of God. Idle faith is not justifying faith. In this terse manner Paul presents the whole life of a Christian. Inwardly it consists in faith towards God, outwardly in love towards our fellow-men.
Faith has to be genuine. It needs to be a faith that does good works out of love. If faith doesn’t include love, it's not real faith. This is why the Apostle keeps hypocrites out of the kingdom of Christ completely. He says, on one hand, "In Christ Jesus, being circumcised means nothing," meaning that works don’t count, but faith alone, and that without any merit whatsoever, counts before God. On the other hand, the Apostle says that without good deeds, faith means nothing. To think, "If faith justifies without works, then we shouldn’t do anything," is to undervalue God’s grace. Faith without action isn’t justifying faith. In this straightforward way, Paul outlines the entire life of a Christian. Internally, it’s made up of faith in God, and externally, it’s expressed in love for others.
VERSE 7. Ye did run well; who did hinder you that ye should not obey the truth?
VERSE 7. You were doing great; who held you back from obeying the truth?
This is plain speaking. Paul asserts that he teaches the same truth now which he has always taught, and that the Galatians ran well as long as they obeyed the truth. But now, misled by the false apostles, they no longer run. He compares the Christian life to a race. When everything runs along smoothly the Hebrews spoke of it as a race. "Ye did run well," means that everything went along smoothly and happily with the Galatians. They lived a Christian life and were on the right way to everlasting life. The words, "Ye did run well," are encouraging indeed. Often our lives seem to creep rather than to run. But if we abide in the true doctrine and walk in the spirit, we have nothing to worry about. God judges our lives differently. What may seem to us a life slow in Christian development may seem to God a life of rapid progression in grace.
This is straightforward talk. Paul claims that he teaches the same truth now that he has always taught, and that the Galatians were doing well as long as they followed the truth. But now, led astray by false apostles, they have stopped moving forward. He likens the Christian life to a race. When everything is going well, the Hebrews referred to it as a race. "You did run well" means that things were going smoothly and happily for the Galatians. They were living a Christian life and were on the right path to eternal life. The phrase "You did run well" is definitely encouraging. Often, our lives seem to drag rather than race. But if we stay true to sound doctrine and walk in the spirit, we have nothing to worry about. God sees our lives differently. What may seem to us like slow progress in our Christian journey may appear to God as rapid growth in grace.
VERSE 7. Who did hinder you that ye should not obey the truth?
VERSE 7. Who stopped you from following the truth?
The Galatians were hindered in the Christian life when they turned from faith and grace to the Law. Covertly the Apostle blames the false apostles for impeding the Christian progress of the Galatians. The false apostles persuaded the Galatians to believe that they were in error and that they had made little or no progress under the influence of Paul. Under the baneful influence of the false apostles the Galatians thought they were well off and advancing rapidly in Christian knowledge and living.
The Galatians were held back in their Christian life when they shifted from faith and grace to the Law. The Apostle subtly blames the false apostles for blocking the Galatians' spiritual growth. These false apostles convinced the Galatians that they were mistaken and that they had made little or no progress under Paul's guidance. Misled by the harmful influence of the false apostles, the Galatians believed they were doing well and making quick strides in their Christian understanding and lifestyle.
VERSE 8. This persuasion cometh not of him that calleth you.
VERSE 8. This influence doesn't come from the one who called you.
Paul explains how those who had been deceived by false teachers may be restored to spiritual health. The false apostles were amiable fellows. Apparently they surpassed Paul in learning and godliness. The Galatians were easily deceived by outward appearances. They supposed they were being taught by Christ Himself. Paul proved to them that their new doctrine was not of Christ, but of the devil. In this way he succeeded in regaining many. We also are able to win back many from the errors into which they were seduced by showing that their beliefs are imaginary, wicked, and contrary to the Word of God.
Paul explains how those who were misled by false teachers can be brought back to spiritual health. The false apostles seemed like nice guys. They apparently had more knowledge and holiness than Paul. The Galatians were easily fooled by appearances. They thought they were being taught by Christ Himself. Paul demonstrated to them that their new teachings were not from Christ, but from the devil. In this way, he managed to win many back. We can also bring many back from the mistakes they were tricked into by showing them that their beliefs are false, harmful, and against the Word of God.
The devil is a cunning persuader. He knows how to enlarge the smallest sin into a mountain until we think we have committed the worst crime ever committed on earth. Such stricken consciences must be comforted and set straight as Paul corrected the Galatians by showing them that their opinion is not of Christ because it runs counter to the Gospel, which describes Christ as a meek and merciful Savior.
The devil is a sly manipulator. He can blow even the tiniest sin into a huge deal until we believe we've done the worst thing imaginable. People with guilty consciences need reassurance and guidance, just like Paul addressed the Galatians by showing them that their views aren't aligned with Christ because they contradict the Gospel, which portrays Christ as a gentle and compassionate Savior.
Satan will circumvent the Gospel and explain Christ in this his own diabolical way: "Indeed Christ is meek, gentle, and merciful, but only to those who are holy and righteous. If you are a sinner you stand no chance. Did not Christ say that unbelievers are already damned? And did not Christ perform many good deeds, and suffer many evils patiently, bidding us to follow His example? You do not mean to say that your life is in accord with Christ's precepts or example? You are a sinner. You are no good at all."
Satan will twist the Gospel and describe Christ in his own twisted way: "Sure, Christ is kind, gentle, and compassionate, but only towards those who are holy and righteous. If you're a sinner, you have no hope. Didn't Christ say that non-believers are already condemned? And didn’t Christ do many good things and endure a lot of suffering, telling us to follow His example? You can't seriously think your life aligns with Christ's teachings or example? You're a sinner. You're not worthy at all."
Satan is to be answered in this way: The Scriptures present Christ in a twofold aspect. First, as a gift. "He of God is made unto us wisdom, and righteousness, and sanctification and redemption." (I Cor. 1:30.) Hence my many and grievous sins are nullified if I believe in Him. Secondly, the Scriptures present Christ for our example. As an exemplar He is to be placed before me only at certain times. In times of joy and gladness that I may have Him as a mirror to reflect upon my shortcomings. But in the day of trouble I will have Christ only as a gift. I will not listen to anything else, except that Christ died for my sins.
Satan should be responded to like this: The Scriptures present Christ in two ways. First, as a gift. "He of God is made unto us wisdom, and righteousness, and sanctification and redemption." (I Cor. 1:30.) So, my many serious sins are erased if I believe in Him. Second, the Scriptures show Christ as our example. As an example, He should only be considered at certain times. In times of joy and happiness, I can use Him as a mirror to reflect on my shortcomings. But during difficult times, I will see Christ solely as a gift. I will focus only on the fact that Christ died for my sins.
To those that are cast down on account of their sins Christ must be introduced as a Savior and Gift, and not as an example. But to sinners who live in a false assurance, Christ must be introduced as an example. The hard sayings of Scripture and the awful judgments of God upon sin must be impressed upon them. Defy Satan in times of despair. Say: "O cursed Satan, you choose a nice time to talk to me about doing and working when you know very well that I am in trouble over my sins. I will not listen to you. I will listen to Christ, who says that He came into the world to save sinners. This is the true Christ and there is none other. I can find plenty of examples for a holy life in Abraham, Isaiah, John the Baptist, Paul, and other saints. But they cannot forgive my sins. They cannot save me. They cannot procure for me everlasting life. Therefore I will not have you for my teacher, O Satan."
To those who feel down because of their sins, Christ should be presented as a Savior and a Gift, not just as a role model. But for sinners who are living in false security, Christ needs to be shown as an example. The tough messages of Scripture and the serious consequences of sin must be made clear to them. Stand up to Satan in times of despair. Say: "Oh cursed Satan, you choose a great time to talk to me about working hard when you know I'm struggling with my sins. I won't listen to you. I'll listen to Christ, who says He came into the world to save sinners. This is the true Christ, and there is no other. I can find plenty of role models for a holy life in Abraham, Isaiah, John the Baptist, Paul, and other saints. But they can't forgive my sins. They can't save me. They can't grant me eternal life. So I won't take you as my teacher, Satan."
VERSE 9. A little leaven leaveneth the whole lump.
VERSE 9. A little yeast raises the whole batch of dough.
Paul's concern for them meant nothing to some of the Galatians. Many had disowned him as their teacher and gone over to the false apostles. No doubt the false apostles took every occasion to defame Paul as a stubborn and contemptuous fellow who thought nothing of disrupting the unity of the churches for no other reason than his selfish pride and jealousy.
Paul's worry for them didn't matter to some of the Galatians. Many had rejected him as their teacher and had aligned themselves with the false apostles. No doubt the false apostles seized every opportunity to slander Paul as a stubborn and disrespectful person who cared nothing about disrupting the unity of the churches for his own selfish pride and jealousy.
Others of the Galatians perhaps saw no harm in deviating a trifle from the doctrine of justification and faith. When they noticed that Paul made so much ado about a matter that seemed of no particular importance to them they raised their eyebrows and thought within themselves: "What if we did deviate a little from the doctrine of Paul? What if we are a little to blame? He ought to overlook the whole matter, and not make such an issue out of it, lest the unity of the churches be disturbed." To this Paul replies: "A little leaven leaveneth the whole lump."
Some of the Galatians might have thought there was no problem with straying a bit from the teachings about justification and faith. When they saw that Paul was making such a big deal out of something that didn't seem too important to them, they raised their eyebrows and thought, "What if we do stray a little from Paul’s teachings? What if we're a bit in the wrong? He should just let it go and not make such a fuss over it, or else the unity of the churches could be affected." To this, Paul responds: "A little leaven leavens the whole lump."
Our opponents record the same complaints about us. They put us down as contentious, ill-tempered faultfinders. But these are the crafty passes of the devil, with which he seeks to overthrow our faith. We answer with Paul: "A little leaven leaveneth the whole lump."
Our opponents share the same complaints about us. They label us as argumentative, grumpy critics. But these are the tricky tactics of the devil, trying to undermine our faith. We respond with Paul: "A little leaven leavens the whole lump."
Small faults grow into big faults. To tolerate a trifling error inevitably leads to crass heresy. The doctrine of the Bible is not ours to take or to allow liberties with. We have no right to change even a tittle of it. When it comes to life we are ready to do, to suffer, to forgive anything our opponents demand as long as faith and doctrine remain pure and uncorrupt. The Apostle James says, "For whosoever shall keep the whole law and yet offend in one point, he is guilty of all." This passage supports us over against our critics who claim that we disregard all charity to the great injury of the churches. We protest we desire nothing more than peace with all men. If they would only permit us to keep our doctrine of faith! The pure doctrine takes precedence before charity, apostles, or an angel from heaven.
Small faults grow into big ones. Tolerating a minor mistake inevitably leads to serious errors. The teachings of the Bible are not ours to alter or treat lightly. We have no right to change even the smallest part of it. When it comes to life, we’re willing to do, suffer, and forgive whatever our opponents ask, as long as our faith and doctrine remain pure and uncompromised. The Apostle James says, "For whoever keeps the whole law and yet stumbles at just one point is guilty of breaking all of it." This verse supports us against our critics who claim that we lack charity to the great harm of the churches. We assert that we want nothing more than peace with everyone. If only they would allow us to maintain our doctrine of faith! The pure doctrine takes precedence over charity, apostles, or even an angel from heaven.
Let others praise charity and concord to the skies; we magnify the authority of the Word and faith. Charity may be neglected at times without peril, but not the Word and faith. Charity suffers all things, it gives in. Faith suffers nothing; it never yields. Charity is often deceived but is never put out because it has nothing to lose; it continues to do well even to the ungrateful. When it comes to faith and salvation in the midst of lies and errors that parade as truth and deceive many, charity has no voice or vote. Let us not be influenced by the popular cry for charity and unity. If we do not love God and His Word what difference does it make if we love anything at all?
Let others praise charity and unity to the heavens; we emphasize the importance of the Word and faith. Charity might be overlooked sometimes without serious consequences, but the Word and faith cannot be. Charity endures everything and can bend, but faith doesn’t give in; it stands firm. Charity can be misled but never extinguished because it has nothing at stake; it keeps doing good even for those who don't appreciate it. However, when it comes to faith and salvation amid lies and falsehoods masquerading as truth and misleading many, charity doesn't have a voice or a say. Let’s not be swayed by the popular demand for charity and togetherness. If we don’t love God and His Word, what does it matter if we love anything else?
Paul, therefore, admonishes both teachers and hearers not to esteem lightly the doctrine of faith as if it were a toy with which to amuse oneself in idle hours.
Paul, therefore, warns both teachers and listeners not to take the doctrine of faith lightly as if it were just a toy to play with during free time.
VERSE 10. l have confidence in you through the Lord.
VERSE 10. I trust you because of the Lord.
"I have taught, admonished, and reproved you enough. I hope the best for you."
"I've taught, advised, and corrected you enough. I wish you all the best."
The question occurs to us whether Paul did well to trust the Galatians. Does not Holy Writ forbid us to trust in men? Faith trusts in God and is never wrong. Charity trusts in men and is often wrong. This charitable trust in man is necessary to life. Without it life would be impossible in the world. What kind of life would ours be if nobody could trust anybody else? True Christians are more ready to believe in men than the children of this world. Such charitable confidence is the fruit of the Spirit. Paul had such trust in the Galatians although they had forsaken his doctrine. He trusts them "through the Lord," insofar as they were in Christ and Christ in them. Once they had forsaken Christ altogether, the Apostle will trust the Galatians no longer.
The question arises whether Paul made a good choice in trusting the Galatians. Doesn’t the Bible tell us not to trust in humans? Faith relies on God and is always right. Charity trusts in people and can often be misguided. This kind of charitable trust in humanity is essential for life. Without it, life would be impossible in this world. What kind of existence would we have if no one could trust anyone else? True Christians are more willing to believe in others than the people of this world. Such charitable confidence is a result of the Spirit. Paul had that trust in the Galatians even though they had turned away from his teachings. He trusts them "through the Lord," as long as they were in Christ and Christ was in them. Once they completely abandoned Christ, the Apostle would no longer place his trust in the Galatians.
VERSE 10. That ye will be none otherwise minded.
VERSE 10. That you will think no differently.
"Not minded otherwise than I have taught you. In other words, I have confidence that you will accept no doctrine that is contrary to the one you have learned from me."
"Don't think any differently than what I've taught you. In other words, I trust that you won't accept any beliefs that go against what you've learned from me."
VERSE 10. But he that troubleth you shall bear his judgment, whosoever he be.
VERSE 10. But the person who causes you trouble will face their punishment, no matter who they are.
Paul assumes the role of a judge and condemns the false apostles as troublers of the Galatians. He wants to frighten the Galatians with his severe judgments of the false apostles into avoiding false doctrine like a contagious disease. We can hear him say to the Galatians: "Why do you give these pestilent fellows a hearing in the first place? They only trouble you. The doctrine they bring causes your conscience only trouble."
Paul takes on the role of a judge and criticizes the false apostles as troublemakers for the Galatians. He aims to scare the Galatians with his harsh judgments of the false apostles so they'll steer clear of false doctrine like it’s a contagious disease. We can imagine him saying to the Galatians: "Why do you even listen to these troublesome people? They only cause you distress. The teachings they bring only bring turmoil to your conscience."
The clause, "whosoever he be," seems to indicate that the false apostles in outward appearance at least were very good and devout men. It may be that among them was some outstanding disciple of the apostles, a man of fame and authority. The Apostle must have been faced by this very situation, otherwise his vehemence would have been uncalled for. No doubt many of the Galatians were taken back with the vehemency of the Apostle. They perhaps thought: why should he be so stubborn in such small matters? Why is he so quick to pronounce damnation upon his brethren in the ministry?
The phrase "whoever he may be" suggests that the false apostles, at least on the surface, were very good and devout individuals. It's possible that among them was a prominent disciple of the apostles, someone well-known and respected. The Apostle must have encountered this exact situation; otherwise, his intensity would seem unnecessary. Many of the Galatians were likely surprised by the Apostle's strong stance. They might have wondered: why is he so hardheaded over what seem like minor issues? Why is he so quick to condemn his fellow ministers?
I cannot say it often enough, that we must carefully differentiate between doctrine and life. Doctrine is a piece of heaven, life is a piece of earth. Life is sin, error, uncleanness, misery, and charity must forbear, believe, hope, and suffer all things. Forgiveness of sins must be continuous so that sin and error may not be defended and sustained. But with doctrine there must be no error, no need of pardon. There can be no comparison between doctrine and life. The least little point of doctrine is of greater importance than heaven and earth. Therefore we cannot allow the least jot of doctrine to be corrupted. We may overlook the offenses and errors of life, for we daily sin much. Even the saints sin, as they themselves confess in the Lord's Prayer and in the Creed. But our doctrine, God be praised, is pure, because all the articles of our faith are grounded on the Holy Scriptures.
I can't stress this enough: we need to clearly separate doctrine from life. Doctrine is heavenly, while life is earthly. Life is filled with sin, mistakes, dirtiness, and suffering, and love must be patient, believe, hope, and endure everything. Forgiveness of sins needs to be ongoing so that sin and mistakes aren’t excused or maintained. However, doctrine must be free of errors and doesn’t require forgiveness. Doctrine and life can't be compared. Even the smallest point of doctrine holds more significance than heaven and earth. That's why we can’t let even a single element of doctrine be tainted. We can overlook the wrongs and mistakes in life because we all sin daily. Even saints sin, as they admit in the Lord's Prayer and the Creed. But our doctrine, thank God, is pure, because all the beliefs we hold are based on the Holy Scriptures.
VERSE 11. And I, brethren, if I yet preach circumcision, why do I yet suffer persecution? then is the offense of the cross ceased.
VERSE 11. And I, brothers, if I’m still preaching circumcision, why am I still facing persecution? Then the offense of the cross has ended.
In his great desire to recall the Galatians, Paul draws himself into the argument. He says: "Because I refuse to recognize circumcision as a factor in our salvation, I have brought upon myself the hatred and persecution of my whole nation. If I were to acknowledge circumcision the Jews would cease to persecute me; in fact they would love and praise me. But because I preach the Gospel of Christ and the righteousness of faith I must suffer persecution. The false apostles know how to avoid the Cross and the deadly hatred of the Jewish nation. They preach circumcision and thus retain the favor of the Jews. If they had their way they would ignore all differences in doctrine and preserve unity at all cost. But their unionistic dreams cannot be realized without loss to the pure doctrine of the Cross. It would be too bad if the offense of the Cross were to cease." To the Corinthians he expressed the same conviction: "Christ sent me...to preach the gospel: not with wisdom of words, lest the cross of Christ should be made of none effect." (I Cor. 1:17.)
In his strong desire to remind the Galatians, Paul involves himself in the discussion. He says: "Because I refuse to see circumcision as a part of our salvation, I have faced hatred and persecution from my entire nation. If I were to accept circumcision, the Jews would stop persecuting me; they would actually love and praise me. But because I preach the Gospel of Christ and the righteousness of faith, I must endure persecution. The false apostles know how to avoid the Cross and the fierce hatred of the Jewish people. They preach circumcision and therefore keep the favor of the Jews. If they had their way, they would ignore all doctrinal differences to maintain unity at all costs. But their dream of unity cannot be achieved without compromising the pure doctrine of the Cross. It would be unfortunate if the offense of the Cross were to disappear." To the Corinthians, he expressed the same belief: "Christ sent me...to preach the gospel: not with eloquent words, so that the cross of Christ would not lose its power." (I Cor. 1:17.)
Here someone may be tempted to call the Christians crazy. Deliberately to court danger by preaching and confessing the truth, and thus to bring upon ourselves the hatred and enmity of the whole world, is this not madness? But Paul does not mind the enmity of the world. It made him all the bolder to confess Christ. The enmity of the world in his estimation augurs well for the success and growth of the Church, which fares best in times of persecution. When the offense of the Cross ceases, when the rage of the enemies of the Cross abates, when everything is quiet, it is a sign that the devil is the door-keeper of the Church and that the pure doctrine of God's Word has been lost.
Here, someone might be tempted to call Christians crazy. To intentionally put oneself in danger by preaching and standing up for the truth, thereby inviting the hatred and hostility of the entire world, isn’t that madness? But Paul doesn't care about the world's hostility. It only gives him more courage to confess Christ. In his view, the world's enmity is a positive sign for the success and growth of the Church, which thrives during times of persecution. When the offense of the Cross disappears, when the fury of the Cross's enemies subsides, and when everything becomes calm, it indicates that the devil is guarding the Church and that the pure teaching of God's Word has been lost.
Saint Bernard observed that the Church is in best shape when Satan assaults it on every side by trickery and violence; and in worst shape when it is at peace. In support of his statement he quotes the passage from the song of Hezekiah: "Behold, for peace I had great bitterness." Paul looks with suspicion upon any doctrine that does not provoke antagonism.
Saint Bernard noted that the Church is at its strongest when Satan attacks it from all angles with deceit and violence; and at its weakest when it is at peace. To back up his point, he references the line from Hezekiah's song: "Look, for peace I experienced great bitterness." Paul is wary of any teaching that doesn't stir up opposition.
Persecution always follows on the heels of the Word of God as the Psalmist experienced. "I believe, therefore have I spoken: I was greatly afflicted." (Ps. 116:10.) The Christians are accused and slandered without mercy. Murderers and thieves receive better treatment than Christians. The world regards true Christians as the worst offenders, for whom no punishment can be too severe. The world hates the Christians with amazing brutality, and without compunction commits them to the most shameful death, congratulating itself that it has rendered God and the cause of peace a distinct service by ridding the world of the undesired presence of these Christians. We are not to let such treatment cause us to falter in our adherence to Christ. As long as we experience such persecutions we know all is well with the Gospel.
Persecution always follows the Word of God, as the Psalmist experienced. "I believe, so I spoke: I was greatly troubled." (Ps. 116:10.) Christians are accused and slandered without mercy. Murderers and thieves get better treatment than Christians. The world sees true Christians as the worst offenders, deserving of the harshest punishment. The world hates Christians with shocking brutality and without remorse subjects them to the most disgraceful deaths, patting itself on the back for doing God and the cause of peace a favor by eliminating the unwanted presence of these Christians. We must not let this treatment make us waver in our commitment to Christ. As long as we face such persecution, we know all is well with the Gospel.
Jesus held out the same comfort to His disciples in the fifth chapter of St. Matthew. "Blessed are ye, when men shall revile you and persecute you, and shall say all manner of evil against you falsely, for my sake. Rejoice, and be exceeding glad; for great is your reward in heaven." The Church must not come short of this joy. I would not want to be at peace with the pope, the bishops, the princes, and the sectarians, unless they consent to our doctrine. Unity with them would be an unmistakable sign that we have lost the true doctrine. Briefly, as long as the Church proclaims the doctrine she must suffer persecution, because the Gospel declares the mercy and glory of God. This in turn stirs up the devil, because the Gospel shows him up for what he is, the devil, and not God. Therefore as long as the Gospel holds sway persecution plays the accompaniment, or else there is something the matter with the devil. When he is hit you will know it by the havoc he raises everywhere.
Jesus offered the same comfort to His disciples in the fifth chapter of St. Matthew: "Blessed are you when people insult you, persecute you, and falsely say all kinds of evil against you because of me. Rejoice and be glad, for your reward in heaven is great." The Church must not fall short of this joy. I wouldn't want to be at peace with the pope, bishops, princes, and sectarians unless they agree with our doctrine. Unity with them would clearly show that we have lost the true doctrine. In short, as long as the Church proclaims the doctrine, it must endure persecution, because the Gospel reveals God's mercy and glory. This, in turn, provokes the devil, since the Gospel exposes him for who he truly is, the devil, and not God. Therefore, as long as the Gospel is upheld, persecution is the norm; otherwise, something is wrong with the devil. When he is struck, you will notice it by the chaos he causes everywhere.
So do not be surprised or offended when hell breaks loose. Look upon it as a happy indication that all is well with the Gospel of the Cross. God forbid that the offense of the Cross should ever be removed. This would be the case if we were to preach what the prince of this world and his followers would be only too glad to hear, the righteousness of works. You would never know the devil could be so gentle, the world so sweet, the Pope so gracious, and the princes so charming. But because we seek the advantage and honor of Christ, they persecute us all around.
So don’t be shocked or offended when chaos erupts. View it as a good sign that the message of the Cross is strong. God forbid we ever remove the challenge of the Cross. That would happen if we started preaching what the prince of this world and his followers would be eager to hear: the righteousness of good deeds. You’d never realize how gentle the devil could be, how sweet the world is, how gracious the Pope seems, and how charming the rulers can act. But because we prioritize the glory and honor of Christ, they persecute us from every side.
VERSE 12. I would they were even cut off which trouble you.
VERSE 12. I wish they would just get removed completely from bothering you.
It hardly seems befitting an apostle, not only to denounce the false apostles as troublers of the Church, and to consign them to the devil, but also to wish that they were utterly cut off—what else would you call it but plain cursing? Paul, I suppose, is alluding to the rite of circumcision. As if he were saying to the Galatians: "The false apostles compel you to cut off the foreskin of your flesh. Well, I wish they themselves were utterly cut off by the roots."
It hardly seems fitting for an apostle to just call out the false apostles as troublemakers of the Church and to hand them over to the devil, but also to wish that they were completely cut off—what else would you call that but straightforward cursing? Paul seems to be referring to the practice of circumcision. It's like he's saying to the Galatians: "The false apostles are forcing you to cut off the foreskin of your flesh. Well, I wish they themselves were completely cut off at the roots."
We had better answer at once the question, whether it is right for Christians to curse. Certainly not always, nor for every little cause. But when things have come to such a pass that God and His Word are openly blasphemed, then we must say: "Blessed be God and His Word, and cursed be everything that is contrary to God and His Word, even though it should be an apostle, or an angel from heaven."
We should immediately address whether it's acceptable for Christians to curse. Definitely not all the time or for trivial reasons. But when it reaches a point where God and His Word are openly disrespected, then we must declare: "Blessed be God and His Word, and cursed be everything that contradicts God and His Word, even if it were an apostle or an angel from heaven."
This goes to show again how much importance Paul attached to the least points of Christian doctrine, that he dared to curse the false apostles, evidently men of great popularity and influence. What right, then, have we to make little of doctrine? No matter how nonessential a point of doctrine may seem, if slighted it may prove the gradual disintegration of the truths of our salvation.
This shows again how much importance Paul placed on even the smallest points of Christian teaching, as he wasn’t afraid to curse the false apostles, who were clearly well-liked and influential. So what right do we have to downplay doctrine? No matter how insignificant a point of doctrine may seem, if ignored, it could lead to the gradual breakdown of the truths of our salvation.
Let us do everything to advance the glory and authority of God's Word. Every tittle of it is greater than heaven and earth. Christian charity and unity have nothing to do with the Word of God. We are bold to curse and condemn all men who in the least point corrupt the Word of God, "for a little leaven leaveneth the whole lump."
Let’s do everything we can to promote the glory and authority of God's Word. Every part of it is more significant than heaven and earth. Christian love and unity have nothing to do with the Word of God. We boldly condemn anyone who even slightly corrupts the Word of God, "for a little leaven leavens the whole lump."
Paul does right to curse these troublers of the Galatians, wishing that they were cut off and rooted out of the Church of God and that their doctrine might perish forever. Such cursing is the gift of the Holy Ghost. Thus Peter cursed Simon the sorcerer, "Thy money perish with thee." Many instances of this holy cursing are recorded in the sacred Scriptures, especially in the Psalms, e.g., "Let death seize upon them, and let them go down quick into hell." (Ps. 55:15.)
Paul is completely justified in cursing those who trouble the Galatians, wishing they would be removed and cut off from the Church of God and that their teachings would be eradicated forever. Such cursing is a gift from the Holy Spirit. Just like Peter cursed Simon the sorcerer, saying, "May your money perish with you." There are many examples of this righteous cursing recorded in the sacred Scriptures, especially in the Psalms, such as, "Let death seize them, and let them go down alive into hell." (Ps. 55:15.)
THE DOCTRINE OF GOOD WORKS
The Principle of Good Deeds
Now come all kinds of admonitions and precepts. It was the custom of the apostles that after they had taught faith and instructed the conscience they followed it up with admonitions unto good works, that the believers might manifest the duties of love toward each other. In order to avoid the appearance as if Christianity militated against good works or opposed civil government, the Apostle also urges us to give ourselves unto good works, to lead an honest life, and to keep faith and love with one another. This will give the lie to the accusations of the world that we Christians are the enemies of decency and of public peace. The fact is we Christians know better what constitutes a truly good work than all the philosophers and legislators of the world because we link believing with doing.
Now we have all sorts of advice and guidelines. The apostles had a practice where, after teaching faith and helping people understand their conscience, they would follow up with encouragements to do good works, so that believers could show their love for one another. To counter the misconception that Christianity is against good deeds or opposes civil government, the Apostle encourages us to engage in good works, live honestly, and maintain faith and love with each other. This will contradict the claims from the world that we Christians are against decency and public order. In reality, we Christians understand what real good works are better than any philosophers or lawmakers because we connect belief with action.
VERSE 13. For, brethren, ye have been called unto liberty; only use not liberty for an occasion to the flesh, but by love serve one another.
VERSE 13. For, brothers, you have been called to freedom; but don't use your freedom as an opportunity to indulge your desires, rather, serve one another in love.
In other words: "You have gained liberty through Christ, i.e., You are above all laws as far as conscience is concerned. You are saved. Christ is your liberty and life. Therefore law, sin, and death may not hurt you or drive you to despair. This is the constitution of your priceless liberty. Now take care that you do not use your wonderful liberty for an occasion of the flesh."
In other words: "You've gained freedom through Christ, meaning you rise above all laws when it comes to your conscience. You're saved. Christ is your freedom and your life. So, neither law, sin, nor death can harm you or lead you to despair. This is the foundation of your priceless freedom. Now, make sure you don't misuse your incredible freedom for selfish desires."
Satan likes to turn this liberty which Christ has gotten for us into licentiousness. Already the Apostle Jude complained in his day: "There are certain men crept in unawares...turning the grace of our God into lasciviousness." (Jude 4.) The flesh reasons: "If we are without the law, we may as well indulge ourselves. Why do good, why give alms, why suffer evil when there is no law to force us to do so?"
Satan likes to twist the freedom that Christ has won for us into something reckless. Even back in the Apostle Jude's time, he noted that "Certain people have sneaked in unnoticed...turning the grace of our God into a license for immorality." (Jude 4.) The flesh argues, "If we are free from the law, we might as well indulge ourselves. Why should we do good, why should we give to charity, why should we endure hardship when there’s no law compelling us to do so?"
This attitude is common enough. People talk about Christian liberty and then go and cater to the desires of covetousness, pleasure, pride, envy, and other vices. Nobody wants to fulfill his duties. Nobody wants to help out a brother in distress. This sort of thing makes me so impatient at times that I wish the swine who trampled precious pearls under foot were back once again under the tyranny of the Pope. You cannot wake up the people of Gomorrah with the gospel of peace.
This mindset is pretty common. People talk about Christian freedom and then end up giving in to greed, pleasure, pride, envy, and other vices. Nobody wants to take care of their responsibilities. Nobody wants to help out a brother in need. This kind of thing makes me so frustrated sometimes that I wish the swine who wasted valuable pearls were back under the Pope's control. You can't wake the people of Gomorrah with the message of peace.
Even we creatures of the world do not perform our duties as zealously in the light of the Gospel as we did before in the darkness of ignorance, because the surer we are of the liberty purchased for us by Christ, the more we neglect the Word, prayer, well-doing, and suffering. If Satan were not continually molesting us with trials, with the persecution of our enemies, and the ingratitude of our brethren, we would become so careless and indifferent to all good works that in time we would lose our faith in Christ, resign the ministry of the Word, and look for an easier life. Many of our ministers are beginning to do that very thing. They complain about the ministry, they maintain they cannot live on their salaries, they whimper about the miserable treatment they receive at the hand of those whom they delivered from the servitude of the law by the preaching of the Gospel. These ministers desert our poor and maligned Christ, involve themselves in the affairs of the world, seek advantages for themselves and not for Christ. With what results they shall presently find out.
Even we beings in this world don't carry out our responsibilities as passionately in the light of the Gospel as we did back when we were in ignorance. The more we understand the freedom that Christ bought for us, the more we tend to overlook the Word, prayer, good deeds, and suffering. If Satan weren't constantly bothering us with challenges, the persecution from our enemies, and the ungratefulness of our brothers and sisters, we would become so careless and apathetic toward good works that eventually, we could lose our faith in Christ, abandon the ministry of the Word, and seek an easier life. Many of our ministers are starting to do just that. They complain about the ministry, claim they can't survive on their salaries, and grumble about the poor treatment they receive from those they helped free from the law by preaching the Gospel. These ministers abandon our suffering and misunderstood Christ, get caught up in worldly matters, and look for personal gain instead of that of Christ. They will soon realize the consequences of their choices.
Since the devil lies in ambush for those in particular who hate the world, and seeks to deprive us of our liberty of the spirit or to brutalize it into the liberty of the flesh, we plead with our brethren after the manner of Paul, that they may never use this liberty of the spirit purchased for us by Christ as an excuse for carnal living, or as Peter expresses it, I Peter 2:16, "for a cloak of maliciousness."
Since the devil waits to trap those who particularly hate the world and tries to take away our freedom of spirit or turn it into freedom of the flesh, we urge our fellow believers, like Paul did, that they should never use the freedom of spirit that Christ bought for us as an excuse for living in a worldly way, or as Peter puts it in 1 Peter 2:16, "as a cover for evil."
In order that Christians may not abuse their liberty the Apostle encumbers them with the rule of mutual love that they should serve each other in love. Let everybody perform the duties of his station and vocation diligently and help his neighbor to the limit of his capacity.
To ensure that Christians don't misuse their freedom, the Apostle emphasizes the importance of mutual love, encouraging them to serve one another with love. Everyone should fulfill their responsibilities in their roles and professions with diligence and assist their neighbors to the best of their ability.
Christians are glad to hear and obey this teaching of love. When others hear about this Christian liberty of ours they at once infer, "If I am free, I may do what I like. If salvation is not a matter of doing why should we do anything for the poor?" In this crude manner they turn the liberty of the spirit into wantonness and licentiousness. We want them to know, however, that if they use their lives and possessions after their own pleasure, if they do not help the poor, if they cheat their fellow-men in business and snatch and scrape by hook and by crook everything they can lay their hands on, we want to tell them that they are not free, no matter how much they think they are, but they are the dirty slaves of the devil, and are seven times worse than they ever were as the slaves of the Pope.
Christians are happy to hear and follow this teaching of love. When others learn about our Christian freedom, they immediately think, "If I'm free, I can do whatever I want. If salvation isn't about actions, why should we help the poor?" In this simplistic way, they twist the freedom of the spirit into indulgence and moral decay. We want them to understand that if they live their lives and use their belongings just for their own enjoyment, if they don’t help the poor, if they deceive others in business and grab everything they can by any means necessary, we want to tell them that they aren’t free, no matter how much they believe they are. Instead, they are slaves to the devil, and they're far worse off than they ever were as the slaves of the Pope.
As for us, we are obliged to preach the Gospel which offers to all men liberty from the Law, sin, death, and God's wrath. We have no right to conceal or revoke this liberty proclaimed by the Gospel. And so we cannot do anything with the swine who dive headlong into the filth of licentiousness. We do what we can, we diligently admonish them to love and to help their fellow-men. If our admonitions bear no fruit, we leave them to God, who will in His own good time take care of these disrespecters of His goodness. In the meanwhile we comfort ourselves with the thought that our labors are not lost upon the true believers. They appreciate this spiritual liberty and stand ready to serve others in love and, though their number is small, the satisfaction they give us far outweighs the discouragement which we receive at the hands of the large number of those who misuse this liberty.
As for us, we must share the Gospel that offers everyone freedom from the Law, sin, death, and God's anger. We do not have the right to hide or take back this freedom proclaimed by the Gospel. Therefore, we can’t do anything for those who plunge into the dirt of immorality. We do what we can and sincerely encourage them to love and support one another. If our efforts don’t lead to any change, we leave them to God, who will deal with these people who disrespect His goodness in His own time. Meanwhile, we find comfort in knowing that our efforts are not wasted on true believers. They value this spiritual freedom and are eager to serve others with love, and although they are few in number, the joy they bring us far exceeds the disappointment we feel from the many who abuse this freedom.
Paul cannot possibly be misunderstood for he says: "Brethren, ye have been called unto liberty." In order that nobody might mistake the liberty of which he speaks for the liberty of the flesh, the Apostle adds the explanatory note, "only use not liberty for an occasion to the flesh, but by love serve one another." Paul now explains at the hand of the Ten Commandments what it means to serve one another in love.
Paul can't be misunderstood because he states, "Brothers, you have been called to freedom." To ensure no one confuses the freedom he refers to with freedom of the flesh, the Apostle adds the clarifying note, "but do not use your freedom as an opportunity for the flesh; rather, serve one another in love." Paul now explains, using the Ten Commandments, what it means to serve one another in love.
VERSE 14. For all the law is fulfilled in one word, even in this, thou shalt love thy neighbour as thyself.
VERSE 14. For all the law is summed up in one phrase: you shall love your neighbor as yourself.
It is customary with Paul to lay the doctrinal foundation first and then to build on it the gold, silver, and gems of good deeds. Now there is no other foundation than Jesus Christ. Upon this foundation the Apostle erects the structure of good works which he defines in this one sentence: "Thou shalt love thy neighbour as thyself."
It’s typical for Paul to establish the doctrinal groundwork first and then add the valuable contributions of good deeds on top of it. There is no foundation other than Jesus Christ. On this foundation, the Apostle constructs the framework of good works, which he sums up in this one statement: "You shall love your neighbor as yourself."
In adding such precepts of love the Apostle embarrasses the false apostles very much, as if he were saying to the Galatians: "I have described to you what spiritual life is. Now I will also teach you what truly good works are. I am doing this in order that you may understand that the silly ceremonies of which the false apostles make so much are far inferior to the works of Christian love." This is the hall-mark of all false teachers, that they not only pervert the pure doctrine but also fail in doing good. Their foundation vitiated, they can only build wood, hay, and stubble. Oddly enough, the false apostles who were such earnest champions of good works never required the work of charity, such as Christian love and the practical charity of a helpful tongue, hand, and heart. Their only requirement was that circumcision, days, months, years, and times should be observed. They could not think of any other good works.
By adding these teachings about love, the Apostle puts the false apostles in a difficult position, as if he were saying to the Galatians: "I've explained to you what spiritual life is. Now I'll also show you what true good works are. I'm doing this so you can see that the pointless rituals that the false apostles focus on are way less significant than the actions of Christian love." This is the signature of all false teachers—they not only distort the pure doctrine but also fail to do any good. With their foundation damaged, they can only create something as worthless as wood, hay, and stubble. Interestingly, the false apostles, who were so passionate about good works, never emphasized the importance of charity, like Christian love and the practical help of a kind word, a helping hand, or a caring heart. Their only priority was to ensure that circumcision, special days, months, years, and times were followed. They couldn't think of any other good works.
The Apostle exhorts all Christians to practice good works after they have embraced the pure doctrine of faith, because even though they have been justified they still have the old flesh to refrain them from doing good. Therefore it becomes necessary that sincere preachers cultivate the doctrine of good works as diligently as the doctrine of faith, for Satan is a deadly enemy of both. Nevertheless faith must come first because without faith it is impossible to know what a God-pleasing deed is.
The Apostle encourages all Christians to do good works after they have accepted the true doctrine of faith, because even though they have been justified, they still have the old nature that holds them back from doing good. Therefore, it’s essential that genuine preachers focus on the doctrine of good works just as much as the doctrine of faith, since Satan opposes both fiercely. However, faith must come first because without faith, it's impossible to understand what a God-pleasing action is.
Let nobody think that he knows all about this commandment, "Thou shalt love thy neighbour as thyself." It sounds short and easy, but show me the man who can teach, learn, and do this commandment perfectly. None of us heed, or urge, or practice this commandment properly. Though the conscience hurts when we fail to fulfill this commandment in every respect we are not overwhelmed by our failure to bear our neighbor sincere and brotherly love.
Let no one think they fully understand this commandment, "Love your neighbor as yourself." It seems simple and straightforward, but show me someone who can teach, learn, and fully live by this commandment. None of us pay attention to, encourage, or practice this commandment as we should. Even though our conscience bothers us when we fail to meet this commandment in every way, we aren’t deeply affected by our inability to show our neighbor genuine and brotherly love.
The words, "for all the law is fulfilled in one word," entail a criticism of the Galatians. "You are so taken up by your superstitions and ceremonies that serve no good purpose, that you neglect the most important thing, love." St. Jerome says: "We wear our bodies out with watching, fasting, and labor and neglect charity, the queen of all good works." Look at the monks, who meticulously fast, watch, etc. To skip the least requirement of their order would be a crime of the first magnitude. At the same time they blithely ignored the duties of charity and hated each other to death. That is no sin, they think.
The phrase, "for all the law is fulfilled in one word," criticizes the Galatians. "You’re so caught up in your superstitions and pointless ceremonies that you overlook the most important thing: love." St. Jerome says: "We exhaust our bodies with staying awake, fasting, and working hard, while neglecting charity, the greatest of all good deeds." Look at the monks, who strictly follow fasting, prayer, and other practices. Missing even the smallest requirement of their order would be seen as a serious crime. Yet, they easily ignore their obligations to charity and harbor deep hatred for one another. They believe that isn’t a sin.
The Old Testament is replete with examples that indicate how much God prizes charity. When David and his companions had no food with which to still their hunger they ate the showbread which lay-people were forbidden to eat. Christ's disciples broke the Sabbath law when they plucked the ears of corn. Christ himself broke the Sabbath (as the Jews claimed) by healing the sick on the Sabbath. These incidents indicate that love ought to be given consideration above all laws and ceremonies.
The Old Testament is filled with examples showing how much God values charity. When David and his friends had no food to satisfy their hunger, they ate the showbread that ordinary people were not allowed to touch. Jesus' disciples broke the Sabbath rules when they picked grain. Jesus himself, as the Jews claimed, broke the Sabbath by healing the sick on that day. These events show that love should be prioritized over all laws and rituals.
VERSE 14. For all the Law is fulfilled in one word.
VERSE 14. All the Law is summed up in one word.
We can imagine the Apostle saying to the Galatians: "Why do you get so worked up over ceremonies, meats, days, places, and such things? Leave off this foolishness and listen to me. The whole Law is comprehended in this one sentence, 'Thou shalt love thy neighbour as thyself.' God is not particularly interested in ceremonies, nor has He any use for them. The one thing He requires of you is that you believe in Christ whom He hath sent. If in addition to faith, which comes first as the most acceptable service unto God, you want to add laws, then you want to know that all laws are comprehended in this short commandment, 'Thou shalt love thy neighbour as thyself.'"
We can imagine the Apostle saying to the Galatians: "Why do you get so worked up over rituals, foods, days, places, and all that? Stop this nonsense and pay attention to me. The entire Law is summed up in this one sentence: 'Love your neighbor as yourself.' God doesn’t really care about rituals, and He doesn’t need them. The only thing He asks of you is to believe in Christ whom He has sent. If you want to add rules on top of faith, which is the most acceptable service to God, then remember that all rules are summed up in this simple command: 'Love your neighbor as yourself.'"
Paul knows how to explain the law of God. He condenses all the laws of Moses into one brief sentence. Reason takes offense at the brevity with which Paul treats the Law. Therefore reason looks down upon the doctrine of faith and its truly good works. To serve one another in love, i.e., to instruct the erring, to comfort the afflicted, to raise the fallen, to help one's neighbor in every possible way, to bear with his infirmities, to endure hardships, toil, ingratitude in the Church and in the world, and on the other hand to obey government, to honor one's parents, to be patient at home with a nagging wife and an unruly family, these things are not at all regarded as good works. The fact is, they are such excellent works that the world cannot possibly estimate them at their true value.
Paul knows how to explain God’s law. He sums up all of Moses’ laws in one short sentence. Reason is offended by how briefly Paul addresses the Law. So, reason discounts the doctrine of faith and its genuinely good actions. Serving each other in love—like guiding the misled, comforting those who are hurting, lifting those who have fallen, assisting neighbors in every way possible, being patient with their weaknesses, enduring hardships, dealing with ungratefulness in both the Church and the world, and meanwhile obeying the government, honoring one’s parents, and being tolerant at home with a difficult spouse and a troublesome family—these things aren’t seen as good works at all. In reality, they are such outstanding works that the world can’t possibly recognize their true worth.
It is tersely spoken: "Love thy neighbour as thyself." But what more needs to be said? You cannot find a better or nearer example than your own. If you want to know how you ought to love your neighbor, ask yourself how much you love yourself. If you were to get into trouble or danger, you would be glad to have the love and help of all men. You do not need any book of instructions to teach you how to love your neighbor. All you have to do is to look into your own heart, and it will tell you how you ought to love your neighbor as yourself.
It’s simply said: "Love your neighbor as yourself." But what else needs to be said? You can’t find a better or closer example than yourself. If you want to understand how to love your neighbor, ask yourself how much you love yourself. If you were in trouble or danger, you would appreciate the love and support of everyone. You don’t need a manual to show you how to love your neighbor. Just look into your own heart, and it will guide you on how to love your neighbor as yourself.
My neighbor is every person, especially those who need my help, as Christ explained in the tenth chapter of Luke. Even if a person has done me some wrong, or has hurt me in any way, he is still a human being with flesh and blood. As long as a person remains a human being, so long is he to be an object of our love.
My neighbor is everyone, especially those who need my help, as Christ explained in the tenth chapter of Luke. Even if someone has wronged me or hurt me in any way, they are still a human being with flesh and blood. As long as someone is a human being, they deserve our love.
Paul therefore urges his Galatians and, incidentally, all believers to serve each other in love. "You Galatians do not have to accept circumcision. If you are so anxious to do good works, I will tell you in one word how you can fulfill all laws. 'By love serve one another.' You will never lack people to whom you may do good. The world is full of people who need your help."
Paul urges the Galatians—and all believers, for that matter—to serve each other with love. "You Galatians don’t need to get circumcised. If you’re eager to do good works, I’ll give you one simple rule to follow: 'Serve one another in love.' You’ll always find people who need your help. The world is filled with people seeking your support."
VERSE 15. But if ye bite and devour one another take heed that ye be not consumed one of another.
VERSE 15. But if you keep attacking and hurting each other, be careful that you don’t end up destroying each other.
When faith in Christ is overthrown peace and unity come to an end in the church. Diverse opinions and dissensions about doctrine and life spring up, and one member bites and devours the other, i.e., they condemn each other until they are consumed. To this the Scriptures and the experience of all times bear witness. The many sects at present have come into being because one sect condemns the other. When the unity of the spirit has been lost there can be no agreement in doctrine or life. New errors must appear without measure and without end.
When faith in Christ is lost, peace and unity in the church disappear. Different opinions and disagreements about beliefs and living emerge, leading members to criticize and attack each other until they're completely worn out. This is supported by both Scripture and the experiences of all time. The numerous sects we see today have formed because one group condemns another. Without the unity of the spirit, there can be no agreement in beliefs or lifestyle. New errors will continuously arise without limit.
For the avoidance of discord Paul lays down the principle: "Let every person do his duty in the station of life into which God has called him. No person is to vaunt himself above others or find fault with the efforts of others while lauding his own. Let everybody serve in love."
To avoid conflict, Paul establishes a principle: "Everyone should fulfill their responsibilities in the position in which God has placed them. No one should boast about themselves or criticize others while praising their own efforts. Everyone should serve with love."
It is not an easy matter to teach faith without works, and still to require works. Unless the ministers of Christ are wise in handling the mysteries of God and rightly divide the word, faith and good works may easily be confused. Both the doctrine of faith and the doctrine of good works must be diligently taught, and yet in such a way that both the doctrines stay within their God-given sphere. If we only teach works, as our opponents do, we shall lose the faith. If we only teach faith people will come to think that good works are superfluous.
It's not easy to teach that faith doesn't need works while still emphasizing the importance of works. Unless Christ's ministers are smart in explaining God's mysteries and properly interpreting the scripture, faith and good works can easily get mixed up. Both the principles of faith and good works need to be taught carefully, but in a way that keeps them within their intended purpose. If we only focus on works, like our opponents do, we will lose the concept of faith. If we only focus on faith, people might start to believe that good works aren't necessary.
VERSE 16. This I say then, Walk in the Spirit, and ye shall not fulfill the lust of the flesh.
VERSE 16. This is what I mean: Live by the Spirit, and you won't give in to the desires of the flesh.
"I have not forgotten what I told you about faith in the first part of my letter. Because I exhort you to mutual love you are not to think that I have gone back on my teaching of justification by faith alone. I am still of the same opinion. To remove every possibility for misunderstanding I have added this explanatory note: 'Walk in the Spirit, and ye shall not fulfill the lust of the flesh.'"
"I haven't forgotten what I told you about faith in the first part of my letter. Just because I encourage you to love one another doesn't mean I've changed my stance on justification by faith alone. I still believe the same thing. To eliminate any chance of misunderstanding, I've added this explanatory note: 'Walk in the Spirit, and you will not fulfill the desires of the flesh.'"
With this verse Paul explains how he wants this sentence to be understood: "By love serve one another. When I bid you to love one another, this is what I mean and require, 'Walk in the Spirit.' I know very well you will not fulfill the Law, because you are sinners as long as you live. Nevertheless, you should endeavor to walk in the spirit," i.e., fight against the flesh and follow the lead of the Holy Ghost.
With this verse, Paul clarifies how he wants this sentence to be understood: "Serve one another in love. When I ask you to love one another, this is what I mean and expect: 'Live by the Spirit.' I know that you won't be able to follow the Law completely because you are sinners for as long as you live. However, you should strive to live by the Spirit," meaning to battle against your sinful nature and follow the guidance of the Holy Spirit.
It is quite apparent that Paul had not forgotten the doctrine of justification, for in bidding the Galatians to walk in the Spirit he at the same time denies that good works can justify. "When I speak of the fulfilling of the Law I do not mean to say that you are justified by the Law. All I mean to say is that you should take the Spirit for your guide and resist the flesh. That is the most you shall ever be able to do. Obey the Spirit and fight against the flesh."
It’s clear that Paul hadn’t forgotten the concept of justification, since when he encourages the Galatians to live by the Spirit, he also emphasizes that good works cannot justify them. "When I talk about fulfilling the Law, I’m not saying that you are justified by the Law. What I’m saying is that you should let the Spirit guide you and stand against your desires. That’s the best you can do. Follow the Spirit and resist your desires."
VERSE 16. And ye shall not fulfill the lust of the flesh.
VERSE 16. And you shall not satisfy the desires of the flesh.
The lust of the flesh is not altogether extinct in us. It rises up again and again and wrestles with the Spirit. No flesh, not even that of the true believer, is so completely under the influence of the Spirit that it will not bite or devour, or at least neglect, the commandment of love. At the slightest provocation it flares up, demands to be revenged, and hates a neighbor like an enemy, or at least does not love him as much as he ought to be loved.
The desire of the flesh is not completely gone from us. It keeps resurfacing and struggles with the Spirit. No one's flesh, not even that of a true believer, is so fully guided by the Spirit that it won't lash out, consume, or at the very least ignore the commandment of love. At the slightest trigger, it flares up, seeks revenge, and can hate a neighbor like an enemy, or at least fail to love them as they should be loved.
Therefore the Apostle establishes this rule of love for the believers. Serve one another in love. Bear the infirmities of your brother. Forgive one another. Without such bearing and forbearing, giving and forgiving, there can be no unity because to give and to take offense are unavoidably human.
Therefore, the Apostle sets this rule of love for the believers. Serve each other in love. Support each other through difficulties. Forgive one another. Without this support and patience, giving and forgiving, there can be no unity because taking and giving offense are just part of being human.
Whenever you are angry with your brother for any cause, repress your violent emotions through the Spirit. Bear with his weakness and love him. He does not cease to be your neighbor or brother because he offended you. On the contrary, he now more than ever before requires your loving attention.
Whenever you're upset with your brother for any reason, control your intense feelings through the Spirit. Be patient with his weaknesses and show him love. He doesn't stop being your neighbor or brother just because he hurt you. In fact, he needs your caring support now more than ever.
The scholastics take the lust of the flesh to mean carnal lust. True, believers too are tempted with carnal lust. Even the married are not immune to carnal lusts. Men set little value upon that which they have and covet what they have not, as the poet says:
The scholastics interpret the desire of the flesh as physical desire. It's true that even true believers face temptations of physical desire. Married people are not free from these physical urges either. People often undervalue what they possess and yearn for what they don’t have, as the poet says:
"The things most forbidden we always desire, And things most denied we seek to acquire."
"The things that are most forbidden are always what we want, and the things we can't have are what we try to get."
I do not deny that the lust of the flesh includes carnal lust. But it takes in more. It takes in all the corrupt desires with which the believers are more or less infected, as pride, hatred, covetousness, impatience. Later on Paul enumerates among the works of the flesh even idolatry and heresy. The apostle's meaning is clear. "I want you to love one another. But you do not do it. In fact you cannot do it, because of your flesh. Hence we cannot be justified by deeds of love. Do not for a moment think that I am reversing myself on my stand concerning faith. Faith and hope must continue. By faith we are justified, by hope we endure to the end. In addition we serve each other in love because true faith is not idle. Our love, however, is faulty. In bidding you to walk in the Spirit I indicate to you that our love is not sufficient to justify us. Neither do I demand that you should get rid of the flesh, but that you should control and subdue it."
I don’t deny that physical desire includes sexual desire. But it also encompasses more. It includes all the corrupt desires that can affect believers, like pride, hatred, greed, and impatience. Later, Paul lists even idolatry and heresy among the works of the flesh. The apostle’s message is clear. “I want you to love one another. But you don’t do it. In fact, you can’t do it because of your flesh. Therefore, we can’t be justified by our acts of love. Don’t think for a second that I'm changing my position on faith. Faith and hope must persist. We are justified by faith, and we endure to the end through hope. Additionally, we serve one another in love because true faith is active. However, our love is imperfect. By urging you to walk in the Spirit, I’m informing you that our love isn’t enough to justify us. I’m not asking you to get rid of the flesh, but to manage and control it.”
VERSE 17. For the flesh lusteth against the Spirit and the Spirit against the flesh.
VERSE 17. For the body desires what is contrary to the Spirit, and the Spirit desires what is contrary to the body.
When Paul declares that "the flesh lusteth against the Spirit, and the Spirit against the flesh," he means to say that we are not to think, speak or do the things to which the flesh incites us. "I know," he says, "that the flesh courts sin. The thing for you to do is to resist the flesh by the Spirit. But if you abandon the leadership of the Spirit for that of the flesh, you are going to fulfill the lust of the flesh and die in your sins."
When Paul says that "the flesh struggles against the Spirit, and the Spirit against the flesh," he implies that we shouldn't think, speak, or act on the urges that the flesh provokes. "I know," he states, "that the flesh seeks out sin. The key is to resist the flesh through the Spirit. But if you choose to follow the flesh instead of the Spirit, you'll end up satisfying the desires of the flesh and perish in your sins."
VERSE 17. And these are contrary the one to the other; so that ye cannot do the things that ye would.
VERSE 17. And these are opposed to each other; so that you cannot do the things you want.
These two leaders, the flesh and the Spirit, are bitter opponents. Of this opposition the Apostle writes in the seventh chapter of the Epistle to the Romans: "I see another law in my members, warring against the law of my mind, and bringing me into the captivity to the law of sin which is in my members. O wretched man that I am! who shall deliver me from the body of this death?"
These two leaders, the flesh and the Spirit, are fierce enemies. The Apostle discusses this conflict in the seventh chapter of the Epistle to the Romans: "I see another law in my body, battling against the law of my mind, and bringing me captive to the law of sin that is within me. Oh, what a miserable person I am! Who will rescue me from this body of death?"
The scholastics are at a loss to understand this confession of Paul and feel obliged to save his honor. That the chosen vessel of Christ should have had the law of sin in his members seems to them incredible and absurd. They circumvent the plain-spoken statement of the Apostle by saying that he was speaking for the wicked. But the wicked never complain of inner conflicts, or of the captivity of sin. Sin has its unrestricted way with them. This is Paul's very own complaint and the identical complaint of all believers.
The scholars are confused by Paul's confession and feel the need to protect his reputation. They find it hard to believe that Christ’s chosen vessel could have the law of sin within him and think it's illogical. They twist the Apostle’s straightforward words by claiming he was speaking for the sinful. However, the sinful don’t express inner struggles or feel trapped by sin; sin rules over them freely. This is precisely Paul’s complaint and the same issue that all believers face.
Paul never denied that he felt the lust of the flesh. It is likely that at times he felt even the stirrings of carnal lust, but there is no doubt that he quickly suppressed them. And if at any time he felt angry or impatient, he resisted these feelings by the Spirit. We are not going to stand by idly and see such a comforting statement as this explained away. The scholastics, monks, and others of their ilk fought only against carnal lust and were proud of a victory which they never obtained. In the meanwhile they harbored within their breasts pride, hatred, disdain, self-trust, contempt of the Word of God, disloyalty, blasphemy, and other lusts of the flesh. Against these sins they never fought because they never took them for sins.
Paul never denied that he experienced fleshly desires. It's likely that he sometimes felt the pull of carnal lust, but there's no doubt he quickly pushed those feelings aside. And whenever he felt angry or impatient, he battled those emotions with the Spirit. We're not going to just stand by and let such a reassuring statement be dismissed. The scholastics, monks, and others like them only fought against carnal lust and were proud of a victory they never achieved. In the meantime, they harbored pride, hatred, disdain, self-reliance, contempt for the Word of God, disloyalty, blasphemy, and other fleshly desires. They never fought against these sins because they didn’t see them as sins.
Christ alone can supply us with perfect righteousness. Therefore we must always believe and always hope in Christ. "Whosoever believeth shall not be ashamed." (Rom. 9:33.)
Christ alone can provide us with perfect righteousness. So, we must always believe in and hope in Christ. "Anyone who believes will not be ashamed." (Rom. 9:33.)
Do not despair if you feel the flesh battling against the Spirit or if you cannot make it behave. For you to follow the guidance of the Spirit in all things without interference on the part of the flesh is impossible. You are doing all you can if you resist the flesh and do not fulfill its demands.
Do not lose hope if you feel the body fighting against the Spirit or if you can't control it. It's impossible to follow the Spirit's guidance in everything without some interference from the body. You're doing your best if you resist the body and don't give in to its desires.
When I was a monk I thought I was lost forever whenever I felt an evil emotion, carnal lust, wrath, hatred, or envy. I tried to quiet my conscience in many ways, but it did not work, because lust would always come back and give me no rest. I told myself: "You have permitted this and that sin, envy, impatience, and the like. Your joining this holy order has been in vain, and all your good works are good for nothing." If at that time I had understood this passage, "The flesh lusteth against the Spirit, and the Spirit against the flesh," I could have spared myself many a day of self-torment. I would have said to myself: "Martin, you will never be without sin, for you have flesh. Despair not, but resist the flesh."
When I was a monk, I felt completely lost every time I experienced a negative emotion, like lust, anger, hatred, or jealousy. I tried to calm my conscience in various ways, but nothing worked because lust always came back and never let me rest. I kept telling myself, "You've allowed all these sins—envy, impatience, and so on. Joining this holy order was pointless, and all your good deeds mean nothing." If I had understood back then the saying, "The flesh lusts against the Spirit, and the Spirit against the flesh," I could have saved myself a lot of days filled with self-torment. I would have reminded myself, "Martin, you will never be free of sin since you have a body. Don't lose hope, but fight against the flesh."
I remember how Doctor Staupitz used to say to me: "I have promised God a thousand times that I would become a better man, but I never kept my promise. From now on I am not going to make any more vows. Experience has taught me that I cannot keep them. Unless God is merciful to me for Christ's sake and grants unto me a blessed departure, I shall not be able to stand before Him." His was a God-pleasing despair. No true believer trusts in his own righteousness, but says with David, "Enter not into judgment with thy servant; for in thy sight shall no man living be justified." (Ps. 143:2) Again, "If thou, Lord, shouldest mark iniquities, O Lord, who shall stand?" (Ps. 130:3.)
I remember how Dr. Staupitz used to tell me: "I've promised God a thousand times that I would become a better person, but I never kept my promise. From now on, I'm not going to make any more vows. Experience has shown me that I can't keep them. Unless God shows me mercy for Christ's sake and allows me a peaceful departure, I won't be able to stand before Him." His was a God-pleasing despair. No true believer relies on their own righteousness but says with David, "Do not enter into judgment with your servant; for in your sight no one living is righteous." (Ps. 143:2) Again, "If you, Lord, kept a record of sins, Lord, who could stand?" (Ps. 130:3.)
No man is to despair of salvation just because he is aware of the lust of the flesh. Let him be aware of it so long as he does not yield to it. The passion of lust, wrath, and other vices may shake him, but they are not to get him down. Sin may assail him, but he is not to welcome it. Yes, the better Christian a man is, the more he will experience the heat of the conflict. This explains the many expressions of regret in the Psalms and in the entire Bible. Everybody is to determine his peculiar weakness and guard against it. Watch and wrestle in spirit against your weakness. Even if you cannot completely overcome it, at least you ought to fight against it.
No one should lose hope for salvation just because they're aware of their physical desires. Acknowledge those desires, but don’t give in to them. Feelings of lust, anger, and other vices may challenge you, but they shouldn’t bring you down. Sin may attack you, but don’t welcome it. In fact, the better a person is as a Christian, the more they'll feel the intensity of the struggle. This is reflected in the many expressions of sorrow found in the Psalms and throughout the Bible. Everyone should identify their specific weaknesses and be on guard against them. Stay alert and wrestle spiritually with your weaknesses. Even if you can't completely overcome them, you should still strive to fight against them.
According to this description a saint is not one who is made of wood and never feels any lusts or desires of the flesh. A true saint confesses his righteousness and prays that his sins may be forgiven. The whole Church prays for the forgiveness of sins and confesses that it believes in the forgiveness of sins. If our antagonists would read the Scriptures they would soon discover that they cannot judge rightly of anything, either of sin or of holiness.
According to this description, a saint is not someone who is wooden and free of any lust or desire. A true saint acknowledges their righteousness and asks for forgiveness for their sins. The entire Church prays for forgiveness and professes its belief in it. If our opponents would read the Scriptures, they would quickly realize that they can't accurately judge anything, whether it's sin or holiness.
VERSE 18. But if ye be led of the Spirit, ye are not under the law.
VERSE 18. But if you are led by the Spirit, you are not under the law.
Here someone may object: "How come we are not under the law? You yourself say, Paul, that we have the flesh which wars against the Spirit, and brings us into subjection."
Here someone might argue: "How is it that we're not under the law? You yourself say, Paul, that we have the flesh that battles against the Spirit and puts us in bondage."
But Paul says not to let it trouble us. As long as we are led by the Spirit, and are willing to obey the Spirit who resists the flesh, we are not under the Law. True believers are not under the Law. The Law cannot condemn them although they feel sin and confess it.
But Paul says not to let it bother us. As long as we follow the Spirit and are willing to listen to the Spirit who opposes the flesh, we are not bound by the Law. True believers are not held to the Law. The Law cannot condemn them, even though they experience sin and admit it.
Great then is the power of the Spirit. Led by the Spirit, the Law cannot condemn the believer though he commits real sin. For Christ in whom we believe is our righteousness. He is without sin, and the Law cannot accuse Him. As long as we cling to Him we are led by the Spirit and are free from the Law. Even as he teaches good works, the Apostle does not lose sight of the doctrine of justification, but shows at every turn that it is impossible for us to be justified by works.
Great is the power of the Spirit. Guided by the Spirit, the Law cannot condemn the believer even if they commit real sin. For Christ, in whom we believe, is our righteousness. He is without sin, and the Law cannot accuse Him. As long as we hold on to Him, we are led by the Spirit and are free from the Law. Even as he teaches good works, the Apostle does not lose sight of the doctrine of justification, but consistently shows that it is impossible for us to be justified by works.
The words, "If ye be led of the Spirit, ye are not under the law," are replete with comfort. It happens at times that anger, hatred, impatience, carnal desire, fear, sorrow, or some other lust of the flesh so overwhelms a man that he cannot shake them off, though he try ever so hard. What should he do? Should he despair? God forbid. Let him say to himself: "My flesh seems to be on a warpath against the Spirit again. Go to it, flesh, and rage all you want to. But you are not going to have your way. I follow the leading of the Spirit."
The words, "If you are led by the Spirit, you are not under the law," are filled with comfort. Sometimes, anger, hatred, impatience, lust, fear, sorrow, or some other desire takes over a person so completely that they can't shake it off, no matter how hard they try. What should they do? Should they give up? Absolutely not. They should tell themselves: "My flesh seems to be in battle against the Spirit again. Go ahead, flesh, and rage as much as you want. But you're not going to win. I choose to follow the guidance of the Spirit."
When the flesh begins to cut up the only remedy is to take the sword of the Spirit, the word of salvation, and fight against the flesh. If you set the Word out of sight, you are helpless against the flesh. I know this to be a fact. I have been assailed by many violent passions, but as soon as I took hold of some Scripture passage, my temptations left me. Without the Word I could not have helped myself against the flesh.
When the flesh starts to take control, the only solution is to grab the sword of the Spirit, which is the word of salvation, and battle against the flesh. If you ignore the Word, you’re powerless against the flesh. I’ve experienced this firsthand. I’ve faced many intense desires, but as soon as I clung to a Scripture passage, my temptations disappeared. Without the Word, I wouldn’t have been able to defend myself against the flesh.
VERSE 19. Now the works of the flesh are manifest, which are these.
VERSE 19. Now the actions of the flesh are clear, which are these.
Paul is saying: "That none of you may hide behind the plea of ignorance I will enumerate first the works of the flesh, and then also the works of the Spirit."
Paul is saying: "So that none of you can claim ignorance, I will list the works of the flesh first, and then the works of the Spirit."
There were many hypocrites among the Galatians, as there are also among us, who pretend to be Christians and talk much about the Spirit, but they walk not according to the Spirit; rather according to the flesh. Paul is out to show them that they are not as holy as they like to have others think they are.
There were many hypocrites among the Galatians, just like there are among us today, who claim to be Christians and talk a lot about the Spirit, but they don't live by the Spirit; instead, they live according to their desires. Paul aims to show them that they aren't as righteous as they want others to believe they are.
Every period of life has its own peculiar temptations. Not one true believer whom the flesh does not again and again incite to impatience, anger, pride. But it is one thing to be tempted by the flesh, and another thing to yield to the flesh, to do its bidding without fear or remorse, and to continue in sin.
Every stage of life has its own unique temptations. There isn't a single true believer who isn't repeatedly provoked by the flesh to feelings of impatience, anger, or pride. However, it's one thing to be tempted by the flesh, and quite another to give in to it, to follow its demands without fear or guilt, and to persist in sin.
Christians also fall and perform the lusts of the flesh. David fell horribly into adultery. Peter also fell grievously when he denied Christ. However great these sins were, they were not committed to spite God, but from weakness. When their sins were brought to their attention these men did not obstinately continue in their sin, but repented. Those who sin through weakness are not denied pardon as long as they rise again and cease to sin. There is nothing worse than to continue in sin. If they do not repent, but obstinately continue to fulfill the desires of the flesh, it is a sure sign that they are not sincere.
Christians can stumble and give in to their physical desires. David fell drastically into adultery. Peter also seriously messed up when he denied Christ. No matter how serious these sins were, they weren’t done to defy God, but out of weakness. When these men realized their wrongs, they didn’t stubbornly keep sinning; instead, they repented. Those who sin out of weakness can be forgiven as long as they get back up and stop sinning. There’s nothing worse than continuing in sin. If they don’t repent and stubbornly pursue their desires, it’s a clear sign that they’re not genuine.
No person is free from temptations. Some are tempted in one way, others in another way. One person is more easily tempted to bitterness and sorrow of spirit, blasphemy, distrust, and despair. Another is more easily tempted to carnal lust, anger, envy, covetousness. But no matter to which sins we are disposed, we are to walk in the Spirit and resist the flesh. Those who are Christ's own crucify their flesh.
No one is free from temptation. Some are tempted in one way, while others are tempted differently. Some people find it easier to fall into bitterness, sadness, blasphemy, distrust, and despair. Others are more easily tempted by lust, anger, envy, and greed. But regardless of the sins we are prone to, we should live by the Spirit and resist our desires. Those who belong to Christ put their desires to death.
Some of the old saints labored so hard to attain perfection that they lost the capacity to feel anything. When I was a monk I often wished I could see a saint. I pictured him as living in the wilderness, abstaining from meat and drink and living on roots and herbs and cold water. This weird conception of those awesome saints I had gained out of the books of the scholastics and church fathers. But we know now from the Scriptures who the true saints are. Not those who live a single life, or make a fetish of days, meats, clothes, and such things. The true saints are those who believe that they are justified by the death of Christ. Whenever Paul writes to the Christians here and there he calls them the holy children and heirs of God. All who believe in Christ, whether male or female, bond or free, are saints; not in view of their own works, but in view of the merits of God which they appropriate by faith. Their holiness is a gift and not their own personal achievement.
Some of the old saints worked so hard to achieve perfection that they lost the ability to feel anything. When I was a monk, I often wished I could meet a saint. I imagined him living in the wilderness, avoiding meat and drink, surviving on roots, herbs, and cold water. This strange idea of those amazing saints came from the writings of the scholastics and church fathers. But we now know from the Scriptures who the real saints are. They are not those who live a single life or obsess over days, foods, clothes, and such matters. The true saints are those who believe they are justified by Christ's death. Whenever Paul writes to Christians here and there, he calls them holy children and heirs of God. All who believe in Christ, whether male or female, slave or free, are saints; not because of their own actions, but because of God's grace that they accept by faith. Their holiness is a gift, not something they achieved on their own.
Ministers of the Gospel, public officials, parents, children, masters, servants, etc., are true saints when they take Christ for their wisdom, righteousness, sanctification, and redemption, and when they fulfill the duties of their several vocations according to the standard of God's Word and repress the lust and desires of the flesh by the Spirit. Not everybody can resist temptations with equal facility. Imperfections are bound to show up. But this does not prevent them from being holy. Their unintentional lapses are forgiven if they pull themselves together by faith in Christ. God forbid that we should sit in hasty judgment on those who are weak in faith and life, as long as they love the Word of God and make use of the supper of the Lord.
Ministers of the Gospel, public officials, parents, children, masters, servants, and others are true saints when they accept Christ as their wisdom, righteousness, sanctification, and redemption, and when they carry out their responsibilities in their various roles according to the standards of God's Word while keeping their fleshly desires in check through the Spirit. Not everyone can resist temptations with the same ease. Imperfections will inevitably appear. However, this doesn't stop them from being holy. Their unintended mistakes are forgiven as long as they regroup through faith in Christ. It's important that we don’t rush to judge those who struggle in faith and life, as long as they love the Word of God and partake in the Lord's Supper.
I thank God that He has permitted me to see (what as a monk I so earnestly desired to see) not one but many saints, whole multitudes of true saints. Not the kind of saints the papists admire, but the kind of saints Christ wants. I am sure I am one of Christ's true saints. I am baptized. I believe that Christ my Lord has redeemed me from all my sins, and invested me with His own eternal righteousness and holiness. To hide in caves and dens, to have a bony body, to wear the hair long in the mistaken idea that such departures from normalcy will obtain some special regard in heaven is not the holy life. A holy life is to be baptized and to believe in Christ, and to subdue the flesh with the Spirit.
I thank God that He has allowed me to see (what I, as a monk, really wanted to see) not just one, but many saints—whole crowds of true saints. Not the kind of saints the Catholics admire, but the kind of saints Christ desires. I am confident that I am one of Christ's true saints. I am baptized. I believe that Christ, my Lord, has saved me from all my sins and has clothed me in His own eternal righteousness and holiness. Hiding in caves and dens, having a skinny body, and growing my hair long in the misguided belief that such extremes will earn me special favor in heaven isn’t the true holy life. A holy life is being baptized, believing in Christ, and mastering the flesh through the Spirit.
To feel the lusts of the flesh is not without profit to us. It prevents us from being vain and from being puffed up with the wicked opinion of our own work-righteousness. The monks were so inflated with the opinion of their own righteousness, they thought they had so much holiness that they could afford to sell some of it to others, although their own hearts convinced them of unholiness. The Christian feels the unholy condition of his heart, and it makes him feel so low that he cannot trust in his good works. He therefore goes to Christ to find perfect righteousness. This keeps a Christian humble.
Feeling the desires of the flesh isn't without its benefits. It keeps us from being vain and from getting caught up in the false belief of our own self-righteousness. The monks were so full of themselves, thinking their holiness was so vast that they could share some of it with others, even though deep down they knew they were unholy. A Christian recognizes the unholy state of their heart, which makes them feel so low that they can't rely on their own good deeds. Instead, they turn to Christ to find complete righteousness. This humility keeps a Christian grounded.
VERSES 19, 20. Now the works of the flesh are manifest, which are these: adultery, fornication, uncleanness, lasciviousness, idolatry, witchcraft...
VERSES 19, 20. Now the actions of the flesh are clear, which include: adultery, sexual immorality, impurity, debauchery, idolatry, witchcraft...
Paul does not enumerate all the works of the flesh, but only certain ones. First, he mentions various kinds of carnal lusts, as adultery, fornication, wantonness, etc. But carnal lust is not the only work of the flesh, and so he counts among the works of the flesh also idolatry, witchcraft, hatred, and the like. These terms are so familiar that they do not require lengthy explanations.
Paul doesn’t list all the works of the flesh, just some of them. First, he mentions different types of sexual sins, like adultery, fornication, and promiscuity. But sexual sin isn’t the only work of the flesh, so he also includes idolatry, witchcraft, hatred, and similar things. These terms are so well-known that they don’t need detailed explanations.
IDOLATRY
Idolatry
The best religion, the most fervent devotion without Christ is plain idolatry. It has been considered a holy act when the monks in their cells meditate upon God and His works, and in a religious frenzy kneel down to pray and to weep for joy. Yet Paul calls it simply idolatry. Every religion which worships God in ignorance or neglect of His Word and will is idolatry.
The best religion and the most passionate devotion without Christ is just idolatry. It has been seen as a sacred act when monks in their cells meditate on God and His works, and in a religious fervor, kneel down to pray and weep for joy. Yet Paul refers to it as mere idolatry. Any religion that worships God while ignoring or neglecting His Word and will is idolatry.
They may think about God, Christ, and heavenly things, but they do it after their own fashion and not after the Word of God. They have an idea that their clothing, their mode of living, and their conduct are holy and pleasing to Christ. They not only expect to pacify Christ by the strictness of their life, but also expect to be rewarded by Him for their good deeds. Hence their best "spiritual" thoughts are wicked thoughts. Any worship of God, any religion without Christ is idolatry. In Christ alone is God well pleased.
They might think about God, Christ, and spiritual matters, but they do it in their own way rather than according to the Word of God. They believe that their clothing, lifestyle, and behavior are holy and acceptable to Christ. They not only expect to appease Christ through their strict way of living but also anticipate being rewarded by Him for their good actions. Therefore, their best "spiritual" thoughts are actually wicked thoughts. Any worship of God or religion without Christ is idolatry. It is only in Christ that God is truly pleased.
I have said before that the works of the flesh are manifest. But idolatry puts on such a good front and acts so spiritual that the sham of it is recognized only by true believers.
I’ve mentioned before that the acts of the flesh are obvious. But idolatry presents itself so well and seems so spiritual that only genuine believers can see through the deception.
WITCHCRAFT
Witchcraft
This sin was very common before the light of the Gospel appeared. When I was a child there were many witches and sorcerers around who "bewitched" cattle, and people, particularly children, and did much harm. But now that the Gospel is here you do not hear so much about it because the Gospel drives the devil away. Now he bewitches people in a worse way with spiritual sorcery.
This sin was really common before the light of the Gospel showed up. When I was a kid, there were a lot of witches and sorcerers who "bewitched" cattle and people, especially children, and caused a lot of trouble. But now that the Gospel is here, you don’t hear about it as much because the Gospel pushes the devil away. Now he leads people astray in a worse way with spiritual sorcery.
Witchcraft is a brand of idolatry. As witches used to bewitch cattle and men, so idolaters, i.e., all the self-righteous, go around to bewitch God and to make Him out as one who justifies men not by grace through faith in Christ but by the works of men's own choosing. They bewitch and deceive themselves. If they continue in their wicked thoughts of God they will die in their idolatry.
Witchcraft is a form of idolatry. Just as witches used to cast spells on cattle and people, idolaters, meaning all those who are self-righteous, try to manipulate God into being someone who justifies people not by grace through faith in Christ but by the actions they choose for themselves. They fool themselves and are misled. If they persist in their wrong beliefs about God, they will perish in their idolatry.
SECTS
GROUPS
Under sects Paul here understands heresies. Heresies have always been found in the church. What unity of faith can exist among all the different monks and the different orders? None whatever. There is no unity of spirit, no agreement of minds, but great dissension in the papacy. There is no conformity in doctrine, faith, and life. On the other hand, among evangelical Christians the Word, faith, religion, sacraments, service, Christ, God, heart, and mind are common to all. This unity is not disturbed by outward differences of station or of occupation.
Under sects, Paul refers to heresies. Heresies have always existed in the church. What kind of faith unity can there be among the various monks and different orders? None at all. There is no unity of spirit, no agreement in thoughts, but a lot of conflict within the papacy. There is no consistency in doctrine, faith, and life. In contrast, among evangelical Christians, the Word, faith, religion, sacraments, service, Christ, God, heart, and mind are shared by everyone. This unity isn't affected by external differences in status or occupation.
DRUNKENNESS, GLUTTONY
Intoxication, Overindulgence
Paul does not say that eating and drinking are works of the flesh, but intemperance in eating and drinking, which is a common vice nowadays, is a work of the flesh. Those who are given to excess are to know that they are not spiritual but carnal. Sentence is pronounced upon them that they shall not inherit the kingdom of heaven. Paul desires that Christians avoid drunkenness and gluttony, that they live temperate and sober lives, in order that the body may not grow soft and sensual.
Paul doesn't say that eating and drinking are bad, but overindulgence in these activities, which is a common problem today, is a sign of being driven by the flesh. Those who indulge too much need to understand that they are not living spiritually but in a more carnal way. It's declared that they won't inherit the kingdom of heaven. Paul wants Christians to steer clear of drunkenness and gluttony, so they can lead balanced and sober lives, preventing the body from becoming weak and overly indulgent.
VERSE 21. Of the which I tell you before, as I have also told you in the past, that they which do such things shall not inherit the kingdom of God.
VERSE 21. I have warned you about this before, just like I have in the past, that those who do such things will not inherit the kingdom of God.
This is a hard saying, but very necessary for those false Christians and hypocrites who speak much about the Gospel, about faith, and the Spirit, yet live after the flesh. But this hard sentence is directed chiefly at the heretics who are large with their own self-importance, that they may be frightened into taking up the fight of the Spirit against the flesh.
This is a tough statement, but it’s really important for those fake Christians and hypocrites who talk a lot about the Gospel, faith, and the Spirit, yet live according to their desires. But this tough message is mainly aimed at the heretics who are full of their own self-importance, so they might be scared into fighting for the Spirit against the flesh.
VERSES 22, 23. But the fruit of the Spirit is love, joy, peace, longsuffering, gentleness, goodness, faith, meekness, temperance.
VERSES 22, 23. But the fruit of the Spirit is love, joy, peace, patience, kindness, goodness, faith, gentleness, self-control.
The Apostle does not speak of the works of the Spirit as he spoke of the works of the flesh, but he attaches to these Christian virtues a better name. He calls them the fruits of the Spirit.
The Apostle doesn't discuss the works of the Spirit in the same way he talks about the works of the flesh; instead, he gives these Christian virtues a more positive label. He refers to them as the fruits of the Spirit.
LOVE
Love
It would have been enough to mention only the single fruit of love, for love embraces all the fruits of the Spirit. In I Corinthians 13, Paul attributes to love all the fruits of the Spirit: "Charity suffereth long, and is kind," etc. Here he lets love stand by itself among other fruits of the Spirit to remind the Christians to love one another, "in honor preferring one another," to esteem others more than themselves because they have Christ and the Holy Ghost within them.
It would have been enough to mention just the single fruit of love, because love includes all the fruits of the Spirit. In I Corinthians 13, Paul points out that love encompasses all these fruits: "Love is patient, and is kind," and so on. Here he emphasizes love on its own among the other fruits of the Spirit to remind Christians to love each other, "in honor preferring one another," and to value others more than themselves because they have Christ and the Holy Spirit within them.
JOY
Joy
Joy means sweet thoughts of Christ, melodious hymns and psalms, praises and thanksgiving, with which Christians instruct, inspire, and refresh themselves. God does not like doubt and dejection. He hates dreary doctrine, gloomy and melancholy thought. God likes cheerful hearts. He did not send His Son to fill us with sadness, but to gladden our hearts. For this reason the prophets, apostles, and Christ Himself urge, yes, command us to rejoice and be glad. "Rejoice greatly, O daughter of Zion; shout, O daughter of Jerusalem; behold, thy king cometh unto thee." (Zech. 9:9.) In the Psalms we are repeatedly told to be "joyful in the Lord." Paul says: "Rejoice in the Lord always." Christ says: "Rejoice, for your names are written in heaven."
Joy is about sweet thoughts of Christ, uplifting hymns and songs, praises and thankfulness that Christians use to educate, inspire, and refresh themselves. God doesn't like doubt and sadness. He dislikes dreary beliefs and gloomy thoughts. God appreciates cheerful hearts. He didn’t send His Son to make us sad, but to bring joy to our hearts. That’s why the prophets, apostles, and Christ Himself encourage and even command us to rejoice and be happy. "Rejoice greatly, O daughter of Zion; shout, O daughter of Jerusalem; behold, your king is coming to you." (Zech. 9:9.) In the Psalms, we’re repeatedly told to be "joyful in the Lord." Paul says: "Rejoice in the Lord always." Christ says: "Rejoice, for your names are written in heaven."
PEACE
Peace
Peace towards God and men. Christians are to be peaceful and quiet. Not argumentative, not hateful, but thoughtful and patient. There can be no peace without longsuffering, and therefore Paul lists this virtue next.
Peace with God and others. Christians should be peaceful and calm. They shouldn't be argumentative or hateful, but instead, thoughtful and patient. There can be no peace without patience, which is why Paul highlights this virtue next.
LONGSUFFERING
Patience
Longsuffering is that quality which enables a person to bear adversity, injury, reproach, and makes them patient to wait for the improvement of those who have done him wrong. When the devil finds that he cannot overcome certain persons by force he tries to overcome them in the long run. He knows that we are weak and cannot stand anything long. Therefore he repeats his temptation time and again until he succeeds. To withstand his continued assaults we must be longsuffering and patiently wait for the devil to get tired of his game.
Longsuffering is the quality that allows someone to endure hardship, injury, and criticism, making them patient enough to wait for those who have wronged them to change. When the devil realizes he can't defeat certain people through sheer force, he attempts to wear them down over time. He understands that we are weak and can't handle pressure for too long. That's why he keeps tempting us repeatedly until he finally succeeds. To resist his persistent attacks, we need to be longsuffering and patiently wait for the devil to tire of his strategy.
GENTLENESS
Kindness
Gentleness in conduct and life. True followers of the Gospel must not be sharp and bitter, but gentle, mild, courteous, and soft-spoken, which should encourage others to seek their company. Gentleness can overlook other people's faults and cover them up. Gentleness is always glad to give in to others. Gentleness can get along with forward and difficult persons, according to the old pagan saying: "You must know the manners of your friends, but you must not hate them." Such a gentle person was our Savior Jesus Christ, as the Gospel portrays Him. Of Peter it is recorded that he wept whenever he remembered the sweet gentleness of Christ in His daily contact with people. Gentleness is an excellent virtue and very useful in every walk of life.
Gentleness in behavior and life. True followers of the Gospel shouldn’t be harsh or resentful, but rather gentle, kind, polite, and soft-spoken, making others want to be around them. Gentleness can forgive others' mistakes and keep them hidden. Gentleness is always willing to yield to others. Gentleness can get along with assertive and challenging people, as the old saying goes: "You should know the ways of your friends, but you shouldn’t hate them." Our Savior Jesus Christ is depicted as such a gentle person in the Gospel. It’s noted that Peter cried whenever he remembered Christ's sweet gentleness in His daily interactions with others. Gentleness is a wonderful virtue and incredibly beneficial in every aspect of life.
GOODNESS
Goodness
A person is good when he is willing to help others in their need.
A person is good when they're willing to help others in need.
FAITH
BELIEF
In listing faith among the fruits of the Spirit, Paul obviously does not mean faith in Christ, but faith in men. Such faith is not suspicious of people but believes the best. Naturally the possessor of such faith will be deceived, but he lets it pass. He is ready to believe all men, but he will not trust all men. Where this virtue is lacking men are suspicious, forward, and wayward and will believe nothing nor yield to anybody. No matter how well a person says or does anything, they will find fault with it, and if you do not humor them you can never please them. It is quite impossible to get along with them. Such faith in people therefore, is quite necessary. What kind of life would this be if one person could not believe another person?
In listing faith among the fruits of the Spirit, Paul clearly doesn’t mean faith in Christ, but faith in people. This kind of faith is not suspicious of others but believes the best in them. Naturally, someone who has this faith might get deceived, but they let it go. They are willing to believe in everyone, but they won’t trust everyone. Where this virtue is missing, people tend to be suspicious, pushy, and unpredictable, refusing to believe anything or yield to anyone. No matter how well someone communicates or acts, they will always find something to criticize, and if you don’t cater to them, you can never satisfy them. It's impossible to get along with such individuals. Therefore, faith in people is essential. What kind of life would it be if one person couldn’t believe another?
MEEKNESS
Gentleness
A person is meek when he is not quick to get angry. Many things occur in daily life to provoke a person's anger, but the Christian gets over his anger by meekness.
A person is gentle when they aren't quick to get angry. Many things happen in everyday life that can trigger anger, but a Christian manages their anger through gentleness.
TEMPERANCE
Self-control
Christians are to lead sober and chaste lives. They should not be adulterers, fornicators, or sensualists. They should not be quarrelers or drunkards. In the first and second chapters of the Epistle to Titus, the Apostle admonishes bishops, young women, and married folks to be chaste and pure.
Christians are expected to live sober and pure lives. They shouldn't be unfaithful, promiscuous, or overly indulgent. They shouldn't engage in arguments or excessive drinking. In the first and second chapters of the Epistle to Titus, the Apostle encourages bishops, young women, and married people to be chaste and clean.
VERSE 23. Against such there is no law.
VERSE 23. There is no law against these things.
There is a law, of course, but it does not apply to those who bear these fruits of the Spirit. The Law is not given for the righteous man. A true Christian conducts himself in such a way that he does not need any law to warn or to restrain him. He obeys the Law without compulsion. The Law does not concern him. As far as he is concerned there would not have to be any Law.
There is a law, of course, but it doesn’t apply to those who embody these fruits of the Spirit. The Law isn’t meant for the righteous person. A true Christian lives in a way that doesn’t require any law to caution or hold him back. He follows the Law willingly. The Law doesn’t affect him. For him, there wouldn’t even need to be a Law.
VERSE 24. And they that are Christ's have crucified the flesh with the affections and lusts.
VERSE 24. And those who belong to Christ have put to death their sinful nature along with its desires and passions.
True believers are no hypocrites. They crucify the flesh with its evil desires and lusts. Inasmuch as they have not altogether put off the sinful flesh they are inclined to sin. They do not fear or love God as they should. They are likely to be provoked to anger, to envy, to impatience, to carnal lust, and other emotions. But they will not do the things to which the flesh incites them. They crucify the flesh with its evil desires and lusts by fasting and exercise and, above all, by a walk in the Spirit.
True believers are not hypocrites. They put their selfish desires and cravings to rest. Even though they haven't completely shed their sinful nature, they are drawn to sin. They don’t fear or love God as they should. They can easily get angry, envious, impatient, and experience carnal desires and other emotions. However, they won’t act on what their flesh urges them to do. They overcome these desires through fasting, exercise, and most importantly, by living in the Spirit.
To resist the flesh in this manner is to nail it to the Cross. Although the flesh is still alive it cannot very well act upon its desires because it is bound and nailed to the Cross.
To resist the flesh like this is to nail it to the Cross. Even though the flesh is still alive, it can't really act on its desires because it's tied and nailed to the Cross.
VERSE 25. If we live in the Spirit, let us also walk in the Spirit.
VERSE 25. If we live by the Spirit, let’s also follow the Spirit.
A little while ago the Apostle had condemned those who are envious and start heresies and schisms. As if he had forgotten that he had already berated them, the Apostle once more reproves those who provoke and envy others. Was not one reference to them sufficient? He repeats his admonition in order to emphasize the viciousness of pride that had caused all the trouble in the churches of Galatia, and has always caused the Church of Christ no end of difficulties. In his Epistle to Titus the Apostle states that a vainglorious man should not be ordained as a minister, for pride, as St. Augustine points out, is the mother of all heresies.
Not long ago, the Apostle condemned those who are jealous and create divisions and conflicts. It seems he has forgotten that he already called them out, as he again criticizes those who provoke and envy others. Was one warning not enough? He repeats his message to highlight the destructive nature of pride that led to all the problems in the churches of Galatia and has consistently caused endless issues for the Church of Christ. In his letter to Titus, the Apostle mentions that a conceited person should not be ordained as a minister, because, as St. Augustine noted, pride is the root of all heresies.
Now vainglory has always been a common poison in the world. There is no village too small to contain someone who wants to be considered wiser or better than the rest. Those who have been bitten by pride usually stand upon the reputation for learning and wisdom. Vainglory is not nearly so bad in a private person or even in an official as it is in a minister.
Now, vanity has always been a common poison in the world. There’s no village too small to have someone who wants to be seen as wiser or better than everyone else. Those who have been struck by pride often boast about their knowledge and wisdom. Vanity is not nearly as harmful in a private individual or even in an official as it is in a minister.
When the poison of vainglory gets into the Church you have no idea what havoc it can cause. You may argue about knowledge, art, money, countries, and the like without doing particular harm. But you cannot quarrel about salvation or damnation, about eternal life and eternal death without grave damage to the Church. No wonder Paul exhorts all ministers of the Word to guard against this poison. He writes: "If we live in the Spirit." Where the Spirit is, men gain new attitudes. Where formerly they were vainglorious, spiteful and envious, they now become humble, gentle and patient. Such men seek not their own glory, but the glory of God. They do not provoke each other to wrath or envy, but prefer others to themselves.
When the poison of arrogance seeps into the Church, you can't imagine the damage it can cause. You might debate knowledge, art, money, countries, and similar topics without causing too much harm. But you can't argue about salvation or damnation, about eternal life and eternal death, without causing serious damage to the Church. It's no surprise that Paul warns all ministers of the Word to watch out for this poison. He says, "If we live in the Spirit." Where the Spirit is, people develop new perspectives. Where they once were arrogant, spiteful, and envious, they now become humble, gentle, and patient. Such individuals seek not their own glory, but the glory of God. They do not incite wrath or envy in each other, but rather put others before themselves.
As dangerous to the Church as this abominable pride is, yet there is nothing more common. The trouble with the ministers of Satan is that they look upon the ministry as a stepping-stone to fame and glory, and right there you have the seed for all sorts of dissensions.
As dangerous to the Church as this awful pride is, it’s also one of the most common issues. The problem with the ministers of Satan is that they see the ministry as a way to achieve fame and glory, and that’s where you find the root of all kinds of conflicts.
Because Paul knew that the vainglory of the false Apostles had caused the churches of Galatia endless trouble, he makes it his business to suppress this abominable vice. In his absence the false apostles went to work in Galatia. They pretended that they had been on intimate terms with the apostles, while Paul had never seen Christ in person or had much contact with the rest of the apostles. Because of this they delivered him, rejected his doctrine, and boosted their own. In this way they troubled the Galatians and caused quarrels among them until they provoked and envied each other; which goes to show that neither the false apostles nor the Galatians walked after the Spirit, but after the flesh.
Because Paul knew that the arrogance of the false apostles had caused the churches in Galatia endless problems, he made it his mission to put an end to this terrible vice. While he was away, the false apostles went to work in Galatia. They claimed that they had close relationships with the apostles, even though Paul had never met Christ in person or had much contact with the other apostles. Because of this, they rejected him and his teachings, pushing their own instead. This way, they upset the Galatians and stirred up conflicts among them until they became provoked and envious of each other; which shows that neither the false apostles nor the Galatians were following the Spirit, but rather their own desires.
The Gospel is not there for us to aggrandize ourselves. The Gospel is to aggrandize Christ and the mercy of God. It holds out to men eternal gifts that are not gifts of our own manufacture. What right have we to receive praise and glory for gifts that are not of our own making?
The Gospel isn’t meant for us to make ourselves look good. It’s meant to glorify Christ and the mercy of God. It offers people eternal gifts that we didn’t create ourselves. What right do we have to take credit for gifts that we didn’t make?
No wonder that God in His special grace subjects the ministers of the Gospel to all kinds of afflictions, otherwise they could not cope with this ugly beast called vainglory. If no persecution, no cross, or reproach trailed the doctrine of the Gospel, but only praise and reputation, the ministers of the Gospel would choke with pride. Paul had the Spirit of Christ. Nevertheless there was given unto him the messenger of Satan to buffet him in order that he should not come to exalt himself, because of the grandeur of his revelations. St. Augustine's opinion is well taken: "If a minister of the Gospel is praised, he is in danger; if he is despised, he is also in danger."
It's no surprise that God, in His unique grace, puts ministers of the Gospel through various hardships; otherwise, they wouldn't be able to handle the ugly beast known as vainglory. If there were no persecution, no cross, or ridicule accompanying the Gospel, only praise and good standing, the ministers would be overwhelmed by pride. Paul had the Spirit of Christ, yet he was also given a messenger from Satan to keep him humble and prevent him from becoming arrogant because of the greatness of his revelations. St. Augustine's insight is spot on: "If a minister of the Gospel is praised, he is in danger; if he is despised, he is also in danger."
The ministers of the Gospel should be men who are not too easily affected by praise or criticism, but simply speak out the benefit and the glory of Christ and seek the salvation of souls.
The ministers of the Gospel should be individuals who aren’t easily swayed by praise or criticism but focus on proclaiming the benefits and glory of Christ while seeking the salvation of souls.
Whenever you are being praised, remember it is not you who is being praised but Christ, to whom all praise belongs. When you preach the Word of God in its purity and also live accordingly, it is not your own doing, but God's doing. And when people praise you, they really mean to praise God in you. When you understand this—and you should because "what hast thou that thou didst not receive?"—you will not flatter yourself on the one hand and on the other hand you will not carry yourself with the thought of resigning from the ministry when you are insulted, reproached, or persecuted.
Whenever you get praise, remember it's not you who's being praised but Christ, to whom all praise belongs. When you preach the Word of God clearly and live by it, it's not your achievement, but God's. And when people compliment you, they really mean to praise God in you. When you grasp this—and you should because "what do you have that you didn't receive?"—you won't flatter yourself on one side, and on the other, you won't think about quitting the ministry when you face insults, criticism, or persecution.
It is really kind of God to send so much infamy, reproach, hatred, and cursing our way to keep us from getting proud of the gifts of God in us. We need a millstone around our neck to keep us humble. There are a few on our side who love and revere us for the ministry of the Word, but for every one of these there are a hundred on the other side who hate and persecute us.
It’s really generous of God to send us so much shame, criticism, hatred, and cursing to prevent us from becoming arrogant about the gifts He has given us. We need a millstone around our neck to keep us humble. There are a few people on our side who love and respect us for our ministry of the Word, but for every one of them, there are a hundred on the other side who hate and persecute us.
The Lord is our glory. Such gifts as we possess we acknowledge to be the gifts of God, given to us for the good of the Church of Christ. Therefore we are not proud because of them. We know that more is required of them to whom much is given, than of such to whom little is given. We also know that God is no respecter of persons. A plain factory hand who does his work faithfully pleases God just as much as a minister of the Word.
The Lord is our glory. The gifts we have are acknowledged as gifts from God, given to us for the benefit of the Church of Christ. Therefore, we aren't proud of them. We understand that more is expected from those who have been given much than from those who have been given little. We also know that God does not favor one person over another. A simple factory worker who does his job faithfully pleases God just as much as a minister of the Word.
VERSE 26. Let us not be desirous of vain glory.
VERSE 26. Let us not crave empty glory.
To desire vainglory is to desire lies, because when one person praises another he tells lies. What is there in anybody to praise? But it is different when the ministry is praised. We should not only desire people to praise the ministry of the Gospel but also do our utmost to make the ministry worthy of praise because this will make the ministry more effective. Paul warns the Romans not to bring Christianity into disrepute. "Let not then your good be evil spoken of." (Rom. 14:16.) He also begged the Corinthians to "give no offense in anything, that the ministry be not blamed." (I Cor. 6:3.) When people praise our ministry they are not praising our persons, but God.
To desire attention and fame is to desire falsehoods because when one person praises another, they are telling lies. What is there in anyone to praise? However, it's different when the ministry is praised. We should not only want people to acknowledge the ministry of the Gospel but also do our best to make the ministry worthy of praise because this will make it more effective. Paul warns the Romans not to tarnish Christianity's image. "Let not then your good be evil spoken of." (Rom. 14:16.) He also urged the Corinthians to "give no offense in anything, that the ministry be not blamed." (I Cor. 6:3.) When people praise our ministry, they are not praising us, but God.
VERSE 26. Provoking one another, envying one another.
VERSE 26. Bickering with each other, jealous of one another.
Such is the ill effect of vainglory. Those who teach errors provoke others. When others disapprove and reject the doctrine the teachers of errors get angry in turn, and then you have strife and trouble. The sectarians hate us furiously because we will not approve their errors. We did not attack them directly. We merely called attention to certain abuses in the Church. They did not like it and became sore at us, because it hurt their pride. They wish to be the lone rulers of the church.
Such is the negative impact of vanity. Those who spread false ideas provoke others. When people disagree and reject these false teachings, the teachers get angry, resulting in conflict and turmoil. The sectarians resent us intensely because we refuse to endorse their mistakes. We didn’t directly attack them; we just pointed out some issues within the Church. They didn’t appreciate this and got upset with us because it bruised their pride. They want to be the sole leaders of the Church.
CHAPTER 6
VERSE 1. Brethren, if a man be overtaken in a fault ye which are spiritual, restore such an one in the spirit of meekness.
VERSE 1. Brothers, if someone is caught in a wrongdoing, you who are spiritual should restore that person gently.
IF we carefully weigh the words of the Apostle we perceive that he does not speak of doctrinal faults and errors, but of much lesser faults by which a person is overtaken through the weakness of his flesh. This explains why the Apostle chooses the softer term "fault." To minimize the offense still more, as if he meant to excuse it altogether and to take the whole blame away from the person who has committed the fault, he speaks of him as having been "overtaken," seduced by the devil and of the flesh. As if he meant to say, "What is more human than for a human being to fall, to be deceived and to err?" This comforting sentence at one time saved my life. Because Satan always assails both the purity of doctrine which he endeavors to take away by schisms and the purity of life which he spoils with his continual temptations to sin, Paul explains how the fallen should be treated. Those who are strong are to raise up the fallen in the spirit of meekness.
IF we carefully consider the words of the Apostle, we see that he doesn’t talk about major doctrinal faults and errors but rather much smaller faults that happen when a person is caught off guard by their own weaknesses. This is why the Apostle uses the gentler term "fault." To make the offense seem even less severe, as if he wants to completely excuse it and take all the blame off the person who made the fault, he describes them as having been "overtaken," misled by the devil and their own desires. It's as if he’s saying, "What’s more human than for a person to stumble, to be tricked, and to make mistakes?" This reassuring statement once saved my life. Because Satan constantly attacks both the purity of our beliefs, which he tries to undermine through divisions, and the purity of our lives, which he taints with constant temptations to sin, Paul explains how we should treat those who have fallen. Those who are strong should help restore the fallen with a spirit of gentleness.
This ought to be borne in mind particularly by the ministers of the Word in order that they may not forget the parental attitude which Paul here requires of those who have the keeping of souls. Pastors and ministers must, of course, rebuke the fallen, but when they see that the fallen are sorry they are to comfort them by excusing the fault as well as they can. As unyielding as the Holy Spirit is in the matter of maintaining and defending the doctrine of faith, so mild and merciful is He toward men for their sins as long as sinners repent.
This is something that ministers need to remember, especially to keep in mind the nurturing approach that Paul expects from those responsible for people's souls. Pastors and ministers definitely need to correct those who have strayed, but when they see that someone is genuinely remorseful, they should comfort them by understanding their mistakes as much as possible. Just as the Holy Spirit is firm about upholding and defending the faith, He is also gentle and compassionate towards people’s sins as long as they are repentant.
The Pope's synagogue teaches the exact opposite of what the Apostle commands. The clerics are tyrants and butchers of men's conscience. Every small offense is closely scrutinized. To justify the cruel inquisitiveness they quote the statement of Pope Gregory: "It is the property of good lives to be afraid of a fault where there is no fault." "Our censors must be feared, even if they are unjust and wrong." On these pronouncements the papists base their doctrine of excommunication. Rather than terrify and condemn men's consciences, they ought to raise them up and comfort them with the truth.
The Pope's synagogue promotes ideas that completely contradict what the Apostle teaches. The clergy are oppressive and destroy people's sense of conscience. Every little mistake is examined under a magnifying glass. To justify this cruel curiosity, they quote Pope Gregory: "Good people are always worried about faults that aren't really faults." "We must fear our censors, even if they are unjust and incorrect." These statements form the foundation of the Catholic doctrine of excommunication. Instead of scaring and judging people's consciences, they should uplift and reassure them with the truth.
Let the ministers of the Gospel learn from Paul how to deal with those who have sinned. "Brethren," he says, "if any man be overtaken with a fault, do not aggravate his grief, do not scold him, do not condemn him, but lift him up and gently restore his faith. If you see a brother despondent over a sin he has committed, run up to him, reach out your hand to him, comfort him with the Gospel and embrace him like a mother. When you meet a willful sinner who does not care, go after him and rebuke him sharply." But this is not the treatment for one who has been overtaken by a sin and is sorry. He must be dealt with in the spirit of meekness and not in the spirit of severity. A repentant sinner is not to be given gall and vinegar to drink.
Let the ministers of the Gospel learn from Paul how to handle those who have sinned. "Brothers," he says, "if someone is caught in a fault, don’t make their pain worse, don’t scold them, don’t condemn them, but lift them up and gently restore their faith. If you see a brother feeling down about a sin he’s committed, reach out to him, offer your hand, comfort him with the Gospel, and embrace him like a mother. When you encounter a willful sinner who doesn’t care, go after him and confront him firmly." But this approach isn’t for someone who has stumbled and feels remorse. They should be treated with gentleness, not harshness. A repentant sinner shouldn't be given gall and vinegar to drink.
VERSE 1. Considering thyself, lest thou also be tempted.
VERSE 1. Look at yourself, so you don’t get tempted too.
This consideration is very much needed to put a stop to the severity of some pastors who show the fallen no mercy. St. Augustine says: "There is no sin which one person has committed, that another person may not commit it also." We stand in slippery places. If we become overbearing and neglect our duty, it is easy enough to fall into sin. In the book entitled "The Lives of Our Fathers," one of the Fathers is reported to have said when informed that a brother had fallen into adultery: "He fell yesterday; I may fall today." Paul therefore warns the pastors not to be too rigorous and unmerciful towards offenders, but to show them every affection, always remembering: "This man fell into sin; I may fall into worse sin. If those who are always so eager to condemn others would investigate themselves they would find that the sins of others are motes in comparison to their own."
This thought is really important to stop some pastors from being harsh and showing no mercy to those who have sinned. St. Augustine says, "No one commits a sin that another person couldn't also commit." We're all on shaky ground. If we become too proud and ignore our responsibilities, it's easy to slip into sin ourselves. In a book called "The Lives of Our Fathers," one of the Fathers reportedly said when he heard that a brother had committed adultery: "He fell yesterday; I might fall today." Therefore, Paul warns pastors not to be too strict and unkind toward those who have sinned, but to show them compassion, always remembering: "This person fell into sin; I could fall into worse sin." If those who are so quick to judge others took a good look at themselves, they would realize that the faults of others are nothing compared to their own.
"Wherefore let him that thinketh he standeth take heed lest he fall." (I Cor. 10:12.) If David who was a hero of faith and did so many great things for the Lord, could fall so badly that in spite of his advanced age he was overcome by youthful lust after he had withstood so many different temptations with which the Lord had tested his faith, who are we to think that we are more stable? These object lessons of God should convince us that of all things God hates pride.
"Therefore, let anyone who thinks they’re standing firm be careful that they don’t fall." (I Cor. 10:12.) If David, a man of great faith who accomplished many wonderful things for the Lord, could fall so badly that, even in his old age, he was overcome by youthful desires after resisting so many different temptations that tested his faith, who are we to think we’re any more secure? These lessons from God should show us that above all, God despises pride.
VERSE 2. Bear ye one another's burdens, and so fulfill the law of Christ.
VERSE 2. Help each other with your burdens, and in doing so, you'll follow the law of Christ.
The Law of Christ is the Law of love. Christ gave us no other law than this law of mutual love: "A new commandment I give unto you, That ye love one another." To love means to bear another's burdens. Christians must have strong shoulders to bear the burdens of their fellow Christians. Faithful pastors recognize many errors and offenses in the church, which they oversee. In civil affairs an official has to overlook much if he is fit to rule. If we can overlook our own shortcomings and wrong-doings, we ought to overlook the shortcomings of others in accordance with the words, "Bear ye one another's burdens."
The Law of Christ is the Law of love. Christ gave us no other commandment than this law of mutual love: "A new commandment I give to you, that you love one another." To love means to support each other's burdens. Christians need to be strong enough to help carry the burdens of their fellow believers. Faithful pastors see many mistakes and issues in the church they lead. Similarly, a public official must overlook a lot if they want to govern effectively. If we can forgive our own flaws and wrongdoings, we should also forgive the shortcomings of others, in line with the saying, "Bear one another's burdens."
Those who fail to do so expose their lack of understanding of the law of Christ. Love, according to Paul, "believeth all things, hopeth all things, endureth all things." This commandment is not meant for those who deny Christ; neither is it meant for those who continue to live in sin. Only those who are willing to hear the Word of God and then inadvertently fall into sin to their own great sorrow and regret, carry the burdens which the Apostle encourages us to bear. Let us not be hard on them. If Christ did not punish them, what right have we to do it?
Those who fail to do this show their lack of understanding of Christ’s teachings. Love, as Paul says, "believes all things, hopes all things, endures all things." This commandment isn't for those who reject Christ, nor for those who keep living in sin. It's only for those who truly want to hear God’s Word and then, unfortunately, fall into sin, feeling deep sorrow and regret. These are the burdens that the Apostle encourages us to share. Let’s not be harsh on them. If Christ didn’t punish them, what right do we have to do so?
VERSE 3. For if a man think himself to be something, when he is nothing, he deceiveth himself.
VERSE 3. For if someone thinks they are important when they are actually not, they are fooling themselves.
Again the Apostle takes the authors of sects to task for being hard-hearted tyrants. They despise the weak and demand that everything be just so. Nothing suits them except what they do. Unless you eulogize whatever they say or do, unless you adapt yourself to their slightest whim, they become angry with you. They are that way because, as St. Paul says, they "think themselves to be something," they think they know all about the Scriptures.
Once again, the Apostle criticizes the leaders of sects for being cruel tyrants. They look down on the weak and insist that everything must be exactly as they want. Nothing pleases them except what they do themselves. Unless you praise everything they say or do, and unless you conform to their every whim, they get angry with you. They act this way because, as St. Paul puts it, they "think they are something"; they believe they know everything about the Scriptures.
Paul has their number when he calls them zeros. They deceive themselves with their self-suggested wisdom and holiness. They have no understanding of Christ or the law of Christ. By insisting that everything be perfect they not only fail to bear the burdens of the weak, they actually offend the weak by their severity. People begin to hate and shun them and refuse to accept counsel or comfort from them.
Paul has their number when he calls them losers. They fool themselves with their own imagined wisdom and righteousness. They have no grasp of Christ or the principles of Christ. By demanding perfection, they not only ignore the struggles of the vulnerable, but they also hurt the vulnerable with their harshness. People start to dislike and avoid them, refusing to take advice or find comfort from them.
Paul describes these stiff and ungracious saints accurately when he says of them, "They think themselves to be something." Bloated by their own silly ideas and schemes they entertain a pretty fair opinion of themselves, when in reality they amount to nothing.
Paul describes these rigid and ungracious saints accurately when he says of them, "They think themselves to be something." Inflated by their own foolish ideas and plans, they have a pretty high opinion of themselves, when in reality, they are worth nothing.
VERSE 4. But let every man prove his own work, and then shall he have rejoicing in himself alone, and not in another.
VERSE 4. But let each person assess their own actions, and then they can take pride in themselves alone, not in someone else.
In this verse the Apostle continues his attack upon the vainglorious sectarians. Although this passage may be applied to any work, the Apostle has in mind particularly the work of the ministry.
In this verse, the Apostle keeps criticizing the boastful sectarians. While this passage can relate to any effort, the Apostle is specifically thinking about the work of the ministry.
The trouble with these seekers after glory is that they never stop to consider whether their ministry is straightforward and faithful. All they think about is whether people will like and praise them. Theirs is a threefold sin. First, they are greedy of praise. Secondly, they are very sly and wily in suggesting that the ministry of other pastors is not what it should be. By way of contrast they hope to rise in the estimation of the people. Thirdly, once they have established a reputation for themselves they become so chesty that they stop short of nothing. When they have won the praise of men, pride leads them on to belittle the work of other men and to applaud their own. In this artful manner they hoodwink the people who rather enjoy to see their former pastors taken down a few notches by such upstarts.
The problem with these glory-seekers is that they never pause to think about whether their ministry is honest and faithful. All they care about is whether people will like and praise them. They engage in three major sins. First, they are greedy for admiration. Second, they are sneaky and clever in implying that other pastors' ministries aren't up to par. By doing this, they hope to elevate themselves in the eyes of the people. Third, once they've built a reputation, they become so arrogant that they stop at nothing. Having gained the praise of others, their pride pushes them to belittle the work of others while boasting about their own. In this cunning way, they deceive the people, who enjoy seeing previous pastors knocked down a peg by such newcomers.
"Let a minister be faithful in his office," is the apostolic injunction. "Let him not seek his own glory or look for praise. Let him desire to do good work and to preach the Gospel in all its purity. Whether an ungrateful world appreciates his efforts is to give him no concern because, after all, he is in the ministry not for his own glory but for the glory of Christ."
"Let a minister be committed to his role," is the apostolic instruction. "He shouldn't seek his own fame or look for compliments. He should focus on doing good work and preaching the Gospel in its true form. Whether an ungrateful world acknowledges his efforts shouldn't worry him because, ultimately, he's in the ministry not for his own recognition but for the glory of Christ."
A faithful minister cares little what people think of him, as long as his conscience approves of him. The approval of his own good conscience is the best praise a minister can have. To know that we have taught the Word of God and administered the sacraments rightly is to have a glory that cannot be taken away.
A dedicated minister doesn’t worry much about what others think of him, as long as he feels good about himself. The approval of his own conscience is the highest praise a minister can receive. Knowing that we have shared the Word of God and administered the sacraments correctly gives us an enduring glory that cannot be taken away.
The glory which the sectarians seek is quite unstable, because it rests in the whim of people. If Paul had had to depend on this kind of glory for his ministry he would have despaired when he saw the many offenses and evils following in the wake of his preaching.
The glory that the sectarians pursue is really shaky, since it depends on people's whims. If Paul had to rely on this kind of glory for his ministry, he would have lost hope when he witnessed the many offenses and wrongdoings that came after his preaching.
If we had to feel that the success of our ministry depended upon our popularity with men we would die, because we are not popular. On the contrary, we are hated by the whole world with rare bitterness. Nobody praises us. Everybody finds fault with us. But we can glory in the Lord and attend to our work cheerfully. Who cares whether our efforts please or displease the devil? Who cares whether the world praises or hates us? We go ahead "by honour and dishonour, by evil report and good report." (II Cor. 6:8.)
If we had to believe that the success of our ministry depended on our popularity with people, we would be doomed because we are not popular. In fact, we are deeply disliked by the entire world. No one praises us. Everyone criticizes us. But we can take pride in the Lord and do our work with joy. Who cares if our efforts annoy the devil? Who cares if the world praises or hates us? We move forward "by honor and dishonor, by evil report and good report." (II Cor. 6:8.)
The Gospel entails persecution. The Gospel is that kind of a doctrine. Furthermore, the disciples of the Gospel are not all dependable. Many embrace the Gospel today and tomorrow discard it. To preach the Gospel for praise is bad business especially when people stop praising you. Find your praise in the testimony of a good conscience.
The Gospel involves persecution. It’s that kind of message. Additionally, not all followers of the Gospel can be relied upon. Many accept the Gospel today but abandon it tomorrow. Preaching the Gospel for recognition is a poor strategy, especially when people stop applauding you. Seek your validation in the testimony of a clear conscience.
This passage may also be applied to other work besides the ministry. When an official, a servant, a teacher minds his business and performs his duty faithfully without concerning himself about matters that are not in his line he may rejoice in himself. The best commendation of any work is to know that one has done the work that God has given him well and that God is pleased with his effort.
This passage can also apply to other jobs besides ministry. When an official, a worker, or a teacher focuses on their responsibilities and does their job well, without worrying about things that aren't related to their role, they can take pride in themselves. The greatest praise for any job is knowing that you’ve done it well and that God is happy with your efforts.
VERSE 5. Every man shall bear his own burden.
VERSE 5. Everyone must carry their own load.
That means: For anybody to covet praise is foolish because the praise of men will be of no help to you in the hour of death. Before the judgment throne of Christ everybody will have to bear his own burden. As it is the praise of men stops when we die. Before the eternal Judge it is not praise that counts but your own conscience.
That means: It's pointless for anyone to seek praise because what others think of you won't matter when you're facing death. In front of Christ's judgment throne, everyone will have to stand on their own. Praise from people ends when we die. In the eyes of the eternal Judge, what really matters is your own conscience.
True, the consciousness of work well done cannot quiet the conscience. But it is well to have the testimony of a good conscience in the last judgment that we have performed our duty faithfully in accordance with God's will.
True, knowing we've done a good job doesn't silence our conscience. But it's important to have the assurance of a clear conscience at the final judgment that we've fulfilled our duty faithfully according to God's will.
For the suppression of pride we need the strength of prayer. What man even if he is a Christian is not delighted with his own praise? Only the Holy Spirit can preserve us from the misfortune of pride.
To keep our pride in check, we need the power of prayer. What person, even if they're a Christian, doesn't enjoy being praised? Only the Holy Spirit can save us from the trouble of pride.
VERSE 6. Let him that is taught in the word communicate unto him that teacheth in all good things.
VERSE 6. Let the person who is learning from the word share with the one who teaches in all good things.
Now the Apostle also addresses the hearers of the Word requesting them to bestow "all good things" upon those who have taught them the Gospel. I have often wondered why all the apostles reiterated this request with such embarrassing frequency. In the papacy I saw the people give generously for the erection and maintenance of luxurious church buildings and for the sustenance of men appointed to the idolatrous service of Rome. I saw bishops and priests grow rich until they possessed the choicest real estate. I thought then that Paul's admonitions were overdone. I thought he should have requested the people to curtail their contributions. I saw how the generosity of the people of the Church was encouraging covetousness on the part of the clergy. I know better now.
Now the Apostle also talks to the listeners of the Word, asking them to give "all good things" to those who have taught them the Gospel. I've often wondered why all the apostles made this request so frequently and awkwardly. During my time in the papacy, I witnessed people generously giving for the construction and upkeep of lavish church buildings and for the support of men assigned to the idol-worshipping duties of Rome. I saw bishops and priests become wealthy until they owned the best real estate. Back then, I thought Paul's warnings were excessive. I believed he should have told the people to reduce their donations. I noticed how the generosity of the Church's members was fostering greed among the clergy. I understand better now.
As often as I read the admonitions of the Apostle to the effect that the churches should support their pastors and raise funds for the relief of impoverished Christians I am half ashamed to think that the great Apostle Paul had to touch upon this subject so frequently. In writing to the Corinthians he needed two chapters to impress this matter upon them. I would not want to discredit Wittenberg as Paul discredited the Corinthians by urging them at such length to contribute to the relief of the poor. It seems to be a by-product of the Gospel that nobody wants to contribute to the maintenance of the Gospel ministry. When the doctrine of the devil is preached people are prodigal in their willing support of those who deceive them.
As often as I read the Apostle's warnings about how churches should support their pastors and raise money for struggling Christians, I feel a bit ashamed that the great Apostle Paul had to address this topic so often. When he wrote to the Corinthians, he needed two chapters to emphasize the importance of this issue. I wouldn't want to undermine Wittenberg like Paul did the Corinthians by urging them at such length to help the poor. It seems to be a side effect of the Gospel that nobody wants to contribute to supporting the ministry of the Gospel. Yet, when false teachings are preached, people are more than willing to generously support those who deceive them.
We have come to understand why it is so necessary to repeat the admonition of this verse. When Satan cannot suppress the preaching of the Gospel by force he tries to accomplish his purpose by striking the ministers of the Gospel with poverty. He curtails their income to such an extent that they are forced out of the ministry because they cannot live by the Gospel. Without ministers to proclaim the Word of God the people go wild like savage beasts.
We’ve come to realize why it’s so important to keep reminding ourselves of this verse. When Satan can't stop the preaching of the Gospel through force, he tries to achieve his goal by hitting the ministers of the Gospel with poverty. He cuts their income so much that they’re forced out of the ministry because they can’t make a living from the Gospel. Without ministers to share the Word of God, people become unruly like wild animals.
Paul's admonition that the hearers of the Gospel share all good things with their pastors and teachers is certainly in order. To the Corinthians he wrote: "If we have sown unto you spiritual things is it a great thing if we shall reap your carnal things?" (I Cor. 9:11.) In the old days when the Pope reigned supreme everybody paid plenty for masses. The begging friars brought in their share. Commercial priests counted the daily offerings. From these extortions our countrymen are now delivered by the Gospel. You would think they would be grateful for their emancipation and give generously for the support of the ministry of the Gospel and the relief of impoverished Christians. Instead, they rob Christ. When the members of a Christian congregation permit their pastor to struggle along in penury, they are worse than heathen.
Paul's reminder that those who hear the Gospel should share all good things with their pastors and teachers is definitely appropriate. He wrote to the Corinthians: "If we have sown spiritual things for you, is it a big deal if we reap material things from you?" (I Cor. 9:11.) Back when the Pope had all the power, everyone paid a lot for masses. The begging friars contributed their part. Commercial priests counted the daily donations. From these pressures, our people are now freed by the Gospel. You’d think they’d be thankful for their freedom and give generously to support the ministry of the Gospel and help struggling Christians. Instead, they take from Christ. When members of a Christian congregation allow their pastor to live in poverty, they are worse than unbelievers.
Before very long they are going to suffer for their ingratitude. They will lose their temporal and spiritual possessions. This sin merits the severest punishment. The reason why the churches of Galatia, Corinth, and other places were troubled by false apostles was this, that they had so little regard for their faithful ministers. You cannot refuse to give a penny who gives you all good things, even life eternal, and turn around and give the devil, the giver of all evil and death eternal, pieces of gold, and not be punished for it.
Before long, they're going to face consequences for their ingratitude. They'll lose both their earthly and spiritual possessions. This sin deserves the harshest punishment. The reason the churches in Galatia, Corinth, and other places were disturbed by false apostles is that they showed so little respect for their dedicated ministers. You can't refuse to give a penny to someone who provides you with everything good, including eternal life, and then turn around and give the devil, the source of all evil and eternal death, gold pieces without facing punishment for it.
The words "in all good things": are not to be understood to mean that people are to give all they have to their ministers, but that they should support them liberally and give them enough to live well.
The phrase "in all good things" should not be taken to mean that people should give everything they have to their ministers, but rather that they should support them generously and provide enough for a comfortable living.
VERSE 7. Be not deceived; God is not mocked.
VERSE 7. Don't be fooled; God can't be taken lightly.
The Apostle is so worked up over this matter that he is not content with a mere admonition. He utters the threatening words, "God is not mocked." Our countrymen think it good sport to despise the ministry. They like to treat the ministers like servants and slaves. "Be not deceived," warns the Apostle, "God is not mocked." God will not be mocked in His ministers. Christ said: "He that despiseth you, despiseth me." (Luke 10:16.) To Samuel God said: "They have not rejected thee, but they have rejected me." (I Sam. 8:7.) Be careful, you scoffers. God may postpone His punishment for a time, but He will find you out in time, and punish you for despising His servants. You cannot laugh at God. Maybe the people are little impressed by the threats of God, but in the hour of their death they shall know whom they have mocked. God is not ever going to let His ministers starve. When the rich suffer the pangs of hunger God will feed His own servants. "In the days of famine they shall be satisfied." (Ps. 37:19.)
The Apostle is so upset about this issue that he isn't satisfied with just a warning. He states the serious words, "God is not mocked." Our fellow countrymen think it's funny to disrespect the ministry. They treat ministers like servants and slaves. "Don’t be fooled," warns the Apostle, "God is not mocked." God will not be disrespected through His ministers. Christ said: "Whoever disregards you, disregards me." (Luke 10:16.) To Samuel, God said: "They haven't rejected you, but they have rejected me." (I Sam. 8:7.) Be careful, you scoffers. God may delay His punishment, but He will eventually hold you accountable for disregarding His servants. You cannot mock God. While people may not take God's threats seriously now, they will realize whom they've disrespected at the hour of their death. God will never let His ministers go hungry. When the wealthy face hunger, God will provide for His own servants. "In the days of famine they shall be satisfied." (Ps. 37:19.)
VERSE 7. For whatever a man soweth, that shall he also reap.
VERSE 7. For whatever a person plants, that is what they will also harvest.
These passages are all meant to benefit us ministers. I must say I do not find much pleasure in explaining these verses. I am made to appear as if I am speaking for my own benefit. If a minister preaches on money he is likely to be accused of covetousness. Still people must be told these things that they may know their duty over against their pastors. Our Savior says: "Eating and drinking such things as they give; for the laborer is worthy of his hire." (Luke 10:7.) And Paul says elsewhere: "Do ye not know that they which minister about holy things live of the things of the temple? and they which wait at the altar are partakers with the altar? Even so hath the Lord ordained, that they which preach the gospel should live of the gospel." (I Cor. 9:13, 14.)
These passages are all intended to benefit us ministers. I have to say, I don't find much joy in explaining these verses. It looks like I'm speaking for my own gain. If a minister talks about money, they’re likely to be accused of being greedy. Still, people need to hear these things so they understand their responsibilities towards their pastors. Our Savior says: "Eat and drink whatever is offered to you, for the worker deserves their wages." (Luke 10:7.) And Paul also says: "Don't you know that those who serve in sacred duties get their living from the temple? And those who serve at the altar share in what is offered at the altar? In the same way, the Lord has commanded that those who preach the gospel should be supported by the gospel." (I Cor. 9:13, 14.)
VERSE 8. For he that soweth to his flesh shall of the flesh reap corruption; but he that soweth to the Spirit shall of the Spirit reap everlasting life.
VERSE 8. Those who live to satisfy their own desires will ultimately face destruction; but those who live to follow the Spirit will receive eternal life from the Spirit.
This simile of sowing and reaping also refers to the proper support of ministers. "He that soweth to the Spirit," i.e., he that honors the ministers of God is doing a spiritual thing and will reap everlasting life. "He that soweth to the flesh," i.e., he that has nothing left for the ministers of God, but only thinks of himself, that person will reap of the flesh corruption, not only in this life but also in the life to come. The Apostle wants to stir up his readers to be generous to their pastors.
This comparison of planting and harvesting also points to the right way to support ministers. "Whoever sows to the Spirit," meaning those who honor God's ministers, is engaging in a spiritual act and will reap eternal life. "Whoever sows to the flesh," meaning those who have nothing to give to God's ministers and only think of themselves, will face corruption from the flesh, not just in this life but also in the next. The Apostle wants to encourage his readers to be generous to their pastors.
That the ministers of the Church need support any man with common sense can see. Though this support is something physical the Apostle does not hesitate to call it sowing to the Spirit. When people scrape up everything they can lay their hands on and keep everything for themselves the Apostle calls it a sowing to the flesh. He pronounces those who sow to the Spirit blessed for this life and the life to come, while those who sow to the flesh are accursed now and forever.
That the ministers of the Church need support is obvious to anyone with common sense. Although this support is something tangible, the Apostle isn't shy about calling it sowing to the Spirit. When people gather everything they can and hoard it for themselves, the Apostle refers to it as sowing to the flesh. He declares those who sow to the Spirit blessed for both this life and the next, while those who sow to the flesh are cursed now and forever.
VERSE 9. And let us not be weary in well doing: for in due season we shall reap, if we faint not.
VERSE 9. And let us not get tired of doing good: for at the right time we will reap a harvest if we don’t give up.
The Apostle intends soon to close his Epistle and therefore repeats once more the general exhortation unto good deeds. He means to say "Let us do good not only to the ministers of the Gospel, but to everybody, and let us do it without weariness." It is easy enough to do good once or twice, but to keep on doing good without getting disgusted with the ingratitude of those whom we have benefited, that is not so easy. Therefore the Apostle does not only admonish us to do good, but to do good untiringly. For our encouragement he adds the promise: "For in due season we shall reap, if we faint not." "Wait for the harvest and then you will reap the reward of your sowing to the Spirit. Think of that when you do good and the ingratitude of men will not stop you from doing good."
The Apostle is about to wrap up his letter, so he emphasizes once again the call to do good deeds. He wants to convey, "Let's do good not only for the Gospel ministers but for everyone, and let's keep doing it without getting tired." It’s easy to do something nice once or twice, but continuing to do good without getting frustrated by the ingratitude of those we've helped is much harder. That's why the Apostle doesn’t just encourage us to do good but to do it consistently. For our encouragement, he adds the promise: "In due time, we will reap if we don’t give up." "Wait for the harvest, and then you will see the rewards of your efforts toward the Spirit. Keep that in mind when you do good, and the ingratitude of others won't deter you from being kind."
VERSE 10. As we have therefore opportunity, let us do good unto all men, especially unto them who are of the household of faith.
VERSE 10. So whenever we have the chance, let's do good to everyone, especially to those who belong to the family of faith.
In this verse the Apostle summarizes his instructions on the proper support of the ministers and of the poor. He paraphrases the words of Christ: "I must work the works of him that sent me, while it is day: the night cometh, when no man can work." (John 9:4.) Our good deeds are to be directed primarily at those who share the Christian faith with us, "the household of faith," as Paul calls them, among whom the ministers rank first as objects of our well doing.
In this verse, the Apostle summarizes his guidance on how to properly support ministers and those in need. He rephrases Christ's words: "I must do the work of the one who sent me while it is still day; night is coming when no one can work." (John 9:4.) Our good deeds should primarily be directed at fellow believers, referred to as "the household of faith" by Paul, with ministers being the first recipients of our kindness.
VERSE 11. Ye see how large a letter I have written unto you with mine own hand.
VERSE 11. You can see how big of a letter I have written to you with my own hand.
With these words the Apostle intends to draw the Galatians on. "I never," he says, "wrote such a long letter with my own hand to any of the other churches." His other epistles he dictated, and only subscribed his greetings and his signature with his own hand.
With these words, the Apostle aims to encourage the Galatians. "I never," he says, "wrote such a long letter by hand to any of the other churches." In his other letters, he dictated them and only added his greetings and signature by hand.
VERSE 12. As many as desire to make a fair shew in the flesh, they constrain you to be circumcised; only lest they should suffer persecution for the cross of Christ.
VERSE 12. Those who want to look good in front of others pressure you to get circumcised, just so they won’t face persecution for the cross of Christ.
Paul once more scores the false apostles in an effort to draw the Galatians away from their false doctrine. "The teachers you have now do not seek the glory of Christ and the salvation of your souls, but only their own glory. They avoid the Cross. They do not understand what they teach."
Paul again criticizes the false apostles to steer the Galatians away from their incorrect beliefs. "The teachers you have now don't seek the glory of Christ and the salvation of your souls, but only their own recognition. They steer clear of the Cross. They don't grasp what they're teaching."
These three counts against the false apostles are of so serious a nature that no Christian could have fellowship with them. But not all the Galatians obeyed the warning of Paul.
These three accusations against the false apostles are so serious that no Christian could associate with them. However, not all the Galatians followed Paul's warning.
The Apostle's attack upon the false apostles was not unjustified. Neither are our attacks upon the papacy. When we call the Pope the Antichrist and his minions an evil brood, we do not slander them. We merely judge them by the touchstone of God's Word recorded in the first chapter of this Epistle: "Though we, or an angel from heaven, preach any other gospel unto you than that which we have preached unto you, let him be accursed."
The Apostle's criticism of the false apostles was well-founded. Similarly, our criticism of the papacy is valid. When we refer to the Pope as the Antichrist and his followers as an evil group, we are not slandering them. We are simply evaluating them based on the standard of God's Word found in the first chapter of this Epistle: "Even if we, or an angel from heaven, preach any other gospel to you than the one we have preached to you, let him be cursed."
VERSE 13. For neither they themselves who are circumcised keep the law; but desire to have you circumcised, that they may glory in your flesh.
VERSE 13. For neither do the circumcised truly follow the law; they just want you to be circumcised so they can boast about your flesh.
In other words: "I shall tell you what kind of teachers you have now. They avoid the Cross, they teach no certain truths. They think they are performing the Law, but they are not. They have not the Holy Spirit and without Him nobody can keep the Law." Where the Holy Ghost does not dwell in men there dwells an unclean spirit, a spirit that despises God and turns every effort at keeping the Law into a double sin.
In other words: "Let me explain what kind of teachers you have now. They steer clear of the Cross, and they don’t teach any solid truths. They believe they're following the Law, but they really aren’t. They lack the Holy Spirit, and without Him, no one can truly follow the Law." Where the Holy Spirit doesn’t reside in people, an unclean spirit takes its place—a spirit that despises God and twists every attempt to follow the Law into an even greater sin.
Mark what the Apostle is saying: Those who are circumcised do not fulfill the Law. No self-righteous person ever does. To work, pray, or suffer apart from Christ is to work, pray, and to suffer in vain, "for whatsoever is not of faith is sin." It does a person no good to be circumcised, to fast, to pray, or to do anything, if in his heart he despises Christ.
Notice what the Apostle is saying: Those who are circumcised don't actually keep the Law. No self-righteous person ever does. To work, pray, or suffer without Christ is to work, pray, and suffer for nothing, "for whatever is not from faith is sin." It doesn't benefit a person to be circumcised, to fast, to pray, or to do anything if, in their heart, they reject Christ.
"Why do the false apostles insist that you should be circumcised? Not for the sake of your righteousness," although they give that impression, but "that they may glory in your flesh." Now what sort of an ambition is that? Worst of all, they force circumcision upon you for no other reason than the satisfaction they get out of your submission.
"Why do the false apostles push for your circumcision? Not because it makes you righteous," even though they might make it seem that way, but "so they can brag about your flesh." What kind of ambition is that? Worst of all, they impose circumcision on you solely for the satisfaction they get from your compliance.
VERSE 14. But God forbid that I should glory, save in the cross of our Lord Jesus Christ.
VERSE 14. But God forbid that I should take pride except in the cross of our Lord Jesus Christ.
"God forbid," says the Apostle, "that I should glory in anything as dangerous as the false apostles glory in because what they glory in is a poison that destroys many souls, and I wish it were buried in hell. Let them glory in the flesh if they wish and let them perish in their glory. As for me I glory in the Cross of our Lord Jesus Christ." He expresses the same sentiment in the fifth chapter of the Epistle to the Romans, where he says: "We glory in tribulations"; and in the twelfth chapter of the Second Epistle to the Corinthians: "Most gladly, therefore, will l rather glory in my infirmities." According to these expressions the glory of a Christian consists in tribulations, reproaches, and infirmities.
"God forbid," says the Apostle, "that I should take pride in anything as risky as what the false apostles take pride in, because what they take pride in is a poison that destroys many souls, and I wish it were buried in hell. Let them take pride in their physical appearances if they want, and let them face the consequences of their pride. As for me, I take pride in the Cross of our Lord Jesus Christ." He shares the same idea in the fifth chapter of the Epistle to the Romans, where he says: "We take pride in our struggles"; and in the twelfth chapter of the Second Epistle to the Corinthians: "So, I would much rather take pride in my weaknesses." According to these statements, a Christian's pride comes from struggles, insults, and weaknesses.
And this is our glory today with the Pope and the whole world persecuting us and trying to kill us. We know that we suffer these things not because we are thieves and murderers, but for Christ's sake whose Gospel we proclaim. We have no reason to complain. The world, of course, looks upon us as unhappy and accursed creatures, but Christ for whose sake we suffer pronounces us blessed and bids us to rejoice. "Blessed are ye," says He, "when men shall revile you, and persecute you, and shall say all manner of evil against you falsely, for my sake. Rejoice, and be exceeding glad." (Matt. 5:11, 12.)
And this is our glory today as the Pope and the whole world persecute us and try to kill us. We know we suffer these things not because we are thieves and murderers, but for the sake of Christ, whose Gospel we share. We have no reason to complain. The world, of course, sees us as unhappy and cursed, but Christ, for whom we suffer, calls us blessed and tells us to rejoice. "Blessed are you," He says, "when people insult you, persecute you, and say all kinds of evil against you falsely because of me. Rejoice and be very glad." (Matt. 5:11, 12.)
By the Cross of Christ is not to be understood here the two pieces of wood to which He was nailed, but all the afflictions of the believers whose sufferings are Christ's sufferings. Elsewhere Paul writes: "Who now rejoice in my sufferings for you, and fill up that which is behind of the afflictions of Christ in my flesh for his body's sake, which is the church." (Col. 1:24.)
By the Cross of Christ, we're not referring to the two pieces of wood He was nailed to, but rather to all the struggles of believers whose sufferings mirror Christ's own. Paul also writes: "Now I rejoice in my sufferings for you and complete what is lacking in Christ's afflictions in my own flesh for the sake of His body, which is the church." (Col. 1:24.)
It is good for us to know this lest we sink into despair when our opponents persecute us. Let us bear the cross for Christ's sake. It will ease our sufferings and make them light as Christ says, Matthew 11:30, "My yoke is easy, and my burden is light."
It’s important for us to understand this so we don’t fall into despair when our opponents mistreat us. Let’s take up the cross for Christ’s sake. It will lessen our suffering and make it feel lighter, just as Christ says in Matthew 11:30, "My yoke is easy, and my burden is light."
VERSE 14. By whom the world is crucified unto me, and I unto the world.
VERSE 14. Through whom the world is dead to me, and I am dead to the world.
"The world is crucified unto me," means that I condemn the world. "I am crucified unto the world," means that the world in turn condemns me. I detest the doctrine, the self-righteousness, and the works of the world. The world in turn detests my doctrine and condemns me as a revolutionary heretic. Thus the world is crucified unto us and we unto the world.
"The world is dead to me," means that I reject the world. "I am dead to the world," means that the world rejects me. I hate the beliefs, the self-righteousness, and the actions of the world. The world in turn hates my beliefs and labels me as a rebellious heretic. So, the world is dead to us and we are dead to the world.
The monks imagined the world was crucified unto them when they entered the monastery. Not the world, but Christ, is crucified in the monasteries.
The monks believed the world was put on the cross for them when they joined the monastery. It’s not the world that’s crucified, but Christ, in the monasteries.
In this verse Paul expresses his hatred of the world. The hatred was mutual. As Paul, so we are to despise the world and the devil. With Christ on our side we can defy him and say: "Satan, the more you hurt me, the more I oppose you."
In this verse, Paul shares his disdain for the world. The feeling was mutual. Just like Paul, we should look down on the world and the devil. With Christ on our side, we can stand up to him and say: "Satan, the more you hurt me, the more I fight back against you."
VERSE 15. For in Christ Jesus neither circumcision availeth anything, nor uncircumcision, but a new creature.
VERSE 15. For in Christ Jesus, being circumcised doesn't mean anything, nor does being uncircumcised, but what really matters is being a new creation.
Since circumcision and uncircumcision are contrary matters we would expect the Apostle to say that one or the other might accomplish some good. But he denies that either of them do any good. Both are of no value because in Christ Jesus neither circumcision nor uncircumcision avail anything.
Since circumcision and uncircumcision are opposing concepts, we would expect the Apostle to state that one or the other could be beneficial. However, he argues that neither has any benefit. Both are worthless because in Christ Jesus, neither circumcision nor uncircumcision means anything.
Reason fails to understand this, "for the natural man receiveth not the things of the Spirit of God." (I Cor. 2:14.) It therefore seeks righteousness in externals. However, we learn from the Word of God that there is nothing under the sun that can make us righteous before God and a new creature except Christ Jesus.
Reason doesn't get this, "for the natural man does not receive the things of the Spirit of God." (I Cor. 2:14.) So, it looks for righteousness in external things. However, we learn from the Word of God that nothing in this world can make us righteous before God and a new creation except Christ Jesus.
A new creature is one in whom the image of God has been renewed. Such a creature cannot be brought into life by good works, but by Christ alone. Good works may improve the outward appearance, but they cannot produce a new creature. A new creature is the work of the Holy Ghost, who imbues our hearts with faith, love, and other Christian virtues, grants us the strength to subdue the flesh and to reject the righteousness of the world.
A new creature is someone whose image of God has been restored. This kind of person cannot come to life through good deeds, but only through Christ. Good works might enhance our external appearance, but they can't create a new being. A new creature is the result of the Holy Spirit, who fills our hearts with faith, love, and other Christian values, giving us the strength to control our desires and reject worldly righteousness.
VERSE 16. And as many as walk according to this rule, peace be on them, and mercy.
VERSE 16. And for all who live by this guideline, may peace be upon them and mercy.
This is the rule by which we ought to live, "that ye put on the new man, which after God is created in righteousness and true holiness." (Eph. 4:24.) Those who walk after this rule enjoy the favor of God, the forgiveness of their sins, and peace of conscience. Should they ever be overtaken by any sin, the mercy of God supports them.
This is the guideline we should follow: "that you put on the new self, created to be like God in true righteousness and holiness." (Eph. 4:24.) Those who live by this guideline experience God's favor, the forgiveness of their sins, and inner peace. If they ever stumble into sin, God's mercy supports them.
VERSE 17. From henceforth let no man trouble me.
VERSE 17. From now on, let no one bother me.
The Apostle speaks these words with a certain amount of indignation. "I have preached the Gospel to you in conformity with the revelation which I received from Jesus Christ. If you do not care for it, very well. Trouble me no more. Trouble me no more."
The Apostle says this with a bit of anger. "I shared the Gospel with you according to the revelation I received from Jesus Christ. If you don’t care about it, fine. Don’t bother me anymore. Don’t bother me anymore."
VERSE 17. For I bear in my body the marks of the Lord Jesus.
VERSE 17. For I carry in my body the scars of the Lord Jesus.
"The marks on my body indicate whose servant I am. If I was anxious to please men, if I approved of circumcision and good works as factors in our salvation, if I would take delight in your flesh as the false apostles do, I would not have these marks on my body. But because I am the servant of Jesus Christ and publicly declare that no person can obtain the salvation of his soul outside of Christ, I must bear the badge of my Lord. These marks were given to me against my will as decorations from the devil and for no other merit but that I made known Jesus."
"The marks on my body show whose servant I am. If I were eager to please people, if I accepted circumcision and good deeds as part of our salvation, if I took pleasure in your flesh like the false apostles do, I wouldn't have these marks on my body. But because I am a servant of Jesus Christ and openly state that no one can find salvation for their soul outside of Christ, I must wear the badge of my Lord. These marks were given to me against my will as symbols from the devil, and for no other reason than that I have proclaimed Jesus."
Of the marks of suffering which he bore in his body the Apostle makes frequent mention in his epistles. "I think," he says, "that God hath set forth us the apostles last, as it were appointed to death: for we are made a spectacle unto the world, and to angels, and to men." (I Cor. 4:9.) Again, "Unto this present hour we both hunger, and thirst, and are naked, and are buffeted, and have no certain dwelling-place; And labour, working with our hands: being reviled, we bless; being persecuted, we suffer it; being defamed, we intreat: we are made as the filth of the world, and are the offscouring of all things unto this day." (I Cor. 4:11-13.)
Of the marks of suffering that he carried in his body, the Apostle often talks about in his letters. "I believe," he says, "that God has put us apostles last, like we’re destined for death: because we are made a spectacle to the world, to angels, and to men." (I Cor. 4:9.) He also says, "Up to this very hour, we both hunger and thirst, we're naked, beaten, and have no stable home; we work hard with our hands: when we’re insulted, we bless; when we’re persecuted, we endure it; when we're slandered, we respond gently: we are treated like the dirt of the world and the scum of everything up to this day." (I Cor. 4:11-13.)
VERSE 18. Brethren, the grace of our Lord Jesus Christ be with your spirit. Amen.
VERSE 18. Brothers and sisters, may the grace of our Lord Jesus Christ be with your spirit. Amen.
This is the Apostle's farewell. He ends his Epistle as he began it by wishing the Galatians the grace of God. We can hear him say: "I have presented Christ to you, I have pleaded with you, I have reproved you, I have overlooked nothing that I thought might be of benefit to you. All I can do now is to pray that our Lord Jesus Christ would bless my Epistle and grant you the guidance of the Holy Ghost."
This is the Apostle's farewell. He wraps up his letter just as he started it by wishing the Galatians God’s grace. We can imagine him saying: "I've shared Christ with you, I've urged you, I've pointed out your faults, and I haven’t ignored anything I believed would help you. All I can do now is pray that our Lord Jesus Christ blesses my letter and gives you the guidance of the Holy Spirit."
The Lord Jesus Christ, our Savior, who gave me the strength and the grace to explain this Epistle and granted you the grace to hear it, preserve and strengthen us in faith unto the day of our redemption. To Him, the Father and the Son and the Holy Spirit, be glory, world without end. Amen.
The Lord Jesus Christ, our Savior, who gave me the strength and grace to explain this letter and granted you the grace to understand it, keep us safe and strengthen our faith until the day of our redemption. To Him, the Father, the Son, and the Holy Spirit, be glory forever. Amen.
Download ePUB
If you like this ebook, consider a donation!